Skip to main content

Full text of "Garrigou-Lagrange (English)"

See other formats


First Published April, IM9 
Reprinted November IW 



I'HINTKU »I IHt NUUMRltt PRIS8, STH. MEDEKICI UNI, UtlLlH. 



The Mother of The 
Saviour 

and 

Our Interior Life 



Father Reginald GARRIGOU-LAGRANGE, O.P. 

Professor of Dogma and Mystical Theology in the 
Angelico, Rome 



TRANSLATED BY 

Bernard J. KELLY, C.S.Sp., D.D. 



Deus, humilium celsitudo... 
O God, Who art the great- 
ness of the humble, reveal 
to us Mary's humility which 
is proportioned to the eleva- 
tion of her charity. 



B. HERDER BOOK COMPANY 
15 & 17 SOUTH BROADWAY 
ST. LOUIS 2, MO. 



X 31, Ait 



Nihil Obslut : 

michael l. dempsey. s.t.d , 

Censor Thiol. Depctu. 

Imiirimi Potest: 

>J, JOANNES CAROLUS. 

Anemic LH'blinen.. IIibkhxiae Pkisias. 
Di'blini, die 8 Dece»ibri(. 1919. 

fm prim i Potest : 

PATIUCWS O'CAKROLL, C.S.SP.. 

SUPERIOR L'ROVISCIAI.13. 

DmtMI. die 2 Decembrw. 1018. 

Imprimi Potest : 

FR. BERNARD MARIE. O.P.. 

Victim Pboviwhi on Zone I. nut 

te 8 Juiilet, 19*1. 



TO THE BLESSED VIRGIN MARY 
MOTHER OF GOD 
AND OUR MOTHER 

who placed all her greatness in God 
and was filled by Him with good things, 

in token of profound gratitude 
and filial obedience. 



1773 



TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE 



A theologian of the eminence of Father Garrigou- 
Lagrange does not himself need to be introduced to 
the public. This present work of his would, however, 
seem to invite a few words of explanation. 

It is not a devotional book in the ordinary sense of 
the term: it is too openly theological for that. On 
the other hand, it is no mere theological treatise : the 
author's aim has been to inflame hearts no less than 
to enlighten minds. The result is a work which de- 
mands more intellectual application than many 
others on Our Lady. But, by way of compensation, it 
touches the will at a deeper and more spiritual level 
than would a work of less rich content. The author's 
insistence — a fully justified one — on the doctrinal 
side of his subject, has of course, left little room for 
mere literary ornament. But this lack, if lack it be, 
will not turn away any reader who is sincerely 
desirous to know Our Lady better. 

As for the translation itself, though care has been 
taken not to attribute to Father Garrigou-Lagrange 
anything he did not write, it has not been possible 



always to translate the original ivith literal fidelity. 
Theologians who wish to use the book for strictly 
scientific purposes would be well advised to compare 
passages they intend to quote with the original. The 
translator will be glad to supply it, if necessary, as 
far as possible. 

Holy Ghost Missionary College, 
Kimmage, 

Corpus Christi, May 27th, 1948. 



AUTHOR'S PREFACE 



This book is intended to be an exposition of the 
principal theses of Mariology in their bearing on our 
interior life. While writing it I have noticed more 
than once how often it has happened that a 
theologian admitted some prerogative of Our Lady in 
his earlier years under the influence of piety and 
admiration of her dignity. A second period then 
followed when the doctrinal difficulties came home 
to him more forcefully, and he was much more 
reserved in his judgement. Finally there was the 
third period, when, having had time to study the 
question in its positive and speculative aspects, 
he returned to his first position, not now 
because of his sentiment of piety and admiration, but 
because his more profound understanding of 
Tradition and theology revealed to him that the 
measure of the things of God — and in a special 
way those things of God which affect Mary — 
is more overflowing than is commonly understood. If 
the masterpieces of human art contain unsuspected 
treasures, the same must be said, with even more 
reason, of God's masterpieces in the orders of nature 
and grace, especially when they bear an immediate 
relation to the Hypostatic Order, which is constituted 
by the mystery of the Incarnation of the Word. I have 
endeavoured to show how these three periods may be 
found exemplified in the process of St. Thomas's 
teaching on the Immaculate Conception. 



These periods bear a striking analogy to three 
others in the affective order. It. has often been 
noticed that a soul's first affective stage may be one 
of sense-perceptible devotion, for example to the 
Sacred Heart or the Blessed Virgin. This is followed 
by a stage of aridity. Then comes the final stage of 
perfect spiritual devotion, overflowing on the sensi- 
bility. May the Good God help the readers of this 
book who wish to learn of the greatness of the Mother 
of God and men to understand in what this spiritual 
progress co?isists. 

The doctrines proposed in this book are not per- 
sonal ones: it has been my aim to give what is most 
commonly held by theologians — especially those of 
the Thomistic school — and to explain the various 
points in the light of St. Thomas's principles (1). 
Lastly, every effort has been made to avoid merely 
metaphorical expressions. There are sometimes too 
many of them in books on Our Lady. A bibliography 
is given with each question treated. 

(1) For the positive part of the book. I have made extensive 
use of Fr. Merkelbach's Mariologia. Although I have differed 
from him in some matters, his book seems to me worthy of the 
highest praise in its speculative parts as well, both as regards 
the order of the questions and the accuracy of his theological 
arguments. 



TABLE OF CONTENTS 



PAGE 

Translator's Preface ... ... ... ... 7 

Author's Preface ... ... . ... ... ... 9 

PART I 

The Divine Maternity and the Plenitude of Grace 

Chapter I: The Divine Maternity: Its Eminent Dignity 17 

Article I: The Predestination of Mary: Mary's 
predestination to the Divine Maternity pre- 
ceded her predestination to the fulness of 
glory and grace ... ... ... 20 

Article fit: Other reasons for asserting the pre- 
eminence of the Divine Maternity ... 31 

Chapter II: Mary's First Plenitude of Grace ... ... 45 

Article I: The different plenitudes of grace ... 45 

Article II: The privilege of the Immaculate 

Conception ... ... ... ... 51 

Article III: Was Mary exempt from every fault. 

even venial? ... ... ... 71 

Article IV: The perfection of Mary's first grace 76 
Article V: The consequence of Mary's plenitude 

of grace ... ... ... ... 88 

Chapter III: Mary's Plenitude of Grace at and after the 

Incarnation ... ... ... ... ... 97 

Article I: Mary's spiritual progress up to the 

Annunciation ... ... ... ... 97 

Article II: Mary's wonderful increase in grace at 

the Annunciation ... ... ... 112 

Article III: The Visitation and the Magnificat 118 

Article IV: Mary's perpetual virginity ... 121 



12 



TABLE OF CONTENTS 



PAGE 

CHAPTER III (CONTD.) 

Article V: The principal mysteries which contri- 
buted to Mary's increase in grace after the 
Incarnation ... ... ... ... 125 

Article VI: Mary's intellectual endowments and 

her principal virtues ... ... ... 140 

"Chapter IV: The Final Plenitude of Mary's Grace ... 155 

Article I: Mary's fulness of grace at the moment 

of death 155 

Article II: The Assumption of the Blessed Virgin 159 

Article III: The final plenitude of grace in heaven 171 



PART II 

Mary, Mother of all men: Her Universal Mediation 
and our Interior Life 

Chapter I: The Mother of the Redeemer and of All Men 179 

Article I: The Mother of the Saviour associated 

with his redemptive work ... ... 179 

Article II: Mother of all men ... ... 187 

Chapter II: Mary's Universal Mediation during Her 

Earthly Existence ... ... ... ... 197 

Article I: Mary's universal mediation in general 197 

Article II: Mary's merits for us ... ... 206 

Article III: The sufferings of Mary as Co- 

Redemptrix ... ... ... ... 214 

Chapter III: Mary's Universal Mediation in Heaven ... 227 

Article I: Mary's power of intercession ... 227 

Article II: Mary and the distribution of grace ... 234 
Article III: The universality of Mary's mediation 

and its definability ... ... ... 249 



table of contents 



1:j 



page 



Chapter IV: Mother of Mercy ... ... ... 258 

Article I: Greatness and power of this maternity 258 

Article II: Principal manifestations of justice ... 260 

Chapter V: Mary's Universal Queenship ... ... 269 

Article I: Her Queenship in general ... ... 270 

Article II: Special aspects of Mary's Queenship 275 

Chapter VI: True Devotion to Our Laiy ... ... 286 

Article I: The cult of hyperdulia and the benefits 

it confers ... ... ... ... 286 

Article II : The Rosary : a school of contemplation 292 

Article III: Consecration to Mary ... ... 297 

Article IV: Mystical union with Mary ... ... 308 

Article V: The Consecration of the Human Race 

to Mary for the Peace of the World ... 314 

Chaptek VII: The Predestination of St. Joseph and His 

Eminent Sanctity ... ... ... ... 322 



PART I 

The Divine Maternity 
and the Plenitude of Grace 



CHAPTER I 



The Divine Maternity: 
its eminent dignity 



The two truths which stand out like mountain 
peaks in the chain of revelation concerning Our 
Blessed Lady, and around which cluster all other 
truths we hold about her, are her divine maternity 
and her fulness of grace, both of which are affirmed 
in the Gospels and in the Councils of the Church. 
To grasp their importance it will be well to compare 
them, asking which of the two comes first, and gives, 
as it were, the true Pisgah view of all Mariology. In 
that spirit have theologians enquired which was the 
greater of Mary's prerogatives, her divine maternity 
(her motherhood of God) or her fulness of grace. 



The Problem Stated 



There have been theologians (1) who have de- 
clared Mary's fulness of grace her greatest preroga- 
tive. The words spoken to Jesus by a certain woman 
as He passed in the midst of the people, and His an- 
swer, have led them to adopt this position : " Blessed 



(1) Gabriel Biel in Ilium Sent. dist. IV, a.3, dub III, p.2, 
Brescia 1574, p.67 sq. and some others who have followed him 
more or less closely. Thus, Vasquez, in Illam, disp. XXIII, 
c.II and disp. C. c.II, attributes greater dignity to sanctifying 
grace than to the divine maternity. For this opinion cf. 
Dictionnaire de la Theologie Catholique, art. Marie by E. 
Dublanchy S.M., col. 2356 sqq. 



B 



18 



THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



is the womb that bore Thee, and the paps that gave 
thee suck. But He said: Yea rather, blessed are they 
who hear the word of God and keep it " (Luke xi, 27- 
28). On their view the Saviour's answer implies that 
the fulness of grace and of charity which was the 
principle of Mary's supernatural and meritorious 
acts was superior to her divine maternity, a privilege 
in itself of the corporeal order only. 

According to many other theologians (2) the rea- 
son given just now is not conclusive. Their argu- 
ments are many. They say that the woman in ques- 
tion did not speak precisely of the Divine Maternity : 
she thought of Jesus less as God than as a 
prophet whose words were heard eagerly, who was 
admired and acclaimed, and she was thinking there- 
fore of a natural motherhood according to flesh and 
blood: "Blessed is the womb that bore thee and the 
paps that gave thee suck." She did not speak of the 
divine maternity as of something which included a 
supernatural and meritorious consent to the mystery 
of the redemptive Incarnation. That was why Our 
Blessed Lord answered as He did: "Yea rather, 
blessed are they who hear the word of God and keep 
it." For it was precisely by hearing the word of God 
and believing in it that Mary became Mother of the 



(2) Among the thomists special mention must be made of 
Contenson, Gotti, Hugon and Merkelbach. 

Father Merkelbach quotes the following in his Mariologia, 
1939, p.68, as having all admitted more or less explicitly that 
her divine maternity is the greatest of Mary's titles: St. 
Epiphanius, St. Ambrose, St. Sophronius, St. Germanus of 
Constantinople, St. John Damascene, Andrew of Crete, St. 
Peter Damien, Eadmer, Peter of Celles, St. Bernard, St. Albert 
the Great, St. Bonaventure, St. Thomas, Denis the Carthusian, 
St. Bernardine of Siena, St. Alphonsus, and all thomists in 
general as, for example, Gonet, Contenson, Gotti, Hugon. 
Besides, Leo XIII says in his encyclical Qiiamquafn plurles of 
August 15. 1889: " Certe Matris Dei tarn in excelso est dignitas, 
ut nihil fieri majus queat." Cf. Marie in D.ictionnaire de la Th 
Cath., cols. 2349-2359. 



THE DIVINE MATERNITY: ITS EMINENT DIGNITY 19 

Saviour. She said her flat generously and with 
perfect conformity of will to God's good pleasure and 
all it involved for her, and she kept the divine words 
in her heart from the time of the Annunciation on- 
wards. Elisabeth, for her part, expressed this when 
she said: "Blessed art thou that hast believed, be- 
cause those things be shall accomplished which were 
spoken to thee by the Lord" (Luke 1, 45). What a 
contrast with Zachary who was struck dumb for not 
having believed the words of the Angel Gabriel: 
"And behold thou shalt be dumb . . . because thou 
hast not believed my words" (Luke 1, 20). 

Nothing said so far, therefore, is sufficient to solve 
the problem: which was the greater, the divine 
maternity as realised in Mary or her fulness of grace 
and charity? 

We must search deeper for a solution. To make 
the terms of the problem still more precise, it should 
be noted that the maternity proper to a creature en- 
dowed with reason is not the maternity according to 
flesh and blood which is found in the animal king- 
dom, but something which demands by its very 
nature a free consent given by the light of right 
reason to an act which is under the control of the 
will and is subject to the moral laws governing the 
married state: failing this, the maternity of a 
rational being is simply vicious. But the maternity 
of Mary was more than rational. It was divine. 
Hence her consent needed to be not free only, but 
supernatural and meritorious: and the intention of 
Divine Providence was that in default of this con- 
sent the mystery of the redemptive Incarnation 
would not have taken place — she gave her consent, 
St. Thomas says, in the name of mankind (ina, 
q.30, a.2). 

•Hence the maternity we are discussing is not one 



20 



THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



which is merely of flesh and blood, but one which by 
its nature included a supernatural consent to the 
mystery of the redemptive Incarnation which was 
about to be realised, and to all the suffering it in- 
volved according to the messianic prophecies — espe- 
cially those of Isaias — all of which Mary knew so 
well. There can, in consequence, be no question of 
any divine maternity for Mary except a worthy one: 
in the designs of God she was to be a worthy Mother 
of the Redeemer, united perfectly in will to her Son. 
Tradition supports this by saying that her conceiving 
was twofold, in body and in soul: in body, for Jesus is 
flesh of her flesh, the flame of His human life having 
been lit in the womb of the Virgin by the most pure 
operation of the Holy Ghost: in soul, for Mary's 
express consent was needed before the Word 
assumed our nature in her. 

To the problem so stated the great majority of 
theologians answer that tradition teaches that the 
divine maternity, defined in the Council of Ephesus, 
is higher than the fulness of grace, and that Mary's 
most glorious title is that of Mother of God. The 
reasons for their answer are as follows. We ask the 
reader's special attention for the first few pages. 
Once they have been grasped the rest follows quite 
naturally. 



Article I 

The Predestination of Mary 

Let us examine first the primary object in the pre- 
destination of Mary, and the sense in which it was 
absolutely gratuitous. 



THE PREDESTINATION OF MARY 



21 



Mary's predestination to the divine maternity 
preceded her predestination to the fulness of 
glory and grace. 

This proposition may appear a little too profound 
for a beginning. In reality it is quite easy to under- 
stand. Most people admit it, at least implicitly. 
Besides it throws a flood of light on all that follows. 

Pius IX affirmed it in effect in the Bull Ineffabilis 
Deus, by which he defined the dogma of the Immacu- 
late Conception, when he said that God the Father 
predestined Jesus to natural divine sonship — so 
superior to adoptive sonship — and Mary to be Mother 
of God, in one and the same divine decree. The eternal 
predestination of Jesus included not only the 
Incarnation itself as object but also all the circum- 
stances of time and place in which it would be 
realised, and especially the one expressed by the 
Nicene Creed in the words : " Et incarnatus est de 
Spiritu Sancto ex Maria Virgine."(3) By the same 
eternal decree, therefore, Jesus was predestined to be 
Son of the Most High and Mary to be Mother of 
God. (4) It follows that as Christ was predestined to 

(3) The words "natus ex Maria Virgine " are in the creed 
used in the West from at least the 2nd century. 

(4) The words of Ineffabilis Deus are: "Ineffabilis Deus ab 
Initio et ante saecula Unioenito Filio Suo, matrem ex qua 
caro factus in beata temporum plenitudine nasceretur, eleait, 
atque ordinavit tantoque prae creatuxis yniversis est prose- 
cutus. amore, ut in ilia una sibi propensissima voluntate 
complacuerit ... Ipsissima verba, quibus divinae scripturae de 
Increata Sapientia loquuntur, ejusque sempiternas origines 
rcpraesentant, consuevit (Ecclesia), turn in eccleslasticis 
iilTlciis, turn in sacrosancta liturgia adhibere, et ad alius 
Vlrginis primordia transferre, quae uno eodemque decreto cum 
divinae sapientiae Incarnatlone fuerunt praestituta." 

The gratuitous predestination of Christ is the exemplary 
cause or ours, for He merited for us all the effects of our pre- 
destination, as St. Thomas explains nia, q.24, a.4. But Mary's 
predestination to the divine maternity has this altogether 
peculiar to it, that it is one with Christ's predestination to 



22 



THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



natural divine sonship before (in signo 'priori) being 
predestined to the summit of glory and to the 
fulness of grace (the germ of glory) so also the 
Blessed Virgin Mary was predestined first to the 
divine maternity, and in consequence to a very high 
degree of heavenly glory and to the fulness of grace, 
in order that she might be fully worthy of her 
mission as Mother of the Saviour. This second pre- 
destination was all the more necessary seeing that, 
as His Mother, she was called to closest association 
with Jesus, by perfect conformity of her will with 
His, in His redemptive work. Such, in substance, is 
the teaching of Pius IX in the Bull Ineffabilis Deus 
(5). 

Thus, just as in Jesus the dignity of Son of God, or 



natural divine sonship, that Is to say, with the decree of the 
Incarnation. This follows clearly from the text of Pius IX. 

(5) The same doctrine is found very beautifully expressed 
in the collect of the Votive Mass of the Holy Rosary 
(Dominican Missal): Omnipotens et misericors Deus, qui ab 
aeterno Unigenitum tibi coaequalem atque consubstantialem 
Fllium secundum carnem praedestinasti in Spiritu sanctiflca- 
tionls D. N. J. C., et sanctissimam Virginem Mariam tibi 
acceptissimam in matrem eidem a saeculo praeelegisti." 

In predestining Christ to natural divine sonship, the Father 
loved, therefore, and selected (dilexit, elegit et praedestinavit) 
Mary from all eternity as His Mother, to whom, in conse- 
quence, He willed to give fulness of glory and grace. As Pius 
IX says in Ineffabilis Deus: "Et quidem decebat omnino ut 
perfectissimae sanctitatis splendoribus semper ornata 
fulgeret." 

St. Thomas says: "Post Christum habuit Maria maximam 
plenitudinem gratiae, quae ad hoc est electa, ut esset mater 
Dei" (in Ep. ad Rom., VIII, lect. 5; p.118 in Marietti edition). 

Mary's predestination to the divine maternity involves her 
predestination to glory and grace as an immediate conse- 
quence, for that maternity is so intimate a relationship with 
God as to demand a participation in the divine nature. No 
one thinks of the Mother of God as without grace, cf. Hugon, 
De Virgine Maria Deipara, 1926, p.734. The divine maternity 
implies also both confirmation in grace and impeccability for 
there must be mutual and perpetual love between Mother and 
Son: God owes it to Himself to preserve His Mother from 
every fault that would separate her from Him, cf. Hugon, ib., 
p.736. 



THE PREDESTINATION OF MARY 



23 



Word made flesh, surpasses that of the plenitude of 
created grace, charity, and glory, which He received 
in His sacred soul as a result of the hypostatic union 
of two natures in Him by the Incarnation, so also in 
Mary the dignity of Mother of God surpasses that of 
the plenitude of grace and charity, and even that of 
the plenitude of glory which she received through 
her unique predestination to the divine maternity. 

It is the teaching of St. Thomas and many other 
theologians when treating of the motive of the In- 
carnation (for the redemption of mankind) that 
Mary's predestination to be Mother of the Redeemer 
depended on the divine foreknowledge and permis- 
sion of Adam's sin. As St. Thomas explains 
(Ilia, q.l, a.3, ad 3), that sin was permitted in view 
of a greater good, namely that through the redemp- 
tive Incarnation "where sin abounded, grace 
(might) more abound" (Rom. 5, 20) (6). Just as 
God wills the human body for the sake of the human 
soul, and yet, since He wills that the soul give life to 
the body, does not create a soul till there is a body 
ready to receive it, so also God allowed in view of 
the greater good of the redemptive Incarnation that 
there should be a sin to be atoned for, and He willed 
the redemptive Incarnation for the sake of the re- 
generation of souls: thus in the actually existing 
order of divine providence there would have been no 
Incarnation had there been no sin. And in this 
order everything is subordinated to Christ and His 

(6) Pius IX says the same in the Bull Ineffabilis Deus: 
"Ineffabilis Deus ... cum ab omni aeternitate praeviderit 
luctuosissimam humani generis ruinam ex Adami transgres- 
llone derivandum. atque in mysterlo a saeculis abscondito 
prlmum suae bonitatis opus decrevit per Verbl incarnationem 
Nacramento occultiore complere, ut quod in primo Adam 
im.su ram erat. in secundo felicius erigeretur, ab initio et ante 
Niiecula UnigenUo Fllio suo matrem ex qua ... nasceretur 
elegit atque ordinavit ..." 



24 



THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



Holy Mother, so that it is true to say with St. Paul 
(1 Cor. iii, 23): "All things are yours . . . And you 
are Christ's; and Christ is God's" (7). Thus the 
greatness of Christ and of His Mother are in no way 
lessened by their dependence on Adam's sin. 

Mary was therefore predestined first to the divine 
maternity. This dignity appears all the greater if 
we recall that Mary, who was able to merit glory, was 
not able to merit the Incarnation nor the divine 
maternity, for the Incarnation and the divine mater- 
nity lie outside the sphere of merit of the just, which 
has as outer limit the beatific vision (8). 

There is also another conclusive reason: the prin- 
ciple or beginning of merit cannot itself be merited. 
Since original sin, the Incarnation is the principle of 
all the graces and merits of the just; it cannot there- 
fore be itself merited. Neither, then, could Mary 
merit her divine maternity de condigno nor de 
congruo proprie, for that would have been to merit 
the Incarnation (9). 

(7) This point has been explained at length in he Sameur 
et son amour pour nous, 1933, pp.129-136, and in Angelicum, 
1930 and 1939 : " Motivum incarnationis fuit motivum miseri- 
cordiae ... Causae ad invlcem sunt causae." The sin to be 
atoned for comes first in the order of material causes. The 
redemptive Incarnation comes first in the order of final 
causes, and precedes in the divine intention the actual 
application of the redemption to souls. 

(8) cf. St. Thomas Ilia, q.2, all: " Neque opera cujuscum- 
que hominis potuerant esse meritoria hujus unionis 
(hypostaticae) ex condigno. Primo quidem quia opera meri- 
toria hominis proprie ordinantur ad beatitudinem, quae est 
virtutls praemium et consistit in plena Dei fruitione. Unio 
autem incarnationis, cum sit in esse personal!, tra.nscend.it 
unionem beatae mentis ad Deum, quae est per actum fruentis, 
et ideo non potest cadere sub merito." 

(9) Ibid.: "Secundo, quia gratia non potest cadere sub 
merito, quae est merendi principium. Unde multo minus 
incarnatio cadit sub merito, quae est principium gratiae, 
secundum illud Joannis, I, 17, ' gratia et Veritas per Jesum 
Christum facta est."' Mary could merit the Incarnation 
neither de condigno nor de conoruo proprie. Even the second 
kind of merit must be excluded for it is based on charity, 



THE PREDESTINATION OF MARY 



2D 



As St. Thomas very accurately indicates, what 
Mary could merit by the first fulness of grace which 
she received gratuitously in view of the foreseen 
merits of her Son, was an increase of charity and 
that higher degree of purity and holiness which was 
becoming in the Mother of God (10). Or, as he says 
elsewhere: "Mary did not merit the Incarnation 
(nor the divine maternity) but, granted that the 
Incarnation had been decreed, she merited {merito 
congrui, not condigni) that it should come to pass 
through her, since it was becoming that the Mother 
of God should be most pure and perfect" (11). That- 
is to say, she merited the degree of sanctity which it 
was becoming for the Mother of God to have, a de- 
gree which no other virgin had in fact merited, or 
could merit, since none other had received nor was 
entitled to receive the initial fulness of grace and 
charity which was the principle of Mary's merits 

This first reason for the eminent dignity of tbe 
Mother of God, based on her gratuitous predestina- 
tion to that glorious title, is clear beyond question. 
It contains three truths which are, as it were, stars 
of first magnitude in the heavens of theology: lst^- 
that by one and the same decree the Father predes- 
tined Jesus for natural divine sonship and Mary for 
the divine maternity; 2nd— that Mary was predes- 
tined for the divine maternity before being predes- 
tined to the glory and the grace which the Father 

which the just have through the merits of the Redeemer. In 
other words, the eminent cause of our merits cannot itself be 
1 1 1 o i* 1 1 ocl . 

(10) Ilia, q.2, all. ad 3: "Beata Virgo dicitur meruisse 
i' "i-tare Dominum omnium, non quia meruit ipsum incarnari- 
iii 'd quia meruit ex gratia sibi data ilium puritatis et sancti- 
i itis gradum, ut congrue posset esse mater Dei." 

'ID III Sent., d.IV, q.3, a.I, ad 6: "Beata Virgo non meruit 
iii' irnationem sed praesupposita incarnatione. meruit quod 
pnr earn fieret, non merito condigni, sed merito congrui in 
•imintum decebat quod Mater Dei esset purissima ' et 
porfectissima." 



26 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

prepared for her that she might be the worthy 
Mother of His Son; 3rd— that though Mary merited 
heaven de condigno she could not merit (12) the 
Incarnation, nor the divine maternity, since these 
lie outside the sphere and purpose of human super- 
natural merit which does not extend beyond gaining 
eternal beatitude. 

Many theologians have considered the argument 
just given as conclusive. It implies the arguments 
we shall expose in the following article, which really 
are but its developments, much as the history of a 
predestined soul is the unfolding of what was implied 
in its predestination (13). 

i 

The gratuitousness of the 
predestination of Mary. 

A few additional remarks about the uniqueness of 
Mary's predestination will make its gratuitousness 
all the more apparent. 

Among men Jesus is the first of the predestined, 

(12) Not even merito de cononio proprie, for that would be 
based on Mary's charity which for its part depended on Jesus' 
merits, the source of all human merits. But the Blessed Virgin 
was able to obtain the advent of the promised Saviour by her 
prayers, the value of which is termed meritum de conaruo 
improprie (which is based not on God's justice but on His 
infinite mercy). 

(13) cf. Vie InUrieure de la Tres Sainte Vierge, a collection 
of writings of M. Olier, Rome, 1866. vol. I. ch. I: Mary's pre- 
destination to the august dignity of Mother of the Incarnate 
Word: in decreeing the Incarnation of His Son, God the 
Father took The Blessed Virgin as His spouse, pp. 53-60. 
Consequences: wonderful abundance of light and love poured 
into the soul of Mary at the moment of her conception, pp. 
101 sqq. The glory she gives to God from the time of her 
conception, pp. 106-115, Ch. Ill: Mary's presentation and 
life in the Temple. She enhanced the value of the service 
offered by the Synagogue by herself adoring Jesus in the 
Temple under all the figures of the Old Testament: she 
offered Him under the figure of the immolated victims, pp. 
136-143. Mary called on the Messiah in the name of Jews 



THE PREDESTINATION OF MARY 



27 



nice His predestination is the model and cause of 
ours. As St. Thomas shows (Ilia, q.24, a.3 and 4), 
He merited for us all the effects which follow on our 
! predestination. But the man Jesus was predestined, 
I us we have said, to natural divine sonship, even be- 
fore being predestined to glory and grace. Hence, 
His first or primary predestination is none other 
I than the decree of the Incarnation. This eternal 
I decree covers not only the Incarnation taken in the 
I abstract — its mere substance — but also all circum- 
n lances of time and place in which it was to be put 
• into execution, including the fact that Jesus was to 
■be conceived in the womb of the Virgin Mary 
moused to a man whose name was Joseph, of the 
■ house of David" (Luke I, 27). Mary's predestina- 
I tlon to the divine maternity being thus included in 
I Josus's predestination to natural divine sonship, it 
I follows that it precedes her predestination to glory, 
I ulnoe Jesus is the first of those so predestined. A 
I Btxiking confirmation of the thesis of the preceding 
I pages! (14). 



Gentiles, p.148. Ch. V: Accomplishment of the mystery 

}e incarnation. The Holy Ghost fills Mary with a fulness 

ol His gifts which made her actually worthy of the divine 
iimirinity, pp. 203 sqq. The inexpressible love of Mary for 
llir Word incarnate in her, and of the Word for Mary, pp. 
■Ml .sqq. At the moment of the Incarnation, the Word espouses 
Mir Church in the person of Mary, to whom, on that account, 
[Mi- gives the fulness of His gifts, p.253. Explanation of the 
Wdimificat. pp. 294-313. Ch. VIII: The birth of Christ: Mary 
lid Mplritually the Mother of all Christians, pp. 327-345. Ch. 
UX : The presentation of Jesus in the Temple by Mary, pp. 
HflM sqq. Ch. X: The union between Jesus and Mary, pp. 
■fill 434, 

(M)Suarez is in agreement with the Thomists in this 
■lilt tor: cf. in Hlam, De Mysterils Christi, disp. I, sect. 3, n.3: 
^Dleltur B. Virglnem, nostro modo intelligendi, prius secun- 
dum rationem praedestinatam esse et electam ut esset Mater 
Bel, quam ad tantam gratiam et gloriam ... Ideo enim B. Virgo 
■riu-dcstinata est ad tantam gratiam et gloriam, quia electa 
Ml. In Matrem Dei ... ut esset ita disposita sicut Matrem Dei 
« bat." cf. also ib. disp. X, sect. VIII. 



28 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



It is no less clear that Mary's predestination, like 
that of Jesus, was gratuitous. Jesus did not merit 
His predestination to natural divine sonship for the 
reason that His merits presuppose His Person, which 
is that of the Son of God by nature. Being there- 
fore the principle of all His merits, His Divine Son- 
ship could not itself be merited: else it would be 
cause and effect at the same time and under the 
same respect (15). 

In the same way Mary's predestination to the 
divine maternity is gratuitous or independent of her 
merits, for we have seen that to merit it would in- 
volve meriting the Incarnation itself, which is the 
principle of all the merits of mankind since the Fall. 
That is the reason for Mary's words in the Magni- 
ficat: My soul doth magnify the Lord . . . Because 
He hath regarded the humility (the lowly condition) 
of His handmaid." Her predestination to glory and 
grace is clearly gratuitous also, since it is a result or 
morally necessary consequence of her predestination 
to be Mother of God. This does not however involve 
a denial that she merited heaven. On the contrary, 
we affirm that she was predestined to gain heaven 
by her merits (16). For the whole question of Mary's 

(15) cf. St. Thomas Ilia, q.2, a.II: "In Christo omnis 
operatio subsecuta est unionem (cum Verbo); ergo nulla ejus 
operatio potuit esse meritoria unionls." Item Ilia, q.24, a.l 
and 2. 

(16) The divergence of Molinist teaching from that of the 
disciples of St. Augustine and St. Thomas in this matter of 
predestination is well known. The two great Doctors men- 
tioned (cf. St. Thomas, la, q.23, a.5) teach that the predestina- 
tion of the elect cannot depend on their foreseen merits, since 
their merits are the effect of their predestination. That was 
the point of St. Paul's question, " What hast thou that thou 
hast not received?" (I Cor., iv, 7). The ultimate reason why 
one person is better than another is that God loves him more. 
No one perseveres in grace rather than to fall into sin except 
for the reason that God gives him the grace to persevere. For 



THE PREDESTINATION OF MARY 



29 



predestination cf. Diet. Theoh Cath., article Marie, 
col. 2358 (17). 

The sequence or order of the divine plan is there- 
fore clear: 1st— God willed to manifest His goodness; 
::nd -He willed Christ and His glory as Redeemer— in 
which will the permission of original sin for the sake 
the greater good is included; 3rd— He willed Our 
Blessed Lady as Mother of the Redeemer; 4th— In 
< '..11. sequence He willed her glory; 5th— He willed the 
Race and merits by which she would attain to glory; 
Oth— He willed the glory and grace of all the other 
elect. 

The predestination of Mary appears now in all its 
miblimity. We can understand why the Church ex- 
tends to her the application of the words of the Book 
■ Proverbs, viii, 22-35: "The Lord possessed me in 
me beginning of His ways, before He made anything 
I ' the beginning. I was set up from eternity, and 
"i old before the earth was made. . . when He pre- 
pared the heavens I was present . . . when He 
■glanced the foundations of the earth, I was with 
Him forming all things: and was delighted every day, 
playing before Him at all times; playing in the world] 
ii i id my delights were to be with the children of men 



;ison wc ought daily to pray for the grace of final Der- 
vrrance, the grace of graces, the grace of the elect. 
Hut even if the Molinists differ from the Thomists in their 
u< nrra theory of predestination, it would appear, as Father 
Mri rkplbach notes in his Mariologia, p.101, that they should 
-an exception of Mary. For she, having been predestined 
^rutuitously to the dignity 0 f Mother of God, her predestina- 
KIL-m., fflory— which was a consequence of her first 
■ pi iMir.sUnation— must also have been gratuitous. God could 
K"' „? f n °wed His Mother to be lost and therefore must 
■in •>• willed efficaciously to lead her to salvation and to stir up 
in ' '■ • l lie merits which would earn heaven for her 

,„'\'''J^Tf Z M^ as „, ^ he flrst t0 afflrm tha t Mary was 
™ t0 ™h dl l me K maternit y because of her foreseen 

, ,',„iTn tnSS 1 ° n wf been commonl y rejected both in his 
pwn and in subsequent times. 



30 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



... He that shall find me shall find life, and shall 
have salvation from the Lord." 

Mary had been promised as the woman who would 
triumph over the serpent (Gen. hi, 15), as the Virgin 
who would bear Emmanuel (Is. vii, 14) ; she had been 
prefigured by the ark of alliance, the house of gold, 
the tower of ivory. All those testimonies show that 
she was predestined first of all to be Mother of God. 
And the precise reason why the fulness of glory and 
grace was given her was to make her the worthy 
Mother- of God—" to make her fit to be the mother of 
Christ" as St. Thomas expresses it (Ilia, q.27, a.5, 
ad 2). This doctrine appeared to him so certain 
that we find him saying in the same article (corp. 
art.) : " The Blessed Virgin Mary came nearer than 
any other person to the humanity of Christ, since it 
was from her that He received His human nature. 
And that is why Mary received from Christ a pleni- 
tude of grace which surpassed that of all the saints." 

Pius IX speaks in the same sense at the beginning 
of the Bull Ineffabilis Deus: "From the beginning 
and before all ages God selected and prepared for 
His only Son the Mother from whom, having taken 
flesh/He would be born in the blessed fulness of time; 
He loved her by herself more than all creatures, and 
with such a love as to find His delight in a singular 
way in her. That is why, drawing from the treasures 
of His Divinity, He endowed her, more than all the 
angels and saints, with such an abundance of 
heavenly gifts that she was always completely free 
from sin, and that, all beautiful and perfect, she 
appeared in such a plenitude of innocence and holi- 
ness that, except God's, no greater than hers can be 
conceived, and that no mind but the mind of God 
can measure it" (18). 



(18) The original Latin text will be found on pp 21 and 76. 



THE PRE-EMINENCE OF THE DIVINE MATERNITY 



31 



Article II 

Other Reasons for Asserting the Pre-eminence 
of the Divine Maternity 

We have seen that by the decree of the Incarnation 
tX Maria Virgine the Blessed Virgin was predestined 
llrst of all to the divine maternity and by way of 
consequence to glory and grace. There are still other 
ii'xsons, which we shall now bring forward, which 
.show that the divine maternity surpasses the pleni- 
tude of grace. 

The value of a dignity of the hypostatic order 

Since the value or worth of a relation depends on 
the term which it regards and which specifies it^-as, 
lor example, the dignity of the beatific knowledge 

d love of the elect depends on their object, which 
Is the Divine Essence known intuitively— the dignity 
of the divine maternity is to be measured by con- 
sidering the term to which it is immediately referred. 
Now this term is of the hypostatic order, and there- 
fore surpasses the whole order of grace and glory. 

By her divine maternity Mary is related really to 
the Word made flesh. The relation so set up has the 
uncreated Person of the Incarnate Word as its term, 
for Mary is the Mother of Jesus, Who is God. It is 
not precisely the humanity of Jesus which is the term 
of the relation, but rather Jesus Himself in Person: 
' ' is He and not His humanity that is Son of Mary 
(19). Hence Mary, reaching, as Cajetan says, even 

,hI?L»; St ' Th0 "} as IIIa ' <l- 3 5. a 4: " Concipi et jiasci personae 
attnbmtur secundum naturam illam in qua concipitur et 
niusmur. cum igitur in ipso principio conceptionis fuerit 

luuTvt^Z "? s "^ ta a MM™ Persona, consequens est 
q i»d vere possit dici Deum esse conceptum et natum de vir- 

up™ FtEf^E e f t sy°& B - v i r i° vere dlcatur Mater Dei " 

To deny that Mary is Mother of God it would be necessary 



32 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

to the frontiers of the Divinity (20), belongs termi- 
nally to the hypostatic order, to the order of the 
personal union of the Humanity of Jesus to the Un- 
created Word. This truth follows also from the very 
definition of the divine maternity as formulated in 
the Council of Ephesus (21). 

But the order of the hypostatic union surpasses 
wonderfully that of grace and glory, just as this lat- 
ter surpasses that of nature — of human nature and 
of angelic nature, created or possible. The three 
orders distinguished by Pascal in his Pensees, that of 
bodies, that of spirits with their powers sometimes 
amounting to genius, and that of supernatural 
charity, are separated by an immeasurable distance 
from each other. The same is true of the hypostatic 
order and that of glory and grace, considering the 
latter even as found in the greatest saints. * The 
earth and its kingdoms, the firmament and all its 
stars, are not worth a single thought: all spirits taken 
together (and all their natural powers) are not worth 
the least movement of charity, for it belongs to 
another and an entirely supernatural order." Simi- 
larly, all the acts of charity of the greatest saints, 
men or angels, and their heavenly glory, are -far be- 
low the personal or hypostatic union of the Humanity 
of Jesus to the Word. The divine maternity which 
is terminated by the uncreated Person of the Word 
made flesh surpasses therefore immeasurably, be- 

flrst of all to assert that Jesus had been a mere man before 
becoming Son of God, or, with Nestorius, to deny that He had 
a divine personality. 

(20) cf. Cajet. In Ha, Ilae, q.103, a.4, ad 2: " Ad fines 
Deltatis B. V. Maria propria actione attigit, dum Deum con- 
cepit. peperit, genuit et lacte proprio pavit." Of all creatures 
Mary had the closest " affinity " to God. 

(21) cf. Denzinger, Enchiridion, no.113: "Si quis non con- 
fitetur Deum esse veraciter Emmanuel, et propterea Dei 
genitricem sanctam virglnem (peperit enim secundum carnem 
factum Dei Verbum). A.S." Item nos. 218. 290. 



THE PRE-EMINENCE OF THE DIVINE MATERNITY 



33 



cause of its term, the grace and glory of all the elect, 
and even the plenitude of grace and glory received 
by Mary herself. 

St. Thomas says (la, q.25, a.6, ad 4): "The 
Humanity of Christ since it is united to God, the 
beatitude of the elect since it is the possession of 
God, the Blessed Virgin Mary since she is the Mother 
of God — all these have a certain infinite dignity from 
their relation to God Himself, and under that respect 
there can be nothing more perfect than them since 
there can be nothing more perfect than God." St. 
Bonaventure supports this when he says: "God could 
make a greater world, but He cannot make a more 
perfect mother than the Mother of God " (Speculum, 
c. viii). 

As Fr. E. Hugon, O.P., says: "The divine maternity 
Is by its nature higher than adoptive sonship. This 
latter produces only a spiritual and mystic relation- 
ship, whereas the maternity of the Blessed Virgin 
establishes a relationship of nature, a relationship 
of consanguinity with Jesus Christ and one of affinity 
with the entire Trinity. Besides, adoptive sonship 
does not impose, as it were, such obligations on God : 
for the divine maternity imposed on Jesus those 
obligations of justice which ordinary children con- 
tract naturally in regard to their parents, and it con- 
fers on Mary that dominion and power over Him 
which are the natural right accompanying the dignity 
of motherhood " (22). 

By way of corollary it may be mentioned that the 
divine maternity surpasses all the gratiae gratis 
datae or charismata, such as the gift of prophecy, 
knowledge of the secrets of hearts, the gift of 
miracles or of tongues, for all these graces are in 

(22) Marie, Pleine de Grace, 5th edition, 1926,, p.63. This 
book I consider one of the best written on the Blessed Virgin. 

C 



34 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



some way exterior and lower in dignity than sancti- 
fying grace (cf. Ia Ilae, q.3, a.5). It should be noted 
also that the divine maternity cannot be lost, 
whereas grace can be lost on earth. 

9 

The eminent dignity of the divine maternity has 
been set in striking relief by Bossuet in his sermon 
on the Conception of the Blessed Virgin (towards the 
end of the first point) : " God so loved the world, said 
Our Saviour, as to give His only begotten Son (John 
iii, 16) . . . (But) the ineffable love which He had 
for you, O Mary, made Him conceive many other 
designs in your regard. He ordained that He should 
belong to you in the same quality in which He be- 
longed to Himself : and in order to establish an eter- 
nal union with you He made you the Mother of His 
only Son and Himself the Father of yours. O 
prodigy! O abyss of charity! what mind does not 
find itself lost to consider the incomprehensible re- 
gard He had for you; you come so near to Him, 
through this Son common to you both, this inviolable 
bond of your sacred alliance, this pledge of your 
mutual love which you have given so lovingly to each 
other, the Father giving Him in His impassible 
Divinity, and you giving Him in the mortal flesh in 
which He was obedient." 

God the Father communicated to His Son the 
Divine Nature. Mary gave Him a human nature, 
subject to pain and death, in which to redeem us. 
But Mary's Son is the Only-begotten of the Father, 
and in that consists the whole grandeur of her 
maternity. 

9 



THE PRE-EMINENCE OF THE DIVINE MATERNITY 



35 



The reason why so many 
graces were conferred on Mary 

The eminent dignity of the divine maternity is 
revealed in a new light if we consider that it is the 
reason why the fulness of grace was given to Mary, 
that it is the measure and end of that fulness, and 
that it is superior to it. 

The reason why, Mary was given a fulness of grace 
from the first instant was that she might be enabled 
to conceive the Man God in holiness, by uttering her 
fiat with the utmost generosity on the day of the 
Annunciation in spite of the sufferings which she 
knew had been foretold of the Messias; it was given 
her, too, that she might bring forth her child while 
remaining a virgin, that she might surround Him, 
with the most motherly and most holy devotion; it 
was given her, finally, that she might unite herself to 
Him in closest conformity of will, as only a most holy 
mother can, during His hidden life, His apostolic life, 
and His suffering life — that she might utter her 
second fiat most heroically at the foot of the Cross, 
with Him, by Him, and in Him. 

As Fr. Hugon has so well put it: "The divine 
maternity postulates intimate friendship with God. 
Since a mother is bound both by a law of nature and 
an express precept to love her son, and he to love her, 
Mary and Jesus love each other mutually; and since 
the maternity in question 'here is supernatural the 
love must be of the same order. But this means that 
it is a sanctifying love, since by the fact that God 
loves a soul He makes it lovable and sanctifies it " 
(23). There is thus the most complete conformity 
between the will of Mary and her Son's oblation 

(23) Father E. Hueon. OP.. De B. Virgine Maria Deipara 
• Tractatus Theologici), 1926, p.735. 



36 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

which was, as it were, the soul of the sacrifice of the 
Cross. 

It is clear that it was for the reason we have given 
and. for none other that Mary was given an initial 
plenitude of grace followed by a consummated pleni- 
tude in glory. The same reason or end was the 
measure of her grace and glory: therefore it sur- 
passed them. Admittedly it is not possible to deduce 
from the divine maternity each and every one of the 
privileges received by Mary (24) but all derive ulti- 
mately from it. If, finally, she was predestined from 
all eternity to the highest degree of glory after Jesus, 
the reason is that she was predestined first of all to 
be His most worthy mother, and to retain that title 
during eternity after having enjoyed it in time. The 
saints who contemplate in heaven the sublime degree 
of glory, so far surpassing that of the angels, in which 
Mary is enthroned, know that the reason why she 
was predestined to it is that she might be and might 
remain for eternity the most worthy Mother of God : 
Mater Creatoris, Mater Salvatoris, Virgo Dei Genetrix 

Such was the teaching of St. Albert the Great on 
more than one occasion (25). The poets have sung 

(24) For example, we cannot deduce from it the privilege 
of the Assumption, except by taking into consideration the 
further point that the Mother of God was associated intimately 
with Jesus's complete victory over Satan, sin and death. At 
the same time, it is clear that the reason for this intimate 
association is the divine maternity. This is much the same 
as to say that the second property of the circle cannot be 
deduced from the definition alone, but follows from it taken 
in conjunction with its first property. 

(25) Mariale qq. 140 and 141 : " Magis est esse matrem Dei per 
naturam, quam esse filium (Dei) per adoptionem " — " Quidquid 
claudit alterum in se plus est eligendum quam illud quod non 
claudit alterum in se. Sed esse matrem Dei per naturam 
claudit in se filium Dei adoptivum." Suarez says similarly in 
Illam P., disp. I, sect. 2, no. 4: " Comparatur haec dignitas 
Matris Dei ad alias gratias creatas tamquam prima forma ad 
suas proprietates; et e converso aliae gratiae comparantur ad 
ipsam sicut disposltiones ad formam. Est ergo haec dignitas 



THE PRE-EMINENCE OF THE DIVINE MATERNITY 



37 



it in their verses. We refer in a note to one of their 
most recent tributes (26). 

8> 



The Motive of the Cult of Hyperdulia 

A last consideration, which will be found in the 
works of many theologians, can be adduced in favour 
of our thesis. 

It is because she is Mother of God rather than be- 
cause she is full of grace that Mary is entitled to the 



matris, excellentior, sicut forma perfectior est proprietatibus 
et dispositionibus." Item Bossuet, cf. infra p.29. 

f26) Paul Claudel has written very beautifully on the subject 
In his Corona benignitatis anni Dei, Hymn to the Sacred Heart 
15th ed., p.64. 

Three months after the Angel's message — at the end of June, 
The Woman who is bright as the sun and fair as the moon 
Feels the Heart of her Infant throb beneath hers. 

In the womb of the Virgin Immaculate a new world begins. 
The Child ioho is older than time enters time for our sins. 
And with human breathing the First Mover stirs. 

Mary, heavy with child, conceived by the Holy Ghost, 
Is far from the sight of men with her heavenly Host, 
Like the dove of the Canticle in the crannied wall. 

She moves not, she speaks not a word, she adores — no. more; 
Her life is toithin, her God is within to adore, 
Her work and her son, her child, her all. 

The zoorld is at peace, the temple of Janus is shut, 

The sceptre of David is gone and the prophets are mule, 

Lol darker than Hades, a dawn without light. 

For Satan holds sway and the world gives him incense and 
gold, 

But into his kingdo?n God comes like a thief, and behold 
A daughter of Eve puts the serpent to flight. 

The promised Messiah is come, for whom the world prays, 
Men know not the good tidings yet, but, far frojn their gaze. 
The Mother is circled by Cherubim bright. 



38 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



cult of hyperdulia, a cult superior to that due to the 
saints highest in grace and glory. In other words, 
hyperdulia is due to Mary not because she is the 
greatest of the saints but because of her divine 
maternity. It would not have been her due had she 
been raised to her present degree of glory without 
having been predestined to be Mother of God. This 
is the express teaching of St. Thomas (27). 

In the Litanies of the Blessed Virgin the first title 
of glory mentioned is the Sancta Dei Genetrix. All 
the others follow as something which pertains to 
Mary as Mother of God: Sancta Virgo Virginum, 
Mater divinae gratiae, Mater purissima, Mater cas- 
tissima, Mater inviolata, Mater intemerata, Mater 
amabilis, Mater admirabilis, Mater boni consilii, etc. 

& 



Consequences of the Principles thus far outlined 

It follows from what has been said thus far that, 
simpliciter loquendo, purely and simply, the divine 
maternity, even considered in isolation, is superior to 
the plenitude of grace, consummated no less than 
initial. The ultimate reason for this assertion is that 

(27) Ilia, q.25, a.5: "Cum Beata Virgo sit pura creatura 
rationalis, non debetur ei adoratio latriae, sed solum veneratio 
duliae, eminentius tamen quam caeteris creaturis, in quantum 
ipsa est Mater Dei. Et ideo dicitur quod debetur ei non qualis- 
cumque dulia, sed hyperdulia." 

ad 1: Matri regis debetur quidam h.onor consimilis (honorl 
qui debetur regi), ratione cujusdam excellentiae." 
ad 2: "Honor matris refertur ad filium." 

St. Bonaventure speaks in the same sense in J/7 Sent, d.9. 
q.3, a.l. The Sacred Congregation of Rites said also, June 1st, 
1884: "Reglnae et domihae angelorum, in quantum est mater 
Dei ... debetur ... non qualiscumque dulia, sed hyperdulia." 



THE PRE-EMINENCE OF THE DIVINE MATERNITY 



39 



by its term the divine maternity belongs to a higher 
order, that of the hypostatic union (28). 

Thus the rational soul which, considered even in 
isolation, pertains to the order of substance, is su- 
perior to its faculties of intellect and will: it is their 
end, for they proceed from it as accidents and pro- 
perties in order that it may have the power of know- 
ing and willing. In a somewhat similar way, the 
divine maternity, considered in isolation from Mary's 
other dignities, is the end and reason of her fulness 
of grace, and is therefore higher than it. 

It is now clear why Mary was predestined first to 
be Mother of God before being predestined to the 
highest degree of glory after Jesus. The dignity of 
a relation is to be judged more by its term than by 
anything else; but the divine maternity is something 
relative to the Person of the Word made Flesh. In 
much the same way the mother of a king is nearer to 
him than the most able of his lawyers. 

However, under a certain respect — secundum quid, 

(28) In this assertion we differ, as do many theologians, 
from Suarez (in IHam S. Thomae, t.II, disp. I, sect. 2, no. 6 
hq.) and the Salmanticenses (Cursus Theologicus, tr. XITI, 
disp. II, 27; tr. XIX, disp. IV, 117 sq.). 

The reasons for our position are those so well exposed by 
E. Dublanchy in the Diet. Thiol. Cath., art. Marie, cols. 2357- 
2365. As we read there, Suarez held that were the divine 
maternity to exist without grace and adoptive childhood by 
Krace, it would be much inferior to the latter . On the other 
luind, if the divine maternity be understood as including 
everything that is associated with it in the present order of 
providence, it is certainly higher than adoptive childhood. 
Nuarez' distinction has been approved and adopted by Novatus, 
Vega and the Salamanticenses. 

However, as Father Dublanchy says, ibid. col. 2357 : " The 
Kreater number of theologians, basing themselves on the 
principle that the divine maternity pertains to the hypostatic 
order and that whatever pertains to that order surpasses all 
Klfts of grace, continued to hold both in the 17th and the 
micceedlng centuries that the divine maternity surpassed — in 
dignity, at least — adoptive childhood by grace, even if it be 
considered, per impossible, as separated from grace." 



40 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



as theologians say — sanctifying grace and the beatific 
vision are more perfect than the divine maternity. 
As regards sanctifying grace, it makes its bearer holy 
in the formal sense of the term, whereas the divine 
maternity, being only a relation to the Word made 
flesh, does not sanctify in that way (29). The 
beatific vision, for its part, unites the intellects of 
the elect to the divine essence without the inter- 
mediary of the Sacred Humanity (30).. 

It is evident that the hypostatic union of the two 
natures in Christ, considered absolutely, surpasses 
the beatific vision, even though the latter includes a 
perfection in the order of knowledge not found in the 
former. In a similar way, and with all due reserva- 
tions, the divine maternity, if considered absolutely 
or simpliciter, surpasses the plenitude of grace and 
glory, even though this latter is more perfect in a 
secondary way, or secundum quid. For the divine 
maternity, being but a real relation to the Incarnate 
Word, is not enough of itself to sanctify Mary. But 
it called out for, or demanded, the fulness of grace 
which was granted her to raise her to the level of her 
singular mission. She could not have been predes- 
tined to be any other kind of mother to the Saviour 
than a worthy one (31). Everything follows from 

(29) That Is a point of difference between the divine 
maternity and the uncreated grace of union, which is nothing 
other than the Person of the Word sanctifying the Sacred 
Humanity. The grace of union confers an inner, substantial, 
uncreated sanctity, which is higher than the accidental and 
created sanctity conferred by the accident of sanctifying grace. 

(30) These theological arguments for the superiority of the 
divine maternity over the fulness of grace are ably exposed by 
Father Merkelbach. O.P., in his Mariolopia, 1939, pp. 64-70 
(against Vasquez, Van Noort, and others). Father Hugon, O.P., 
Tractatus Theologici, de B. V. Maria Deipara, 1926, p.736, may 
also be consulted. 

(31) The maternity of a rational creature must be worthy 
or else irrational; an unworthy mother fails in the duties im- 
posed on her by the natural law. Rational maternity of its very 



THE PRE-EMINENCE OF THE DIVINE MATERNITY 41 

i hat certain truth. All Mariology is dominated by it 
hist as all Christology is dominated by the truth that 
Jesus is the Son of God (32). 

Since Mary pertains by the term of her maternity 
lo the hypostatic order, it follows that she is higher 
than the angels; higher also than the priesthood, 
which participates in that of Christ (33). Of course, 
not having the priestly character, Mary could not 
consecrate as does the priest at the altar. But none 
the less, her dignity is higher than that of the priest 
and of the bishop, since it is of the hypostatic order. 
The Victim offered on the Cross, and Whom the 
priest offers on the altar, was given us by Mary. The 

: Principal Offerer of our Masses was given us by her. 

I She was more closely associated with Him at the 
foot of the Cross than anyone else — more than even 
the stigmatics and the martyrs. Thus, had Mary 



nature far surpasses the maternity of an irrational creature, 
en though this latter is not without nobility, as for example 
in the mother-hen who gathers her chicks under her wings 
and sacrifices herself to protect them from the hawk. 

(32) cf. Diet. Thiol. Cath., art. Marie by E. Dublanchy, col. 
105: " The dignity of the divine maternity, since it appertains 
to the hypostatic order surpasses all other created dignities, 
even when considered in its isolation, and not excluding the 
dignity of divine adoption by grace and the Christian priest- 
| hood." 

Father E. Hugon. O.P., in his book Marie, pleine de ar6.ee, 
lilh edition, 1926, p.213, remarks very pertinently: " The divine 
maternity calls for holiness and all its effects. It calls for 
participation in the divine being and the divine friendship, 
n Implies a special inhabitation of the Blessed Trinity. It 
r< infers a sovereign power of impetration. It guarantees 
Impeccability. It confers an inalienable right to the eternal 
heritage and even to dominion over all things. It belongs to 
to the hypostatic order, which is higher than that of grace and 
■lory. Habitual grace can be lost, but not the divine maternity. 
Mary's other graces are only a consequence of her maternity. 
By It, Mary is the eldest daughter (Vainee) in all creation." 

' 33) Mary contributes by her maternity to the realisation of 
the mystery of the Incarnation by giving the Word His human 



42 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



received the priestly ordination (but it did not form 
part of her mission) she would have received some- 
thing less than what is implied in her title of Mother 
of God. As St. Albert the Great so well expressed it: 
"The Blessed Virgin was not called by God to be a 
minister, but a consort and a helper, in accordance 
with the words 'Let us make him a help like unto 
himself ' " (Mariale, 42 and 165). Mary was chosen 
to be not the minister of the Saviour but His asso- 
ciate and helper in the work of redemption. 

The divine maternity is therefore, as is commonly 
taught, the foundation, source, and root of all Mary's 
graces and privileges, both those that preceded it as 
preparation, and those that accompanied it or fol- 
lowed from it as its consequence. It was by way of 
preparation for the divine maternity that Mary was 
the Immaculate Conception, preserved from the 
stain of original sin by the future merits of her Son. 
He redeemed her as perfectly as was possible; not by 
healing her, but by preserving her from the original 
stain before it touched her soul for even an instant. 
It was because of her maternity that Mary received 
the initial fulness of grace which ceased not to in- 
crease till it reached its consummated plenitude. 
And because of the same maternity she was exempt 
from all personal fault, even venial — and from all 
imperfection, for she never failed in promptitude to 
obey the divine inspirations even when they came to 



nature, which is more than to make Him really present in the 
Blessed Eucharist. Besides, the priest may have the priestly 
character without grace and without God's friendship: the 
plenitude of grace is, however, inseparable from Mary, because 
of her special predestination. It is possible to think of an un- 
worthy priest, but not of an unworthy Mother of God. From 
Mary's maternity, there follow the privileges of her preserva- 
tion from original sin. and from every personal sin (even 
venial) and from every imperfection. 



THE PRE-EMINENCE OF THE DIVINE MATERNITY 



43 



her by way of simple counsels (34). The dignity of 
Mary surpasses therefore that of all the saints com- 
bined. 

Recall too that Mary had a mother's authority over 
the Word of God made flesh. She contributed there- 

( fore to His knowledge: not, of course, to His beatific 
or infused knowledge, but to the progressive forma- 
tion of His acquired knowledge, which knowledge lit 
up the acquired prudence in accordance with which 
He performed acts proportioned to His age during 
Ills infancy and hidden life. In this way the Word 
made flesh was subject to Mary in most profound 

I m-ntiments of respect and love. How, then, could we 

! fail to have the same sentiments in regard to the 

I Mother of Our God? 

In one of the most beautiful books written about 
I Mary, the Treatise on True Devotion to the Blessed 
Virgin, St. Grignon de Montfort says (ch. 1, a.l): 
" God made Man found liberty in being enclosed in 
I her womb; He showed His power by allowing Himself 
I to be carried by her, young maiden though she was; 
He found glory, and His Father found glory too, in 
hiding His splendour from all creatures of earth, so 
I us to reveal them to Mary alone; He glorified His 
majesty and His independence by depending on the 
Virgin in His conception, His birth, His presentation 
. In the temple, His hidden life of thirty years — and 
oven up to the time of His death, for she was present 
I then, and He offered one only sacrifice in union with 
I her, and was immolated to the eternal Father with 
her consent as once Isaac was immolated to the 
I divine will by the consent of Abraham ... It is she 

(34) Thus we see that an imperfection, which is a failing in 
I promptitude to follow a divine counsel, is something different 
from a venial sin. The shade of difference is not easy to 
■ i ■ ' ■ <■ t. in ordinary human lives, but it appears quite clear in 
I tin' light of the perfect holiness of Mary. 



44 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



who nourished and supported Him, who brought Him 
up and then sacrificed Him for us . . . Finally, Our 
Lord remains as much the Son of Mary in heaven as 
He was on earth." 

Such is the first reason for the cult of hyperdulia 
which we owe her. It explains why the voice of tra- 
dition, and especially the Councils of Ephesus and 
Constantinople, insisted, before everything else con- 
cerning Mary, on the fact that she was the Mother 
of God, thereby affirming afresh against Nes- 
torianism that Jesus was God. 

To conclude this chapter we should note that 
many christians find it so evident that Mary's 
greatest title is that of Mother of God, and that all 
her other titles follow from and are explained by it, 
that they do not understand why time should be 
devoted to proving the point. It is quite clear to 
them that had we, for our part, been in a position to 
do so, we should have given our mother every gift at 
our disposal. That is why St. Thomas is content to 
state quite simply (111a, q.27, a.5, corp. et ad 2): "To 
be the worthy Mother of God, Mary needed to 
receive fulness of grace." Bossuet repeats this in his 
sermon on the Compassion of the Blessed Virgin (1st 
point, end): "Since God disposes things with won- 
derful aptness, it was necessary that He should im- 
print on the heart of the Blessed Virgin a love going 
far beyond nature even to the last reaches of grace, 
so that she might have for her Son sentiments 
worthy of a Mother of God and of a Man-God." 



CHAPTER II 
Mary's First Plenitude of Grace 



Hail, full of Grace 

Luke 1, 28. 

Having seen the nobility of Mary's title, Mother of 
I God, it is now appropriate to examine the meaning 
I and implications of the words spoken to her by the 
Angel Gabriel on the day of the Annunciation: 
•'Hail, full of grace, the Lord is with thee: Blessed 
i urt thou among women" (Luke i, 28). As a help to 
understanding these words spoken in God's name we 
shall consider: 1st — the different plenitudes of 
Rrace; 2nd — the privilege of the Immaculate Con- 
ception; 3rd — the sublimity of Mary's first grace. 



Article I 



The Different Plenitudes of Grace 

According to the usage of Holy Scripture, which 
becomes more and more explicit in the New Testa- 
ment, it is grace in the strict sense of the term which 
Is implied in the term " Fulness of grace " — that is to 
lay, grace which is really distinct from nature, both 
human and angelic, grace which is a free gift of God 
Kin-passing the natural powers and exigencies of all 



46 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



nature, created or creatable (1). Habitual or sancti- 
fying grace makes us participate in the very nature, 
in the inner life of God, according to the words of 
St. Peter (II Peter i, 4) : "By whom he hath given us 
most great and precious promises: that by these you 
may be made partakers of the divine nature." By 
grace we have become adopted children of God, heirs 
and coheirs with Christ (Rom. viii, 17); by grace we 
are "born of God" (John i, 13). It prepares us to 
receive eternal life as a heritage and as a reward of 
the merits of which it is itself the principle. It is 
even the germ of eternal life, the semen gloriae as 
Tradition terms it, since by it we are disposed in ad- 
vance for the face to face vision and the beatific love 
of God. 

Habitual grace is received into the very essence of 
the soul as a supernatural graft which elevates and 
deifies its vitality. From it there flows into the 
faculties the infused virtues, theological and moral, 
and the seven gifts of the Holy Ghost, all of which 
supernatural organism constitutes a sort of second 
nature of such a kind as to enable us to perform con- 
naturally the supernatural and meritorious acts of 
the infused virtues and the seven gifts. We have, 
too, by habitual grace the Blessed Trinity dwelling 
within us as in a temple where They are known and 
loved, even as it were experimentally. And at times 
we do know Them in this quasi-experimental fashion 
when by a special grace They make Themselves 
known to us as the life of our life, for "... you have 
received the spirit of adoption of sons, whereby we 

(1) " Full of grace," especially If the original Greek word 
be considered, means " made agreeable in God's eyes " or 
*■ well-beloved of God." But a soul is made agreeable in God's 
eyes by habitual erace, or gratia oratum faciens, which is 
itself an effect of the active and uncreated love of God which 
selects the soul as His adopted child. 



THE DIFFERENT PLENITUDES OF GRACE 



47 



cry Abba (Father) " (Rom. viii, 15). Then does the 
Holy Ghost inspire us with filial love, and in that 
use ". . . the; spirit himself giveth testimony to 
our spirit, that we are the sons of God" (Rom. viii, 
16). 

While habitual grace makes us thus children of 
God, actual or transitory grace first of all disposes 
us for adoptive childhood, and subsequently makes 
us act, through the infused virtues and gifts working 
.separately or both together, in a manner becoming 
God's children. This new life of grace, virtues and 
| gifts, is none other than eternal life begun on earth, 
I since habitual grace and charity will outlive the pas- 
sage of time. 

Grace — call it, if you will, a participation in the 
divine nature — was no less gratuitous for the angels 
than for us. As St. Augustine says (De Civ. Dei, XII 
c. 9) : " God created them, at the same instant form- 
ing their nature and endowing them with grace. ' 
When creating the angels God conferred grace on 
them, to which grace their nature, richly endowed 
though it was, could lay no claim. The angels, and 
man also, could have been created in a purely 
natural condition, lacking the divine graft whence 
ies a new life. 

The grace intended in the words "Hail, full of 
Krace" addressed to Our Lady is therefore some- 
thing higher than nature or the exigencies of 
nature, created or merely possible. It is a participa- 
tion in the divine nature or in the inner life of God, 
which makes the soul to enter into the kingdom of 
God, a kingdom far surpassing all the kingdoms of 
nature — mineral, vegetable, animal, human, and 
oven angelic. So elevated is grace that St. Thomas 
Could say: "The good of the grace of one soul is 
rrrater than the good of the nature of the whole 




48 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

universe" (2). The least degree of grace in the 
soul of a newly baptised child is worth more than all 
created natures, including those that are angelic. 
Being a participation in the inner life of God, grace 
is something greater than all miracles and exterior 
signs of divine revelation or of the sanctity of God's 
favoured servants. And it is of this grace, germ and 
promise of glory, that the angel spoke when he said 
to Mary: "Hail, full of grace." Gazing at Mary's 
soul, he saw that, though he himself was in the pos- 
session of the beatific vision, Mary's grace and 
charity far surpassed his for she possessed them in 
the degree required to become at that instant the 
Mother of God. 

Mary, of course, had received from the Most High 
natural gifts of body and soul in wonderful perfec- 
tion. Judged even from the natural level, the soul 
of Jesus united in itself all that there is of beauty 
and nobility in the souls of the great poets and ar- 
tists, of men of genius and of men of generosity. In 
an analogous way the soul of Mary was a divine 
masterpiece because of the natural perfection of her 
intelligence and will and sensibility. There is no 
shadow of doubt that she was more gifted than 
anyone who has ever struck us as remarkable for 
penetration and sureness of mind, for strength of 
will, for equilibrium or harmony of higher and lower 
faculties. Since she had been preserved from origi- 
nal sin and its baneful effects, concupiscence and 
darkness of understanding, her body did not weigh 
down her mind but rather served it. When forming 
the body of a saint, God has in mind the soul which 
is to vivify it: when forming Mary's body He had in 
mind the Body and the infinitely holy Soul of the 
Word made flesh. As St. Albert the Great loves to 

(2) la Ilae, q.24, a.3, ad 2. 



MARY'S FIRST PLENITUDE OF GRACE 49 



recall, the Fathers of the Church say that Mary, 
viewed even naturally, had the grace of Rebecca, the 
beauty of Rachel, and the gentle majesty of Esther. 
They add that her chaste beauty never held the gaze 
[or its own sake alone, but always lifted souls up to 
God. 

The more perfect these gifts of nature in Mary, the 
more elevated they make her grace appear, for it 
urpasses them immeasurably. 



When speaking of fulness of grace it is well to note 
that it exists in three different degrees in Our Lord, 
In Mary, and in the just. St. Thomas explains this 
B number of times (3). 

There is, first of all, the absolute fulness of grace 
which is peculiar to Jesus, the Saviour of mankind. 
Taking into consideration only the ordinary power of 
God, there can be no greater grace than this. It is 
i ho eminent and inexhaustible source of all the 
grace which all men have received since the Fall, or 
will receive till the end of time. It is the source also 
Of the beatitude of the elect, for Jesus has merited 
ill the effects of our predestination (4). 

There is, in the second place, the fulness of super- 
abundance which is Mary's special privilege, and 
Which is so named since it is like a spiritual river 
which has poured of its abundance upon the souls of 
men for almost two thousand years. 

There is finally the fulness of sufficiency which is 
common to all the just and which makes them 
i ; [.liable of performing those meritorious acts— they 

(3) See particularly his Comm. in Joannem, c.l, lect. x. 

(4) Ilia, q.24, a.4. 



50 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

normally become more perfect in the course of years 
— which lead them to eternal life. 

These three fulnesses have been well compared to 
an inexhaustible spring, to the stream or river which 
flows from it, and to the different canals fed by the 
river, which irrigate and make fertile the whole 
region they traverse — that is to say, the whole 
Church, universal in time and space. The river of 
grace proceeds from God through the Saviour, as we 
read "Drop down dew, ye heavens, from above, and 
let the clouds rain the just: let the earth be opened, 
and bud forth a saviour" (Is. xiv, 8). And then 
finally it rises once more to God, the Ocean of peace, 
in the form of merits, prayers, and sacrifices. 

To continue the image: the fulness of the spring 
has not increased; that of the river, on the contrary, 
which flows from it has increased. Or, to speak in 
plain terms, the absolute fulness of Our Saviour 
knew no increase, for it was sovereignly perfect from 
the first instant of His conception by reason of the 
personal union with the Word. For, from the first 
instant the lumen gloriae and the beatific vision were 
communicated to Jesus's soul, so that the second 
Council of Constantinople could say (Denz. 224) that 
Christ did not grow more perfect by reason of His 
meritorious acts: "Ex profectu operum non melior- 
atus est." Mary's fulness of grace, however, did not 
cease to increase up to the time of her death. For 
that reason theologians usually speak of 1st — her 
initial fulness or plenitude; 2nd — the fulness of her 
second sanctification at the instant of the concep- 
tion of the Saviour; 3rd — the final fulness (at the 
instant of her entry into glory), its extent, and its 
superabundance (5). 

(5) Cf. Ilia, q 27. a.5, ad 2. 



THE PRIVILEGE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION 51 



Article II 

The Privilege of the Immaculate Conception 

The initial fulness of grace in Mary presents two 
aspects. One is negative, at least in its formulation: 
her preservation from original sin. The other is 
positive: her conception, absolutely pure and holy 
by reason of the perfection of her initial sanctifying 
KXace in which were rooted the infused virtues and 
the gifts of the Holy Ghost. 



The Dogmatic Definition 

The definition of the dogma of the Immaculate 
Conception, made by Pius IX on December 8th, 1854, 
reads as follows: "We declare, announce, and define 
l.hat the doctrine which states that the Blessed 
Virgin Mary was preserved, in the first instant of her 
conception, by a singular grace and privilege of God 
Omnipotent and because of the merits of Jesus 
Christ the Saviour of the human race, free from all 
.slain of original sin, is revealed by God and must 
Therefore be believed firmly and with constancy by 
all the faithful" (Denz. 1641). 

This definition contains three especially impor- 
tant points: 1st — It affirms that the Blessed Virgin 
was preserved from all stain of original sin from the 
first instant of her conception. The conception 
meant is that known as passive or consummated — 
that in which her soul was created and united to 
her body — for it is then only that one can speak of a 
human person, whereas the definition bears on a 
privilege granted to the person of Mary. The defini- 
tion states also that the Immaculate Conception is a 



52 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



special privilege and an altogether singular grace, 
the work of Divine Omnipotence. 

What are we to understand by original sin from 
which Mary has been preserved? The Church has 
not defined its intrinsic nature, but she has taught 
us something about it by telling us its effects: the 
divine hatred or malediction, a stain on the soul, a 
state of non- justice or spiritual death, servitude 
under the empire of Satan, subjection to the law of 
concupiscence, subjection to suffering and to bodily 
death in so far as they are the penalty of the com- 
mon sin (6). These effects presuppose the loss of 
the sanctifying grace which, along with integrity of 
nature, Adam had received for us and for himself, 
and which he lost by sin, also for us and for him- 
self (7). 

It follows therefore that Mary was not preserved 
free from every stain of original sin otherwise than 
by receiving sanctifying grace into her soul from the 
first instant of her conception. Thus she was con- 
ceived in that state of justice and holiness which is 
the effect of the divine friendship as opposed to the 
divine malediction, and in consequence she was 
withdrawn from the slavery of the devil and subjec- 
tion to the law of concupiscence. She was with- 
drawn too from subjection to the law of suffering 
and death, considered as penalties of the sin of our 

(6) Cf . Second Council of Orange, Denz. 174, 175. Council of 
Trent, Denz. 788, 789. 

(7) Council of Trent, Denz. 789: "Si quis Adae praevari- 
cationem slbi soli et non eius propagini asserit nocuisse. 
acceptam a Deo sanctitatem et iustitiam quam perdidit, sibl 
soli et non nobis etiam perdidisse; aut inquinatum ilium per 
inobedientiae peccatum mortem et poenas corporis tantum in 
omne genus humanum transfudisse, non autem peccatum quod 
est mors animae, A.S." Sin is the death of the soul since it 
deprives it of sanctifying grace which is the supernatural life 
of the soul, and the germ of eternal life. 



THE PRIVILEGE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION 



53 



nature (8), even though both Jesus and Mary knew 
suffering and death in so far as they are consequences 
of our nature {in carne passibili) and endured them 
for our salvation. 

2nd — It is affirmed in the definition, as it was al- 
ready affirmed in 1661 by Alexander VIII (Denz. 
1100) that it was through the merits of Jesus Christ, 
the Saviour of the human race, that Mary was pre- 
served from original sin. Hence the opinion held by 
some 13th century theologians — that Mary was im- 
maculate in the sense of not needing to be redeemed, 
and that her first grace was independent of the 
future merits of her Son— may no longer be admit- 
ted. According to the Bull Ineffabilis Deus, Mary 
was redeemed by the merits of her Son in a 
most perfect way, by a redemption which did not 
free her from a stain already contracted, but which 
preserved her. from contracting one. Even in human 
affairs we look on one as more a saviour if he wards 
off a blow than if he merely heals the wound it in- 
flicts. 

The idea of a preservative redemption reminds us 
that Mary, being a child of Adam and proceeding 
from him by way of natural generation, should have 
incurred the hereditary taint, and would have in- 
curred it in fact had not God decided from all eter- 
nity to grant her the unique privilege of an immacu- 
late conception in dependence on the future merits 
of her Son. 

The liturgy had already made this point in the 
prayer proper to the Feast of the Immaculate Con- 
ception, which was approved by Sixtus IV (1476): 
"Thou hast preserved her (Mary) from all stain 

(8) This asriect of the dogmatic definition is very well ex- 
plained bv Fr. X. M. le Bachelet. S.J., in the Dictionnaire 
A-nologetiaue. art. Marie, section ImmacuUe Conception, vol. 
III. col. 220 sqq. 



54 THE divine maternity: its eminent dignity 



through the foreseen death of this same Son." The 
Blessed Virgin was preserved from original sin by 
the future death of her Son, that is to say, by the 
merits of Christ dying for us on the Cross. 

It is therefore clear that Mary's preservation from 
original sin differs essentially from that of the 
Saviour. Jesus was not redeemed by the merits of 
another, not even by His own. He was preserved 
from original sin and from all sin for two reasons: 
first because of the personal or hypostatic union of 
His humanity to the Word in the very instant in which 
His sacred soul was created, since it could not be that 
sin should ever be attributed to the Word made 
flesh; secondly, since His conception was virginal 
and due to the operation of the Holy Ghost, so that 
Jesus did not descend from Adam by way of natural 
generation (9). These two reasons are peculiar to 
Jesus alone. 

3rd — The definition proposes the doctrine of the 
Immaculate Conception as revealed, that is, as con- 
tained at least implicitly in the deposit of Revela- 
tion — in Scripture and Tradition, or in one at least 
of those two sources. 

The Testimony of the Scriptures 

The Bull Ineffabilis Deus quotes two texts of 
Scripture, Gen. hi, 15, and Luke i, 28, 42. 

The privilege of the Immaculate Conception is re- 
vealed as it were implicitly or confusedly in the book 
of Genesis in the words spoken by God to the ser- 

(9) As St. Augustine puts it, De Genesi ad litteram, bk. X, 
chs. J.9 and 20 : Jesus was in Adam " non secundum seminalem 
rationem" but only "secundum corpulentem substantiam." 



THE PRIVILEGE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION 



pent, and thereby to Satan (Gen. iii, 15) : " I will put 
enmities between thee and the woman, and thy seed 
and her seed: she shall crush thy head and thou 
shalt he in wait for her heel." The pronoun we 
translate as " she " in " she shall crush thy head " is 
masculine in the Hebrew text, and stands for the 
posterity or seed of the woman; this is true also of 
the Septuagint and the Syraic versions. The Vulgate 
however has the feminine pronoun " ipsa," referring 
the prophecy directly to the woman herself. How- 
ever there is no essential difference of meaning be- 
tween the two readings since the woman is to be 
associated with the victory of Him Who will be the 
great representative of her posterity in their con- 
BULct with Satan throughout the ages. 

Taken by themselves these words are certainly not 
sufficient to prove that the Immaculate Conception 
is revealed. But the Fathers of the Church, in their 
comparison of Eve and Mary, have seen in them an 
allusion to it, and it is on that account that the text 
is cited by Pius IX. 

To the naturalist exegete the text means no more 
than the instinctive revulsion man experiences 
towards the serpent. But to the Jewish and Chris- 
tian tradition it means much more. The Christian 
tradition sees in that promise — it has been termed 
the protoevangelium — the first sketch of the Messiah 
and His victory over the spirit of evil. For Jesus is 
pre-eminently the posterity of the woman in conflict 
with the posterity of the serpent. But if Jesus is 
termed the posterity of the woman, that is not be- 
cause of His remote connection with Eve, who was 
able to pass on to her descendants only a fallen and 
wounded nature, deprived of the divine life. Rather 
is it because of His connection with Mary, in whose 
womb He took a stainless humanity. As Fr. F. X. 



56 



THE DIVINE MATERNITY: ITS EMINENT DIGNITY 



le Bachelet says, in col. 118 of the article referred to 
already, " We do not find in Eve the principle of that 
enmity which God will put between the race of the 
woman and the race of the serpent; for Eve, like 
Adam, is herself fallen a victim to the serpent. It is 
only between Mary, Mother of the Redeemer, that 
enmity ultimately exists. Hence the person of Mary 
is included, though in a veiled manner, in the pro- 
toevangeliam, and the Vulgate reading ' ipsa ' (she) 
expresses something really implied in the sacred 
text, since the victory of the Redeemer is morally, 
but really, the victory of His Mother." 

For that reason early Christianity never ceased to 
contrast Eve who shared in Adam's sin by yielding 
to the serpent's suggestion with Mary who shared in 
the redemptive work of Christ by believing the words 
of the angel on the morning of the Annunciation 
(10). 

The promise of Genesis speaks of a victory that 
will be complete : " She shall crush thy head." And 
since the victory over Satan will be complete, so also 
the victory over sin which makes the soul slave and 
the devil master. But as Pius IX teaches in the Bull 
Ineffabilis Deus, the victory over Satan would not be 
complete if Mary had not been preserved from origi- 
nal sin by the merits of her Son : " De ipso (serpente) 
plenissime triumphans, illius caput immaculate- pede 
(Maria) contrivit." 

The Immaculate Conception is contained there- 
fore in the promise of Genesis as the oak is contained 
in the acorn. A person who had never seen an oak 

(10) For the interpretation of the prophecy of Genesis cf. 
Terrien, La Mere de Dieu et la Mere des Hommes, vol. Ill, bk.I. 
ch. 2, pp. 26-49. The Mary-Eve antithesis is brought out 
by SS. Justin. Irenaeus, Cyril of Jerusalem. Ephrem, 
Epiphanius. Ambrose, Jerome, Augustine, John Chrysostom, 
etc. Cf. Diet. Apol. article already quoted, col. 119. 



THE PRIVILEGE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION 



57 



could never guess the value of the acorn, nor its final 
stage of development. But we who have seen the 
oak know for what the acorn is destined, and that 
it does not yield an elm nor a poplar. The same 
law of evolution obtains in the order of progressive 
divine revelation. 

@ 

The Bull Ineffabilis quotes also the salutation 
addressed by the angel to Mary (Luke i, 28): "Hail, 
full of grace . . . blessed art thou among women," 
as well as the similar words uttered by St. Elisabeth 
under divine inspiration (Luke i, 42). Pius IX does 
not state that these words are sufficient by them- 
selves to prove that the Immaculate Conception is 
revealed; for that, the exegetic tradition of the 
Fathers must be invoked. 

This tradition becomes explicit with St. Ephrem 
the Syrian (d. 373) (11). Among the Greeks it is 
found on the morrow of the Council of Ephesus 
(431), especially in the teaching of two bishop- 
opponents of Nestorious, St. Proclus who was a suc- 
cessor of St. John Chrysostom in the chair of Con- 
stantinople (431-446) and Theodore, bishop of 
Ancyra. Later we find it in the teaching of St. 
Sophronius, Patriarch of Jerusalem (634-638), An- 
drew of Crete (d. 740), St. John Damascene (d. 
towards the middle of the 8th century). These 
different testimonies will be found at length in the 
article Marie of the Diet. Apol. cols. 223-231. 

Understood in the light of this exegetic tradition, 
the words of the angel to Mary " Hail, full of grace " 
-that is " Hail, thou art fully pleasing to God and 
loved by Him "—are not limited temporally in their 

(11) Cf. Diet. Theol., art Ephrem, col. 192. 



58 



THE DIVINE MATERNITY: ITS EMINENT DIGNITY 



application in such a way as to exclude even the 
initial period of Mary's life. On the contrary, the 
Blessed Virgin would not have received complete 
fulness of grace had her soul been even for an in- 
stant in the condition of spiritual death which fol- 
lows on original sin, had she been even an instant 
deprived of grace, turned away from God, a 
daughter of wrath, in slavery to the devil. St. 
Proclus says that she was " formed from stainless 
clay" (12). Theodore of Ancyra says that "the 
Son of the Most High came forth from the Most 
High" (13). St. John Damascene writes that Mary 
is the holy daughter of Joachim and Anne "who 
has escaped the burning darts of the evil one" (14), 
that she is a new paradise "to which the serpent 
has no stealthy access " ( 15), that she is exempt 
from the debt of death which is one of the conse- 
quences of original sin (16), and that she must 
therefore be exempt from the common fall. 

If Mary had contracted original sin her fulness of 
grace would have been diminished in this sense that 
it would not have extended to the whole of her life. 
Thus, Our Holy Mother the Church, reading the 
words of the angelic salutation in the light of Tradi- 
tion and with the assistance of the Holy Ghost saw 
revealed implicitly in it the privilege of the Immacu- 
late Conception. The privilege is revealed in the 
text not as an effect is in a cause which could exist 
without it, but as a part is in a whole; the part is 
actually contained in the whole at least by way of 
implicit statement. 

(12) Orat. VI; P. G., LXV, 733; cf. 751 sqq., 756. 

(13) Horn. VI, in Sanctam Mariam Dei genetricem, 11-12; 
P. G, LXXVII, 1426 sqq. 

(14) Horn. I in Nat., 7; P. G., XCVI, 672. 

(15) Horn. II in dormit.. 2, col. 725. 

(16) Horn. II in dormit, 3, col. 726. 



THE PRIVILEGE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION 



59 



9> 



The Testimony of Tradition 

Tradition itself affirms the truth of the Immacu- 
late Conception more and more explicitly in the 
course of time. St. Justin (17), St. Irenaeus (18), 
Tertullian (19), contrast Eve, the cause of death,, 
and Mary, the cause of life and salvation. This 
anthithesis is constantly on the lips of the Fathers 
(20) and is found also in the most solemn documents 
of the Church's magisterium, especially in the Bull, 
Ineffabilis Deus. It is presented as perfect and 
without restriction; thus, Mary must always have 
been greater than Eve, and most particularly at the 
first moment of her life. The Fathers often say 
that Mary is stainless, that she has always been 
blessed by God in honour of her Son, that she is 
intemerata, intacta, impolluta, intaminata, illibata, 
altogether without spot. 

Comparing Mary and Eve, St. Ephrem says: "Both 
were at first simple and innocent, but thereafter Eve 
became cause of death and Mary cause of life " (21). 
Speaking to Our Blessed Lord, he continues: "You 
Lord and Your Mother are the only two who are 
perfectly beautiful under every respect. In You 
there is no fault, and in Your Mother there is no 
stain. All other children of God are far from such 
beauty" (22). 

(17) Dial. cum. Tryphone, 100; P.G., VII, 858 sqq., 1175. 

(18) Adv. Haereses, III, xxii, 3, 4: P. G., VII, 858 sqq., 1175. 

(19) De carne Christi, XVII; P. I,, II, 782. 

(20) For example, SS. Cyril of Jerusalem, Ephrem, Epipha- 
nlus, Ambrose, Jerome, Augustine, John Chrysostom, etc. 

(21) Op. Syriaca, Roman edit., t. II, p. 327. 

(22) Cf. G. Bickell, Carmina Nisibena, Leipzig, 1866, pp. 28- 
29. Bickell concludes from this and similar passages that St. 
Ephrem is a witness to the dogma of the Immaculate 
Conception. 



60 THE DIVINE MATERNITY: ITS EMINENT DIGNITY 

In much the same way St. Ambrose says of Mary 
that she is free from every stain of sin " per gratiam 
ab omni integra labe peccati" (23). St. Augustine's 
comment is well known: "The honour of the Lord 
does not permit that the question of sin be raised in 
connection with the Blessed Virgin Mary " (24). If 
however the question be put to the saints " Are you 
sinless?" he affirms that they will answer with the 
Apostle St. John (I John, i, 8): "If we say that we 
have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the truth is 
not in us." There are two other texts which seem 
to show that St. Augustine meant his words to be 
understood in the sense of the Immaculate Concep- 
tion (25). Many other texts of the Fathers will be 
found in the works of Passaglia (26), Palmieri (27) 
and Le Bachelet (28). 

It should not be forgotten that the Feast of the 
Conception of the Blessed Virgin Mary has been 
celebrated in the Church, especially in the Greek 
Church, since the 7th and 8th centuries. The same 
Feast is found in Sicily in the 9th, in Ireland in the 
10th, and almost everywhere in Europe in the 12th 
century. 

The Lateran Council, held in the year 649 (Denz., 
256) calls Mary "Immaculate." In 1476 and 1483 
Pope Sixtus rv speaks favourably of the privilege in 
connection with the Feast of the Conception of 
Mary (Denz., 734 sqq.). The Council .of Trent 
(Denz., 792) declares, when speaking of original 
sin which infects all men, that it does not intend to 

(23) In Ps. CXVIII, 22. 30: P. L., II, 782. 

(24) De natura et gratia, XXXVI, 42; P. L., XLIV. 267. 

(25) Contra Julianum pelagianum, V, xv, 57; P.L., XLIV. 
815; Opus imperf. contra Julianum, IV, cxxii; P. L., XLV, 1418. 

(26) De immaculatae Deiparae conceptu. 

(27) Thesis 88. 

(28) Diet. Apol., art. Marie, Immac. Concept., col. 210-275. 



THE PRIVILEGE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION 



61 



include the Blessed and Immaculate Virgin Mary. 
In 1567 Baius is condemned for having taught the 
contrary (Denz., 1073). In 1661 Alexander VII 
affirmed the privilege, saying that almost all 
Catholics held it, though it had not yet been de- 
fined (Denz., 1100). Finally, on December 8th, 1854, 
we have the promulgation of the solemn definition 
(Denz., 1641). 

It must be admitted that in the 12th and 13th 
centuries certain great doctors, as, for example, St. 
Bernard (29), St. Anselm (30), Peter Lombard (31), 
Hugh of St. Victor (32), St. Albert the Great (33), St. 
Bonaventure (34) and St. Thomas Aquinas appear to 
have been disinclined to admit the privilege. But this 
was because they did not consider the precise' instant 
of Mary's animation, or of the creation of her soul, 
and also because they did not distinguish, with the 
help of the idea of preservative redemption, between 
the debt to contract the hereditary stain and its ac- 
tual contraction. In other words, they did not always 
distinguish sufficiently between " debebat contra- 
here" and "contraxit peccatum." We shall see 
later that there were three stages in St. Thomas's 
doctrine and that though he appears to deny the 
Immaculate Conception in the second, he admits it 
in the first, and probably in the third also. 



'29) Epist. ad canonicos Lugdunenses. 

(30) De conceptione virginali. 

(31) In /// Sent, dist. 3. 

(32) Super Missus est. 

(33) Item Super Missus est. 

(34) In III Sent, dist. 3, q.27. 



32 



THE DIVINE MATERNITY: ITS EMINENT DIGNITY 



Theological Reasons for Admitting the 
Immaculate Conception 

The principal argument ex convenientia, or from 
becomingness, for the Immaculate Conception, is an 
elaboration of the one which St. Thomas (Ilia, q.27, 
a.l) and others give for Mary's sanctification in her 
mother's womb before birth. "It is reasonable to 
believe that she who gave birth to the Only-begotten 
of the Father, full of grace and truth, received 
greater privileges of grace than all others ... We 
find however that to some the privilege of sanctifica- 
tion in their mother's womb has been granted, as 
for example to Jeremias . . . and John the Baptist 
Hence it is reasonable to believe that the 
Blessed Virgin was sanctified before birth." 
In a.5 of the same question we read also: 
"The nearer one approaches to the source of all 
grace the more grace one receives; but Mary came 
nearest of all to Christ, Who is the principle of 
grace" (35). 

But this argument ex convenientia needs to oe 
expanded before it will prove the Immaculate Con- 
ception. 

It is Scotus's glory (Thomists should consider it a 
point of honour to admit that their adversary was 
right in this matter) to have shown the supreme 
becomingness of this privilege in answer to the fol- 
lowing difficulty which St. Thomas and many other 
theologians put forward: Christ is the universal 
Redeemer of all men without exception (Rom. iii, 23; 
v, 12, 19; Gal. iii, 22; n Cor. v, 14; I Tim. ii, 16); 
but if Mary did not contract original sin she would 
not have been redeemed; hence, since she was re- 
deemed, she must have contracted original sin. 

(35) Ilia, q.27, a.5. 



THE PRIVILEGE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION 



63 



Duns Scotus answers this objection (36) by refer- 
ring to the idea of a redemption which is preserva- 
tive, not liberative. He shows how reasonable this 
idea is, and in some places at least does not link it 
up with his peculiar doctrine concerning the motive 
of the Incarnation, so that it can be admitted inde- 
pendently of what one thinks about the second 
matter. 

This is his line of argument. 

It is becoming that a perfect Redeemer should 
make use of a sovereign mode of redemption, at 
least in regard to the person of His Mother who was 
to be associated more closely with Him than anyone 
else in the work of salvation. But the sovereign 
mode of redemption is not that which liberates from 
a stain already contracted, but that which preserves 
from all stain, just as he who wards off a blow from 
another saves him more than if he were simply to 
heal a wound that has been inflicted. Hence it was 
most becoming that the perfect Redeemer should, 
by His merits, preserve His Mother from original sin 
and all actual sin. This argument can be found in 
rmbryo in Eadmer (37). 

The Bull Ineffabilis gives this argument, in a 
•somewhat different form, along with others. For 
example, it states that the honour and dishonour 
alike of parents affect their children, and that is 
was not becoming that the perfect Redeemer should 
have a mother who was conceived in sin. Also, just 
us the Word proceeds eternally from a most holy 
Father, it was becoming that He should be born on 

(36) In 111 Sent., dist. Ill, q.l, (Edit. Quaracchi): edit Vives 
IV. 159; and Reportata, L III, dist. Ill, q.l, edit. Vives, XXIII, 

(37) Tractatus de Conceptione sanctae Marine; P. L., CLIX. 
101 318. Eadmer, a disciple of St. Anselm, began in the 12th 
ci-ritury to synthesise the elements of the Greek tradition. 



64 THE divine maternity: its eminent dignity 

earth of a mother to whom the splendour of sanc- 
tity had never been lacking. Finally, in order that 
Mary should be able to repair the effects of Eve's 
fall, overcome the wiles of the devil, and give super- 
natural life to all, with, by, and in Christ, it was 
becoming that she herself should never have been 
in a fallen condition, a slave to sin and the devil. 

If it be objected that Christ alone is immaculate, 
it is easy to answer: Christ alone is immaculate of 
Himself, and by the double title of His Hypostatic 
Union and His virginal conception; Mary is im- 
maculate through the merits of her Son. 

® 

The consequences of the Immaculate Conception 
have been developed by the great spiritual writers. 
Mary has been preserved from the two baneful fruits 
of original sin, concupiscence and darkness of 
understanding. 

Since the definition of the Immaculate Concep- 
tion we are obliged to hold that concupiscence has 
been not only bound, or restrained, in Mary from the 
time she was in her mother's womb, but even that 
she was never in any sense its subject. There could 
be no disordered movement of her sensitive nature, 
no escape of her sensibility from the previous con- 
trol of reason and will. Her sensibility was always 
fully subject to her rational powers, and thereby to 
God's Will, as obtained in the state of original inno- 
cence. Thus Mary is virgin of virgins, most pure, 
"inviolata, intemerata," tower of ivory, most pure 
mirror of God. 

Similarly, Mary was never subject to error or 
illusion. Her judgment was always enlightened and 
correct. If she did not understand a thing fully 



THE PRIVILEGE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION 



05 



she suspended her judgment upon it, and thus 
avoided the precipitation which might have been the 
cause of error. She is, as the Litanies say, the Seat 
of Wisdom, the Queen of Doctors, the Virgin most 
prudent, the Mother of good counsel. All theo- 
logians realise that nature spoke more eloquently to 
her of the Creator than to the greatest poets. She 
had, too, an eminent and wonderfully simple know- 
ledge of what the Scriptures said of the Messiah, the 
Incarnation, and the Redemption. Thus she was 
fully exempt from concupiscence and error. 

m 

But why did the Immaculate Conception not make 
Mary immune from pain and death since they too 
were consequences of original sin? 

It should be noted that the pain and death which 
Jesus and Mary knew were not consequences of 
original sin as they are for us. For Jesus and Mary 
they were consequences of but human nature, which, 
of itself, and like the animal nature in general, is 
.subject to pain and death of the body: it was only 
because of a special privilege that Adam had been 
exempt from them in the state of innocence. As 
for Jesus, He was conceived virginally in passible 
llesh in order to redeem us by dying, and when the 
lime came He accepted suffering and death, its con- 
summation, freely for love of us. Mary, for her 
part, accepted suffering and death voluntarily in 
imitation of Him and to unite herself to Him; she 
was one with Him in His expiation and in His work 
of redemption. 

There is one wonderful thing, one delight of con- 
templatives, which we should not overlook. It is 
that the privilege of the Immaculate Conception and 

E 



66 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



the fulness of grace did not withdraw Mary from 
pain, but rather made her all the more sensitive to 
suffer from contact with sin, the greatest of evils. 
Precisely because she was so pure, precisely because 
her heart was consumed by the love of God, Mary 
suffered pains to which our imperfection makes us 
insensible. We suffer if our self-love is wounded, 
or our pride, or our susceptibilities. Mary, however, 
suffered from sin, and that in the measure of her 
love of God Whom sin offends, and her love of Her 
Son Whom sin crucifies; she suffered in the measure 
of her love of us, whom sin wounds and kills. Thus 
the Immaculate Conception increased Mary's suffer- 
ings and disposed her to bear them heroically. Not 
one of them did she squander. All passed through 
her hands in union with those of Her Son, thus to 
be offered up for our salvation. 

® 

St. Thomas and the Immaculate Conception 

As certain commentators have suggested, three 
periods may be distinguished in St. Thomas's 
teaching. 

In the first— that of 1253-1254, the beginning of 
his theological career — he supports the privilege, 
probably because of the liturgical tradition which 
favoured it, as well as because of his pious admira- 
tion for the perfect holiness of the Mother of God. 
It is in this period that he wrote (I Sent., d.44, q.l, 
a.3, ad 3): "Purity is increased by withdrawing 
from its opposite: hence there can be a creature 
than whom no more pure is possible in creation, if it 
be free from all contagion of sin: and such was 
the purity of the Blessed Virgin who was immune 



THE PRIVILEGE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION 



67 



from original and actual sin." This text states 
therefore that Mary was so pure as to be exempt 
from all original and actual sin. 

During the second period St. Thomas, seeing bet- 
ter the difficulties in the question — for the theo- 
logians of his time held that Mary was immaculate 
Independently of Christ's merits— hesitated, and re- 
fused to commit himself. He, of course, held that 
all men without exception are redeemed by one 
Saviour (Rom., iii, 23; v, 12, 19; Gal. iii., 22; II Cor., 
v, 14; I Tim., ii, 6). Hence we find him proposing 
the question thus in Ilia, q.27, a.2: Was the Blessed 
Virgin sanctified in the conception of her body be- 
fore its animation? for, according to him and many 
other theologians, the conception of the body was to 
be distinguished from the animation, or creation of 
the soul. This latter (called to-day the consum- 
mated passive conception) was thought to be about 
a month later in time than the initial conception. 

The holy doctor mentions certain arguments at the 
beginning of the article which favour the Immacu- 
late Conception — even taking conception to be that 
which precedes animation. He then answers them 
as follows: "There are two reasons why the sancti- 
lication of the Blessed Virgin cannot have taken 
place before her animation: 1st — the sanctification 
In question is cleansing from original sin . . . but 
the guilt of sin can be removed only by grace (which 
has as object the soul itself) . . . 2nd — If the 
Blessed Virgin had been sanctified before animation 
she would never have incurred the stain of original 
sin and would therefore never have stood in need 
of redemption by Christ . . . But this may not be 
admitted, since Christ is Head of all men (I Tim. 
U, 6)." 

Even had he written after the definition of 1854 



68 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



St. Thomas could have said that Mary was not 
sanctified before animation. However he goes fur- 
ther than that here, for he adds at the end of the 
article: "Hence it follows that the sanctification 
of the Blessed Virgin took place after her anima- 
tion." Nor does he distinguish, as he does in many 
other contexts, between posteriority in nature and 
posteriority in time. In the answer to the second 
objection he even states that the Blessed Virgin 
"contracted original sin" (38). However, it must 
be recognised that the whole point of his argument 
is to show that Mary incurred the debt of original 
sin since she descended from Adam by way of 
natural generation. Unfortunately he did not dis- 
tinguish sufficiently the debt from actually incur- 
ring the stain. 

Regarding the question of the exact moment at 
which Mary was sanctified in the womb of her 
mother, St. Thomas does not make any definite pro- 
nouncement. He states that it followed close on 
animation — cito post are his words in Quodl. VI, a.7: 
But he believes that nothing more precise can be 
said: "the time of her sanctification is unknown" 
(Ilia, q.27, a.2, ad 3). 

St. Thomas does not consider in the Summa if 
Mary was sanctified in the very instant of anima- 
tion. St. Bonaventure had put himself that ques- 
tion and had answered it in the negative. It is 
possible that St. Thomas's silence was inspired by 
the reserved attitude of the Roman Church which, 
unlike so many other Churches, did not celebrate 
the Feast of the Conception (cf. ibid., ad 3). This 
is the explanation proposed by Fr. N. del Prado, O.P., 

(38) On the basis of these texts many commentators hold 
that St. Thomas denied the Immaculate Conception. This is 
the opinion of Fr. Le Bachelet, Diet. Thiol., art. Immacutte 
Conception, cols. 1050-1054. 



THE PRIVILEGE OF THE IMMACULATE CONCEPTION 69 

in Santo Tomas y la Immaculada, Vergara, 1909, by 
Fr. Mandonnet, O.P., Diet. Theol. Cath., art. Frezes 
Precheurs, col. 899, and by Fr. Hugon, O.P., Tractatus 
Dogmatici, t. II, ed. 5, 1927, p. 749. For these 
authors the thought of the holy doctor in this second 
period of his professional career was that expressed 
long afterwards by Gregory XV in his letters of July 
4th, 1622: "Spiritus Sanctus nondum tanti mysterii 
arcanum Ecclesiae suae patefecit." 

The texts we have considered so far do not there- 
fore imply any contradiction of the dogma of the 
Immaculate Conception. They could even be retained 
If the idea of preservative redemption were intro- 
duced. There is however one text which cannot be 
so easily explained away. In /// Sent., dist. ni, q.l, 
a.l, ad 2am qm we read: "Nor (did it happen) even 
in the instant of infusion of the soul, namely, by 
grace being then given her so as to preserve her from 
incurring the original fault. Christ alone among 
men has the privilege of not needing redemption." 
Frs. del Prado and Hugon explain this text as fol- 
lows: The meaning of St. Thomas's words may be 
that the Blessed Virgin was not preserved from 
original sin in such a way as not to incur its debt, 
as that would mean not to stand in need of redemp- 
tion. However, one could have expected to find in 
the text itself the explicit distinction beween the 
debt and the fact of incurring the stain. 

In the final period of his career, when writing the 
Exposito super salutatione angelica — which is cer- 
tainly authentic (39)— in 1272 or 1273, St. Thomas 
expressed himself thus: "For she (the Blessed 
Virgin) was most pure in the matter of! fault 
(quantum ad culpam) and incurred neither original 

(39) Cf. Mandonnet: S. Th. Aq. opuscula omnia, Parisiis 1927. 
t. I, Introduction, pp. xix-xxii. 



70 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



nor mortal nor venial sin." Cf. J. F. Rossi, CM., 
S. Thomae Aquinatis Expositio salutationis angelicae, 
Introductio et textus. Divus Thomas (PI.), 1931, 
pp. 445-479 (40). In this critical edition of the 
Commentary on the Ave Maria, it is stated, pp. 11-15, 
that the passage quoted just now is found in sixteen 
manuscripts out of nineteen consulted by the author, 
who concludes that it ia authentic. He gives photo- 
graphs of the principal manuscripts in an appendix. 
Let us hope that the same conscientious work will 
be performed on the other opuscula of St. Thomas! 
(41) 

In spite of the objection raised by Fr. P. Synave 
(42) the text appears to be authentic. If it is, then 
St. Thomas returned towards the end of his life- 
moved, we may believe by his love of the Mother of 
God — to the position he had adopted when he 
affirmed the Immaculate Conception in his Com- 
mentary on the Sentences. Nor is the text we are 
considering the only indication of such a return (43). 

(40) Off-print, Piacenza, Collegio Alberoni, 1931. Monografie 
del Collegio Alberoni. 

(41) The objection was raised in the Bulletin Thomiste of 
July-December 1932, p. (579) that we read in the same opus- 
culum a little earlier: "Ipsa (Virgo) omne peccatum vitavit 
magis quam alius sanctus, praeter Christum. Peccatum enim 
aut est originale, et de isto fuit mundata in utero; aut mortale 

aut veniale, et de istis libera fuit Sed Christus excellit 

Beatam Virginem in hoc quod sine originali conceptus et natus 
fuit. Beata autem Virgo in originali concepta sed non nata." 
Does this text contradict the other one which occurs a few 
lines later? It is highly improbable that St. Thomas would 
contradict himself in the space of a few lines. The difficulty 
vanishes if one recalls that on St. Thomas's view the concep- 
tion of the body and the beginning of the evolution of the 
embryo preceded by a month at least the animation (or 
consummated passive conception) before which the person did 
not exist since there was as yet no rational soul. 

(42) Bulletin Thomiste, Loc. cit. 

(43) In the Compendium Theologiae, written at Naples in 
1272-1273, and interrupted by his death. St. Thomas wrote 
(ch. 224): "Nec solum a peccato actuall immunis fuit (B. 



WAS MARY EXEMPT FROM EVERY FAULT, EVEN VENIAL? 71 



Such an evolution of doctrine is not rare among 
theologians. At first they propose a thesis which 
they accept from tradition without seeing all its 
difficulties. Later reflection leads them to adopt a 
more reserved attitude. Finally they return to their 
first position, realising that God is more bounteous 
in His gifts than we can understand and that we 
should not set limits to Him without good reason. 
In the case of St. Thomas, we have seen that the 
reasons he invoked against the privilege are not 
conclusive, and that they even support it when con- 
sidered in the light of the idea of preservative re- 
demption (44). 



Article III 



Was Mary Exempt From Every Fault, Even Venial? 



The Council of Trent (45) has defined that "after 
his justification a man cannot avoid, during the 



Maria Virgo) sed etiam ab originali, speciali privU.egio jnundata 
... Est ergo tenendum quod cum peccato originali concepta 
fuit, sed ab eo, quodam speciali modo, purgata fuit." But he 
could not have spoken here of a special privilege If he meant 
merely that Mary had been purified in the womb of her 
mother after animation as were Jeremias and John the 
Baptist. 

In other places too St. Thomas declares Mary immune from 
original sin: Epis. ad Galat., ill, 16, lect. 6 "excipitur purissima 
et omni laude dignissima"; similarly in Exposit. in Orat. 
Domini, petitio Va, " Plena gratia, in qua nullum peccatum 
l'uit"; in Psalm xviii, 6 "Quae nullam habuit obscuritatem 
peccati." 

(44) Recently, Fr. J. M. Voste. O.P., in his Commentarius in 
Illam P. Summae theol. S. Thomae (in q.27, a.2). 2nd edit., 
Rome, 1940, has accepted Fr. Rossi's thesis that St. Thomas 
returned at the end of his career to the position he had 
adopted at the beginning. This view is at least seriously 
probable. 

(45) Sess. VI, Can. 23; Denz., 833. 



72 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



whole course of his life, every venial sin, without a 
special privilege such as the Church recognises was 
conferred on the Blessed Virgin." The soul in the 
state of grace can therefore avoid any venial sin 
considered separately, but cannot avoid all venial sins 
taken together by keeping itself always free from 
them. Mary however avoided all sin, even the least 
grave. St. Augustine affirms that "for the honour 
of her Son Who came to remit the sins of the world, 
Mary is never included when there is question of 
sin" (46). The Fathers and theologians consider, 
to judge from their manner of speaking, that she is 
free even from every voluntary imperfection, for, 
according to them, she never failed in promptness to 
obey a divine inspiration given by way of counsel. 
Though a minor lack of generosity is not a venial 
sin, but simply a lesser good, or an imperfection, not 
even so slight a shortcoming was found in Mary. 
She never elicited an imperfect (remissus) act of 
charity, that is to say, one that fell short in inten- 
sity of the degree in which she possessed the virtue. 

St. Thomas gives the reason for this special privi- 
lege when he says: "God prepares and disposes 
those whom He has chosen for a special purpose in 
such a way as to make them capable of performing 
that for which He selected them " (47). In that God 
differs from men, who sometimes choose incapable 
or mediocre candidates for important posts. " Thus," 
continues St. Thomas, " St. Paul says of the Apostles 
(n Cor., iii, 6), ' It is God Who has made us fit minis- 
ters of the new testament, not in the letter, but in 
the spirit.' But the Blessed Virgin was divinely 
chosen to be the Mother of God (that is to say, she 
was predestined from all eternity for the divine 
maternity). Hence, it cannot be doubted that God 

(46) De natura et gratia, ch. xxxvi. 

(47) Ilia, q.27. a.4. 



WAS MARY EXEMPT FROM EVERY FAULT, EVEN VENIAL? 73 



fitted her by grace for her mission, according to the 
words spoken her by the angel (Luke i, 30): 'Thou 
hast found grace with God. Thou shalt conceive in 
thy womb, and shalt bring forth a son; and thou 
shalt call his name Jesus.' But Mary would not have 
been a worthy Mother of God had she ever sinned, 
for the honour and dishonour of parents is reflected 
on the children according to the words of the Book 
of Proverbs : ' The glory of children are their 
fathers.' Besides, Mary had a special affinity to 
Jesus, from Whom she took flesh, but ' What concord 
hath Christ with Belial?' (II Cor. vi, 15). Finally, 
the Son of God, Who is Divine Wisdom, inhabited 
Mary in a very special manner, not in her soul only 
but in her womb also; and it is said (Wisdom i, 4): 
'Wisdom will not enter into a malicious soul, nor 
dwell in a body subject to sins.' Hence it must be 
said without any reservation that the Blessed Virgin 
committed no sin, mortal or venial, so that the 
words of the Canticle of Canticles are fully verified 
in her regard (Cant, iv, 7): 'Thou art all fair, my 
love, and there is not a spot in thee '." 

Mary had therefore impeccantia (the term is 
parallel to inerrantia) or freedom from sin, and even 
impeccability. Her title to these endowments is not 
however the same as her Son's. In her case it was 
a matter of preservation from every sin through a 
special privilege (48). This privilege includes first 
of all a very high degree of habitual grace and 
charity, which gives the soul a strong inclination to 
the act of love of God and withdraws it from sin. 

(48) Our Blessed Lord has absolute Impeccability under three 
titles: by reason of His Divine Personality: by reason of the 
beatific vision which He had in a permanent way since His 
conception; by reason of the absolute and inalienable fulness 
of grace and charity, the fervour of which could not diminish. 
Besides, He always received efficacious grace. 



74 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



It includes also confirmation in grace, which when 
granted to a saint is had normally through an in- 
crease of charity, especially that proper to the state 
of transforming union, and an increase of actual 
efficacious graces which preserve the soul de facto 
from sin and move it to ever more meritorious acts. 
Thus Mary enjoyed a special assistance of Divine 
Providence. This assistance — more effective than 
even that which belonged to the state of innocence — 
preserved all her faculties from faults, and kept her 
soul in a state of the most complete generosity. Just 
as confirmation in grace is an effect of the predestina- 
tion of the saints, so this preservative assistance 
granted to Mary was an effect of her peculiar 
predestination. Far from diminishing her liberty or 
free will, the effect of this preservation from sin was 
to confer on her full liberty in the order of moral 
goodness, with no inclination to evil (just as her mind 
never tended to error). Hence her liberty, following 
the example of that of Jesus, was a faithful and most 
pure image of God's liberty, which is at once sovereign 
and incapable of sin. 

If human masterpieces of art, in architecture, 
painting and music, and if the precision instruments 
produced by human skill all reach such perfection, 
what must not be the perfection of God's master- 
pieces? And among these, if the works of the natural 
order are so perfect — the majesty of the ocean and 
the high mountains, the structure of the eye and ear, 
the human mind and the mind of the angels — how 
perfect must not the works of the supernatural order 
be, among which so remarkable a place is held by the 
soul of Mary which was adorned with every choice 
gift from the first moment of her existence? 



WAS MARY EXEMPT FROM EVERY FAULT, EVEN VENIAL? 75 



Note. 



The distinction between imperfection and nenial sin 

The problem (49) has been taken from its proper context by 
the casuists. It is one which concerns interior souls, advanced 
in the spiritual life, and careful to avoid every more or less 
venial sin. Those who consider the problem in relation to 
less advanced souls run the risk of taking for imperfection 
what is really a venial sin. 

At one time the problem was closely associated with another 
one: is it possible to commit no more than a simple imperfec- 
tion by resisting a religious vocation? The answer ordinarily 
given to this question is that though the religious vocation 
does not oblige under pain of sin, sin is always involved in 
rejecting it for the reason that religion is a way of life that 
embraces the whole of life, and the other ways of life, being 
less safe than it, are never chosen in preference to it except 
through some inordinate attachment to the things of this 
world, as is seen in the example of the rich man in the Gospel. 
Thus, the rejection of a vocation involves an inordinate 
attachment (which is forbidden by divine precept) and not 
only a lack of generosity. 

To see the problem of an imperfection as distinct from a 
venial sin in its proper perspective, it must be viewed in its 
relation to very generous souls, and still more in relation to 
the impeccability of Christ and the sinlessness Qf Mary. Here 
we may ask: Was there any voluntary imperfection in the 
lives of Jesus and Mary? The question is obviously a most 
delicate one. 

The answer usually given to this problem is that there was 
never any imperfection, however slightly voluntary, in the 
lives of Jesus and Mary, for they never failed in their prompt 
obedience to every divine inspiration given by way of counsel. 
But if there had been any lack of promptitude, it would have 
been a mere lack of generosity, not a moral disorder in the 
strict sense of the term, as is an inordinate attachment to 
the things of this world. 

As regards interior souls, it may be said that as long as they 
have not taken the vow of always doing the most perfect 
thing, they are not bound under pain of venial sin to act 
always with the maximum of generosity possible to them at 
any given instant. (50) It is becoming, however, that those 
more advanced should, without binding themselves by vow, 
promise the Blessed Virgin always to do what will appear to 
them evidently the most perfect in any given circumstance. 

(49) I have treated it at length in L' Amour de Dieu et la 
Croix de Je~siis, t. I, pp. 360-390. 

(50) Strictly speaking, a counsel obliges only when one 
would offend against a precept by not obeying it. Cf. Ha Ilae, 
q.124, a.3, ad 1. 



76 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



® 

Article IV 

The Perfection of Mary's First Grace 

The habitual grace which the Blessed Virgin re- 
ceived at the instant of the creation of her holy soul 
was a fulness or plenitude to which the words of the 
angel on the Annunciation day might have been 
applied " Hail, full of grace." This 'is what Pius IX 
affirms when he defines the dogma of the Immacu- 
late Conception. He even says that, from the first 
instant, Mary " was loved by God more that all 
creatures (prae creaturis universis), that He found 
most extreme pleasure in her, and that He loaded her 
in a wonderful way with His graces, more than all the 
angels and saints " (51). Many texts might be quoted 
from tradition to the same effect (52). 

St. Thomas explains the reason of this plenitude 
of grace when he says (53): "The nearer one ap- 
proaches to a principle (of truth and life) the more 
one participates in its effects. That is why St. Denis 
affirms (De caelestia hierarchia) that the angels, who 

(51) Ineffabilis Deus ... ab initio et ante saecula unigenito 
Alio suo Matrem, ex quo caro factus in beata temporum pleni- 
tudine nasceretur elegit atque o'rdinavit, tantoque prae 
creaturis universis est prosecutus amore, ut in Ula una sibi 
propensissima voluntate complacuerit. Quapropter Ulam longe 
ante omnes angelicos Spiritus, cunciosque Sanctos caelestium 
omnium charismatum copia de thesauro Divinitatis deprompta 
ita nitrifies cumulavit ut ipsa ab omni prorsus peccati labe 
semper libera ac tota pulchra et perfecta earn innocentiae et 
sanctitatis plenitudinem prae se ferret, qua maior sub Deo 
nullatenus intelligitur, et quam praeter Deum nemo assequi 
cogitando potest. 

(52) Cf. Terrien. La Mire de Dieu, t.II, l.VII, pp. 191-234; 
De la Broise, S.J., La Sainte Vierge, chs. II and XII; Diet. 
Apol. art. Marie, cols. 207 sqq. 

(53) Ilia, q.27, a.5. 



THE PERFECTION OF MARY'S FIRST GRACE 



77 



are nearer to God than man is, participate more in 
His favours. But Christ is the principle of the life of 
grace; as God He is its principal cause and as Man 
(having first merited it for us) He communicates it to 
us, for His humanity is, as it were, an instrument 
always united to the Divinity : ' Grace and truth 
came by Jesus Christ ' (John i, 17). The Blessed 
Virgin Mary, being nearer to Christ than any other 
human being, since it is from her that He received 
His humanity, receives from Him therefore a fulness 
of grace surpassing that of all other creatures." 

It is true that St. John the Baptist and Jeremias 
were sanctified, according to the testimony of Sacred 
Scripture, in their mother's womb, without, however, 
being preserved from original sin. But Mary received 
grace from the very first instant in a degree far ex- 
celling theirs, and received as well the privilege of 
being preserved from every fault — even venial — a 
privilege we find accorded to no other saint (54). 

In his Expositio super salutatione angelica St. 
Thomas describes Mary's plenitude of grace (and his 
words are applicable to the initial plenitude) in terms 
of which the following is a summary : 

Though the angels do not manifest special respect 
for men, being their superiors by nature and living 
in holy intimacy with God, yet the Archangel Gabriel 
when saluting Mary, showed himself full of venera- 
tion for her. He understood that she was far above 
him through her fulness of grace, her intimacy with 
God, and her perfect purity. 

a) She had received fulness of grace under three 
respects. First, so as to avoid every sin, however 
slight, and to practise all the virtues in an eminent 
degree. Secondly, so as to overflow from her soul 



(54) Cf. Ibid., a.6, ad 1. 



78 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



upon her body and prepare her to receive the In- 
carnate Son of God. Thirdly, so as to overflow upon 
all men (55) and to aid them in the practice of all 
the virtues. 

b) Further, she surpassed the angels in her holy 
familiarity with the Most High. On that account, 
Gabriel saluted her saying: " The Lord is with thee." 
It was as if he said : " You are more intimate with 
God than I. He is about to become your Son, whereas 
I am but His servant." In truth, Mary, as Mother of 
God, is more intimate with the Father, Son and Holy 
Ghost, than are the angels. 

c) Finally, she surpassed the angels in purity, even 
though they are pure spirits, for she was both pure 
in herself and the source of purity to others. Not 
only was she exempt from original sin (56) and from 
all mortal and venial sin, but she escaped the curse 
due to sin, namely, " In sorrow shalt thou bring forth 
children . . . into dust thou shalt return " (Gen. hi, 
16, 19). She will conceive the Son of God without 
loss to her virginity, she will bear Him in holy recol- 
lection, she will bring Him forth in joy, she will be 
preserved from the corruption of the tomb and will 
be associated by her Assumption with the Ascension 
of the Saviour. 

Already she is blessed among women, for she alone, 
with and through her Son, will lift the curse which 
descended on the human race, and will bring us 
blessings by opening the gates of heaven. That is 
why she is called the Star of the Sea, guiding 
Christians to the harbour of eternity. 

Elisabeth will say to her : " Blessed is the fruit of 

(55) Theologians commonly hold that Mary merited for us 
with a merit of becomingness (de congruo) all that Christ 
merited in strict justice (de condigno). 

(56) This is the text we have quoted on p. 69. 



THE PERFECTION OF MARY'S FIRST GRACE 



79 



thy womb." Whereas the sinner looks for that which 
he cannot find in the object of his sinful desires, the 
just finds everything in what he desires holily. From 
this point of view, the fruit of the womb of Mary will 
be thrice blessed. 

a) Eve desired the forbidden fruit, so as to have 
the knowledge of good and evil, and thereby to be- 
come independent and free from the yoke of 
obedience. She was deceived by the lying promise 
" You will be as God," for far from becoming like 
God, she was turned away from Him. Mary, on the 
contrary, found all things in the blessed fruit of her 
womb. In Him she found God, and she will lead us 
to find God in Him. 

b) By yielding to the temptation, Eve sought joy 
and found sadness. Mary, on the contrary, found 
joy and salvation for herself and us in her Divine Son. 

c) Finally, the fruit sought by Eve had beauty only 
for the senses, whereas the fruit of Mary's womb is 
the splendour, the eternal and spiritual glory of the 
Father. Mary is blessed herself, and still more 
blessed in her Son, Who has brought all men blessing 
and salvation. 

The preceding is a synopsis of what St. Thomas has 
to say of Mary's fulness of grace in his commentary 
on the Hail Mary. He has in mind most of all the 
fulness of the Annunciation day. But what he says is 
applicable also to her initial fulness, just as what is 
said of the stream is applicable also to its source. 

© 

Mary's Initial Grace compared 
with that of the Saints 

It has been asked if Mary's initial grace was 
greater than the final grace of the greatest of angels 



80 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



and men, or even than the final grace of all angels 
and men taken together. The question is usually 
understood not of the final and consummated grace 
of heaven, but of the grace which is final in the sense 
that it immediately preceded entry into glory (57). 

As for the first part of the question, theologians 
commonly hold that Mary's initial grace was greater 
than the final grace of the highest of angels and men. 
This is the teaching, for example, of St. John 
Damascene (58), Suarez (59), Justin of Miechow, O.P. 
(60), Contenson (61), St. Alphonsus (62), Fathers 
Terrien (63), Godts, Hugon, Merkelbach, etc. To-day, 
all text-books of Mariology are unanimous in con- 
sidering this teaching certain. It can even be found 
expressed by Pius IX in the Bull IneffaUlis Deus in 
the passage we have quoted already. The principal 
argument in favour of this teaching is arrived at 
from a consideration of the divine maternity, which 
is the reason for all the privileges conferred on Mary. 
There are two ways of outlining it: from the point of 
view of the end to which Mary's initial grace was 
ordained, and from the point of view of the divine 
love which was its cause. 

Mary's initial grace was given her as a worthy 

(57) Theologians commonly teach that the consummated 
grace of Mary in heaven is higher than that of angels and 
saints combined; also that the final grace of Mary at the 
moment of death, and even her grace at the moment of the 
Incarnation, surpassed the final grace of all the saints at the 
term of their earthly lives. The question under discussion 
here is whether or not the same may be said of Mary s initial 
fulness of grace. We know, of course, that the degree of glory 
of the saints in heaven corresponds to the degree of grace and 
charity which they had before entry there. 

(58) Orat. de Nativitate Virginis P. G., XCVI, 648 sqq. 

(59) De mysteriis vitae Christi, disp. IV, sect. I. 

(60) Collat. suver litanias B. Mariae Virainis, col. 134. 

(61) Theol. mentis et cordis, 1. X, diss. VI, c. I. 

(62) Glorie di Maria, He P., disc. 2. 

(63) La Mere de Dieu, t. I. 



THE PERFECTION OF MARY'S FIRST GRACE 81 

preparation for the divine motherhood — to prepare 
her to be a worthy Mother of the Saviour, said St. 
Thomas (Ilia, q.27, a.5, ad 2). But even the con- 
summated grace of the other saints is not a worthy 
preparation for the divine maternity, for it pertains 
to the hypostatic order. Hence the first grace of Mary 
surpasses the consummated grace of the other saints. 
Pious authors express this truth by taking in an 
accommodated sense the words of Psalm lxxxvi " The 
foundations thereof are in the holy mountains." They 
say that the summit of the perfection of the other 
saints is not as yet the beginning of the perfection of 
Mary. 

The same conclusion is reached by considering the 
uncreated love of God for the Blessed Virgin. Since 
grace is the effect of the active love of God which 
makes us pleasing in His eyes as adoptive children, 
the more a person is loved by God the more grace he 
receives. But Mary, since she was to be the Mother 
of God, was more loved by Him in the first instant of 
her being than any angel or saint. Hence she re- 
ceived from the first instant a greater gift of grace 
than any of them, however favoured. 

® 

Was Mary's First Grace higher than the Final 
Grace of all the Angels and 
Saints taken together? 

A number of theologians, both ancient and modern, 
have answered this question in the negative (64). 
However, the affirmative answer, which is given by 

(64) Theophile Raynaud, Terrien, and Lepicier, admit it only 
In regard to Mary's final grace. Others, like Valentia, admit 
It for the grace of her second sanctiflcation at the time of the 
Incarnation. However, most theologians join St. Alphonsus 



82 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



Ch. Vega, Contenson, St. Alphonsus, Godts, 
Monsabr6, Billot, Sinibaldi, Hugon, L. Janssens, 
Merkelbach and others, is at least probable. 

For it there is, first of all, the argument from 
authority. Pius IX favours it in his Bull Ineffabilis 
Deus, when he says : " Deus ab initio . . . unigenito Alio 
suo Matrem ... elegit atque ordinavit, tan toque prae 
creaturis universis est prosecutus amore, ut in ilia 
una sibi propensissima voluntate complacuerit. 
Quapropter illam longe ante omnes angelicos Spiritus, 
cunctosque Sanctos coelestium omnium charismatum 
copia de thesauro Divinitatis deprompta ita mirifice 
cumulavit, ut ... earn innocentiae et sanctitatis pleni- 
tudinem prae se ferret, et qua major sub Deo nulla- 
tenus intelligitur, et quam praeter Deum nemo 
assequi cogitando potest." (This text is translated 
on page 30). Taken in their obvious sense all these 
expressions, especially the " cunctos sanctos," mean 
that Mary's grace surpassed that of all the saints 
together from the first instant mentioned in the text. 
If Pius IX wished to say that Mary's grace surpassed 
that of each angel and saint individually, he would 
have said "longe ante quemlibet sanctum et 
angelicum " rather than " longe ante omnes angeli- 
cos Spiritus cunctosque sanctos." Nor would he have 
said that God loved Mary above all creatures, " prae 
creaturis universis," and that He took greater delight 
in her alone, "ut in ilia una sibi propensissima 
voluntate complacuerit." It cannot be contended 
that in all this there is no question of the first instant 
of Mary's existence since Pius IX goes on to say, im- 
mediately after the passage just quoted, "Decebat 

in admitting it for her initial grace. Among these three 
opinions, the first two are certain; the third, as Fr. Merkelbach 
shows in his Mariol.ogia, 1939, pp. 178-181, is at least very 
probable. 



THE PERFECTION OF MARY'S FIRST GRACE 



83 



omnino ut beatissima Virgo Maria perfectissimae 
sanctatatis splendoribus semper ornata fulgeret." 

A little further on in the same Bull, we are told that, 
according to the Fathers, Mary is higher by grace 
than the Cherubim, the Seraphim, and the whole 
heavenly host (omni exercitu angelorum) — that is to 
say, all united. Though it is universally admitted 
that these words refer to Mary in heaven, it must yet 
be recalled that one's degree of heavenly glory is pro- 
portionate to the preceding grace or charity at the 
hour of death. And in the case of Mary, this latter 
was proportionate to her dignity as Mother of God, 
a dignity for which she had been prepared from the 
very first instant of existence. 

To the argument from the authority of the Bull 
Ineffabilis, two theological reasons can be added. 
They are based on the divine maternity, considered 
as the end towards which Mary's first grace was 
ordained and on the uncreated love which was its 
cause. As a help to grasping them, it is necessary to 
remark that even though grace is a quality and not 
a quantified thing, there are many to whom it is not 
at once evident that if Mary's first grace surpassed 
that of the highest of the saints, it must also surpass 
that of all angels and saints united. They say, for 
example, that though the eagle's vision is more acute 
than that of the most keen-sighted man, it does not 
follow that an eagle sees more than all men taken 
together. Of course, in this example an element of 
quantity — that is, of extension and distance— enters 
In, which is not found in the case of Mary's grace, so 
that it is really irrelevant. But, at the same time, it 
may be well to clarify the question still more. 

1st — Since Mary's first grace prepared her to be the 
worthy Mother of God, it must have been propor- 
tionate, at least remotely, to the divine maternity. 



I 



84 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

But the final consummated grace of all the saints 
together is not proportionate to the divine maternity, 
since it belongs to an inferior order. Hence the final 
consummated grace of all the saints united is less 
than the first grace received by Mary. 

This argument— even though not admitted by all 
theologians — seems to be quite conclusive. The objec- 
tion has been raised that Mary's first grace was not 
a proximate preparation for the divine maternity and 
hence was not necessarily of a different order from 
the grace of all the saints. To this it may be answered 
that, though not a proximate preparation, Mary's 
first grace was a worthy and proportionate prepara- 
tion, according to the teaching of St. Thomas (Ilia, 
q.27, a.5, ad 2) : " The first perfection of grace (was) 
as it were dispositive, making the Blessed Virgin 
worthy to become the Mother of Christ." But the 
consummated grace of all the saints united is not 
proportionate to the divine maternity, which is of the 
hypostatic order. The argument therefore retains 
its force. 

2nd— The person who is more loved by God than all 
creatures united receives grace surpassing theirs, for 
grace is the effect of uncreated love and is propor- 
tionate to it. As St. Thomas says (la, q.20, a.4) : " God 
loves one more than another by the fact that He wills 
him a higher good, for the divine will is the cause of 
the good that is in creatures." But God has loved 
Mary from all eternity more than all creatures united, 
as being she whom He was to prepare from the first 
instant of her conception to be the worthy Mother of 
the Saviour. In the words of Bossuet: "He always 
loved Mary as His Mother, and considered her as such 
from the moment she was conceived " (65). 

(65) Cf. E. publanchy, Diet. Thiol. Cath., art. Marie, col. 
2367: "The teaching of Pius IX in the Bull Ineffabilis Reus 



THE PERFECTION OF MARY'S FIRST GRACE 



35 



This does not, of course, exclude the possibility that 
Mary advanced in holiness, or grew in grace. For 
grace, being a participation in the divine nature, can 
always increase though still remaining finite; Mary's 
final fulness of grace is limited, while yet being so full 
as to overflow on all souls. 

To these two arguments, taken from the divine 
maternity, another may be added, which will become 
increasingly evident as we speak of Mary's universal 
mediation. It is that Mary could obtain by her merits 
and prayers — even on earth, and from the time when 
she could first merit and pray — more than all the 
saints together, for they obtain nothing except 
through her universal mediation. Mary is, as it 
were, the aqueduct which brings us grace; in the 
mystical body she is, as it were, the neck which joins 
the members with the Head. In short, from the time 
she could merit and pray, Mary could obtain more 
without the saints than they could without her. But 
merit corresponds in degree to charity and sanctify- 
ing grace. Hence Mary received from the beginning of 
her life a degree of grace superior to that which the 
saints and angels united had attained to before their 
entry into heaven. 

There are other indirect confirmations, or more or 
less close analogies. For example, a precious stone — 
a diamond — is worth more than a number of other 

resumes the argument upon which theological tradition has 
always relied: God's love of special predilection for Mary more 
than all other creatures, a love such that He made her alone 
the object of His greatest satisfaction, and gave her that 
which was dearest to Him, His own Son. And since it is the 
teaching of St. Thomas (la, q.20, a.3) that the good which God 
produces in creatures is proportioned to the love He has for 
them, it may be concluded with certainty that Mary, loved by 
God more than all creatures, has been the recipient of divine 
favours greater than those given to all creatures, taken even 
collectively. 



86 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



stones united; a saint like the Cure of Ars could do 
more by his prayers and merits than all his 
parishioners together; a founder of an order like St. 
Benedict surpasses all his first companions by the 
grace he has received, for without him they could 
not have made the foundation whereas, had they 
failed him, he could have enlisted others to take 
their place; the intellect of an archangel surpasses 
that of all inferior angels united; the intellectual 
worth of St. Thomas is greater than that of all his 
contemporaries; the power of a king is greater, not 
only than that of his prime minister, but also that of 
his ministers combined. 

Early theologians did not examine the question of 
the degree of Mary's first grace, but that is probably 
because its solution appeared evident to them. They 
taught, for example, at the end of the treatises on 
grace and charity that whereas a ten franc piece is 
worth no more than ten one franc pieces, the charity 
signified by the ten talents of the parable is worth 
more than ten charities of one talent (66). That is 
why the devil tries to keep souls called to high sanc- 
tity by their priestly and religious vocation at the 
level of mediocrity. He wishes to prevent the growth 
of their charity, knowing that one man of great 
charity will do much more than many whose charity 
is at a lower, luke-warm level (67). Thus Mary, in 
virtue of the first grace which disposed her for the 

(66) Cf. Salamantlcenses, De caritate, disp. V, dub. Ill, par. 
7, nos. 76, 80, 85, 93, 117. 

(67) Attention must be drawn to the nature of the order of 
pure immaterial quality to which sanctifying grace belongs. 
The reason why the vision of the eagle is not better than that 
of all men united, even though it is better than that of the 
most keen-sighted man, is that quantity or distance in space 
intervenes; all men, situated at different places on the globe 
can obviously see more than one eagle, even if perched on the 
highest mountain. But quantity does not enter at all into 
the order of pure quality. 



THE PERFECTION OF MARY'S FIRST GRACE 



87 



divine maternity, was worth more in God's eyes than 
all the apostles, martyrs, confessors, and virgins 
united, more than all men and all angels created from 
the beginning. 

The thought of the marvellous instruments which 
human skill can produce is a reminder of what the 
Divine Artist can do in this soul of His special choice, 
in her of whom it is said " Elegit earn Deus et prae- 
elegit earn," in her who the liturgy tells us was raised 
above all the angelic choirs. The first grace she re- 
ceived was already a worthy preparation for her 
divine maternity and her exceptional glory which is 
inferior only to that of Our Lord Jesus Christ. Nor 
should we forget that she suffered proportionately as 
He did, for she was called to be a victim with Him so 
as to be victorious with and by Him. 

These reasons permit us to get some glimpse of the 
dignity and elevation of Mary's first grace. 

One more point before concluding. The classics in 
the literature of every country mean much more to 
us when we take them up in mature age, than they 
did when we first read them at the age of fifteen or 
twenty years; and the same is true of the works of 
the great theologians, of St. Augustine and St. 
Thomas. Must there not, then, be beauties hidden 
as yet from our eyes in God's masterpieces, in those 
composed immediately by Himself, and especially in 
that masterpiece of nature and grace, the soul of 
Mary, God's Mother? This thought alone is enough 
to make one begin by affirming the richness of her 
initial grace. Perhaps the next thing will be, to 
wonder if the affirmation has not been too hasty, if a 
probability has not been made into a certainty. But 
last of all, there will come a return to the first posi- 
tion; not now because it is beautiful, but because 
careful study has shown that it is true; not because 



88 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



it has a merely theoretical becomingness but because 
its becomingness acted as a motive in determining 
the choice that God actually made of it. 



Article V. 

The Consequence of Mary's Plenitude of Grace 

From the instant of her conception, Mary's initial 
plenitude of grace included the infused virtues and 
the seven gifts of the Holy Ghost, which are the 
different parts or functions of the spiritual organism 
Even from before St. Thomas's time, habitual grace 
was called " the grace of the virtues and the gifts " 
because of its connection with them; for the infused 
virtues, theological and moral, flow from grace (in a 
degree proportioned to its perfection) as its proper- 
ties, just as the faculties flow from the substance of 
the soul (68). The gifts flow from it also (in a similar 
proportionate degree) as infused permanent disposi- 
tions which make the soul docile to the inspirations 
of the Holy Ghost, somewhat as the sails of a boat 
make it docile to a favourable wind (69). 

Furthermore, the infused virtues and the gifts are 
linked up with charity which makes their acts 
meritorious (70), and they keep pace with it in their 
growth as do the five fingers of the hand with one 
another (71). It may well happen that the gifts of 
wisdom, understanding and knowledge, which are 
both speculative and practical, will manifest them- 

a2 (68) Cf. la, Ilae, qq. 62. 63 (a.3), 110, aa. 3 and 4; Ilia, q.7, 

(69) la Ilae, q.66, a.2. 

(70) Ibid., a.5 and q.65. 

(71) la ilae, q.66, a.2. 



THE CONSEQUENCE OF MARY'S PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



89 



selves in one saint more in their practical and in 
another more in their speculative roles. But normally 
all seven exist in every soul in the state of grace in a 
degree proportionate to its charity — the charity it- 
self being proportionate to the sanctifying grace of 
the soul. 

From these principles, which are commonly 
accepted in treatises on the virtues in general and 
the gifts, it is usually deduced that Mary had the 
infused theological and moral virtues and the gifts 
from the first instant of her conception, and that 
they flowed from and were proportionate to her 
initial fulness of grace. Mary — destined even then to 
be Mother of God and men — could not have been 
less perfect than Eve was at her creation. Even if 
she did not receive in her body the privileges of im- 
passibility and immortality, she must have had in 
her soul all that pertained spiritually to the state of 
original justice — all, and more, even, since her initial 
fulness of grace surpassed the grace of all the saints 
together. Her virtues in their initial state must, 
therefore, have surpassed the heroic virtues of .the 
greatest saints (72). Her faith, lit up by the gifts of 
wisdom, understanding and knowledge, was un- 
shakably firm and most penetrating. Her hope was 
unconquerable, proof against presumption and 
despair alike. Her charity was most ardent. In fine, 
her initial holiness, which surpassed that of God's 
greatest servants, was born with her, and did not 
cease to grow all through life. 

The only difficulty in this matter is that of the 
exercise of the infused virtues, already so perfect, and 
the gifts. Their exercise demands the use of reason 
and of free will. We must, therefore, ask if Mary had 

(72) Cf. H. B. Merkelbach, Mariologla, 1939, pp. 184-194. 



90 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



the use of her rational faculties from the first 
instant. 

All theologians admit that the holy soul of Christ 
had the use of intellect and will from the beginning 
(73). They admit too that He had the beatific vision, 
or the immediate vision of the divine Essence (74), a 
doctrine which the Holy Office declared on June 6th, 
1918, to be certain. Jesus is the Head in the order of 
grace, and therefore He enjoyed from the first in- 
stant, as a consequence of the personal union of His 
humanity to the Word, the glory He was to give to 
the elect. He had also infused knowledge similar to 
that of the angels, but in a much more perfect degree 
than it has been found in some of the saints — in 
those, for example, who had the gift of under- 
standing and speaking languages they had never 
learned (75). Theologians teach that these two 
knowledges — the beatific and the infused — were 
perfect in Jesus from the beginning. It was only the 
knowledge which He acquired by experience and 
reflection which developed. Jesus, the sovereign 
priest, judge, and king of the universe, offered 
Himself for us, says St. Paul (76), from the moment of 
His entry into the world and knew everything in the 
past, present and future, that could be submitted to 
His judgement (77). 

(73) Cf. Ilia, q.34. aa. 2 and 3. 

(74) Ibid., a.4 and q.9, a.2. 

(75) Ilia, q.9, a.3. , _ . , _ 

(76) Hebr. x, 5-9: "Wherefore when he cometh into the 
world he saith ... Behold I come ... Sacrifice and oblation (of 
the Old Law) thou wouldst not ... Behold I come to do thy 
wilL" , , , 

(77) In Jesus' infused knowledge we distinguish the know- 
ledge which is infused per se from that which is infused per 
accidens. Knowledge is infused per se if it deals with an 
object about which, from the very nature of the object, know- 
ledge cannot be acquired; such infused knowledge can be 
used without the help of imagery even in the womb. Knowledge 



THE CONSEQUENCE OF MARY'S PLENITUDE OF GRACE 91 

Though there is little serious difference of opinion 
among theologians regarding Jesus' knowledge, the 
problem of Mary's knowledge is much disputed. It 
would appear that there is no reason to assert that 
she had the beatific vision here on earth, especially 
from the first instant of her conception (78). But 
many thologians hold that she had per se infused 
knowledge from the beginning, at least from time to 
time — though some contend that she had it in a per- 
manent way. On this view she would have had the 
use of her intellect and of her free will in her 
mother's womb — on certain occasions at least — and 
would, in consequence, have had the use of the in- 
fused virtues and the gifts which she possessed in so 
high a degree. One can hardly deny this view except 
by asserting that Mary's intellect, will and infused 
virtues remained as it were asleep, as they do in other 
children, and did not wake up till she attained the 
ordinary age of the use of reason. 

For our part, we may say, first of all, that it is at 
least very probable, according to the teaching of the 
majority of theologians, that Mary had the use of her 
free will through her infused knowledge from the 
first instant of her conception, at least in a passing 
manner. Such is the teaching of St. Vincent Ferrer 

is infused per accidens when the object with which it deals 
is of such a kind that it could be known by acquired 
knowledge; this knowledge is used with the help of imagery. 
An example of knowledge which is infused per accidens is 
knowledge of a language; for such knowledge can be ac- 
quired in the ordinary way by study. 

(78) Ch. Vega is the only theologian who has held that 
Mary had the beatific vision, excluding faith and merit of 
eternal life, from the first instant. It cannot be established 
with certainty that she had it in a passing way. before death. 
Cf. Merkelbach, Mariologia, pp. 197 sqq. This latter opinion 
is at most very probable. It is suggested by the fact that St. 
Paul enjoyed the privilege for some few instants. 



92 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



(79), St. Bernardine of Sienna (80), St. Francis de 
Sales (81), St. Alphonsus (82), Suarez (83), Vega (84), 
Contenson (85), Justin de Miechow (86), and most 
modern theologians (87). Fr. Terrien goes so far as 
to say that he found only two opponents of the doc- 
trine: Gerson and Muratori (88). 

The following are the reasons that can be adduced 
in favour of the privilege : 

1st — It is not becoming to hold that Mary, Queen 
of patriarchs, prophets, apostles, and all the saints, 
lacked a privilege granted to St. John the Baptist 
(89). We read of him in Luke i, 41 and 44, while he 
was still in the womb: "When Elisabeth heard the 
salutation of Mary, the infant leaped in her womb," 
and Elisabeth herself said : " For as soon as the voice 
of thy salutation sounded in my ears, the infant in 
my womb leaped for joy." St. Irenaeus, St. Ambrose, 
St. Leo the Great, and St. Gregory the Great have 
noted that the joy of St. John the Baptist before his 
birth was not merely of the sense order, but was 
elicited by the coming of the Saviour, Whose precur- 



(79) Manuscript. Tolos., 346. 

(80) Sermon IV de B. M. V., a.I, c.II, t.IV, p.86. 

(81) Sermon 38 for the Feast of the Purification. 

(82) Glorie de Maria, lie P„ II discors., 2 punt. 

(83) De mysteriis vitae Christi, disp. IV, sect. 7 and 8. 

(84) Theologia Mariana, no. 956. 

(85) Lib. X, diss. 6, cap. 1. 

(86) Collat. 93 super litan. B. V. 

(87) Cf. Tractatus dogmatici by Fr. Hugon. O.P., t. II. p. 756; 
Mariologia by Fr. Merkelbach, O.P., pp. 197 sqq; La Mere de 
Dieu by Fr. Terrien, S.J., t. II, p.27; cf. also the article Marie 
in the Diet. Apol. where Fr. d'Ales quotes Fr. de la Broise to 
the same effect. 

(88) Cf. Terrien, ibid. 

(89) St. Thomas (Ilia, q.27, a.6) cites Jeremias and John 
the Baptist as having been sanctified before birth. However, 
the sacred text does not state that Jeremias had the use of 
reason and of free will in the womb, whereas of St. John the 
Baptist we read (Luke i, 44): "The infant in my womb leaped 
for joy." 



THE CONSEQUENCE OF MARY'S PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



93 



sor he was (90). Thus Cajetan notes that this joy, 
being of a spiritual order, presupposes the use of 
reason and will, and at the time there could be no 
question of acquired but only of infused knowledge 
(Comment, in Ilia P., q.27, a.6). The Church too 
sings in her liturgy, in the hymn for Vespers of St. 
John the Baptist " Senseras Regem thalamo manen- 
tem • . t Suae regenerationis cognovit auctorem : You 
have recognised your king and the author of your 
regeneration." If, therefore, St. John the Baptist 
had the use of reason and will before birth, because 
of his vocation as precursor of Christ, the same 
privilege can hardly be denied to Christ's mother. 

2nd — Since Mary received grace and the infused 
virtues and the gifts in the first instant in a degree 
higher than that of the final grace of the saints, she 
must have been sanctified in the way proper to 
adults, that is, by disposing her through actual grace 
for habitual grace, and by using this latter as a prin- 
ciple of merit from the moment she received it; in 
other words, she offered herself to God as her Son did 
on His entry into the world. " Then I said: Behold I 
come to do thy will, O God " (Hebrews x, 9). Mary 
did not, of course, know then that she would be one 
day the Mother of God, but none the less she would 
accept all that the Lord asked and would yet ask of 
her. 

3rd— Mary's initial fulness of grace, virtues, and 

(90) St. Irenaeus, Adv. Haer. Ill, 16; P. G., VIII, 923: "John 
who was still in his mother's womb, recognising the Saviour 
Who was in Mary's womb, saluted Him"; St. Ambrose, in 
Luke I, II, c.xxxiv; P. L., LIV, 232: "He who thus leaped for 
joy had the use of reason": St. Leo, Sermo XXXI in Nativ. 
Domini, civ; P. L.. LIV, 232: "The precursor of Christ re- 
ceived the prophetic spirit in the womb of his mother, and 
before his birth manifested his joy in the presence of the 
Mother of God"; St. Gregory, Moral, 1 III, c. 4; P. L., LXXV, 
603 : " He was filled with the prophetic spirit in the womb of 
his mother." 



94 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



gifts which surpassed already the final fulness of all 
the saints, could not have remained inactive at the 
beginning of her life. Such inactivity would appear 
opposed to the sweet and generous dispositions of 
Divine Providence in favour of the Mother of the 
Saviour. But unless she had the use of her free will 
through infused knowledge, the virtues and gifts 
which she possessed in so high a degree would have 
remained inactive for a considerable part of her life 
(that is, the beginning). 

Almost all present-day theologians admit that it is 
at least very probable that, in her mother's womb, 
Mary had the use of her free will through infused 
knowledge — transitorily, at any rate. They admit 
too that she had the use of this infused knowledge 
on certain occasions, such as the Incarnation, the 
Passion, the Resurrection, the Ascension; also that 
she had the use of it for the purpose of acquiring a 
more perfect knowledge of the divine perfections and 
of the mystery of the Blessed Trinity. There is all 
the more reason for admitting that Mary had this 
privilege when we recall that infused knowledge was 
given to the apostles on the first Pentecost when they 
received the gift of tongues, and that the great St. 
Teresa, after arriving at the Seventh Mansion, had 
frequent intellectual visions of the Trinity such as 
can only be explained by infused ideas. Even those 
theologians who are most conservative in their views 
do not hesitate to admit this much of Mary (91): It 

(91) Cf. H.-B. Merkelbach, O.P., Mariologia, 1939, p. 200: 
" Cognitionem infusam transeuntem Mariae fuisse communi- 
catam conveniens erat in quibusdam specialibus adjunctis, 
v g in primo instant! conceptionis et sanctiflcationis, aut dum 
huiusmodi cognitlo hie et nunc opportuna aut decens vide- 
batur ad pleniorem intelligentiam cuiusdam mysterii, aut ad 
interpretationem cuiusdam loci Scripturae; et si prophetis 
videatur aliquando concessa, aut etiam Sanctis, quo altius in 
contemplando assurgerent, sicut testantur auctores mystici, 
non est tale privilegium B. Virgin! denegandum." 



THE CONSEQUENCE OF MARY'S PLENITUDE OF GRACE 95 

is in fact the least that may be attributed to the 
Mother of God who enjoyed the visit of the Archangel 
Gabriel, who was on terms of saintly familiarity with 
the Incarnate Word, who was constantly enlightened 
by Him during the hidden life, who must have re- 
ceived special revelations during and after the 
Passion, and who received on the day of Pentecost 
the light of the Holy Ghost in more abundant 
measure than the apostles themselves. 



Was Mary's Use of Reason and Free Will in her 
Mother's Womb only Transitory and Interrupted? 

According to St. Francis de Sales (92), St. Alphon- 
sus (93), and theologians of the standing of Sauve 
(94), Terrien (95) and Hugon (96), Mary's use of her 
privilege was uninterrupted. Fr. Merkelbach and 
other theologians assert that there is no convincing 
argument in proof of that thesis (97). It is our 
opinion that though it cannot be demonstrated with 
certainty that Mary enjoyed the uninterrupted use of 
reason and free will in her mother's womb, it is 
seriously probable and difficult to disprove that she 
had it. For if it be conceded that she had it in the 
first instant, it follows that she would become less 
perfect when deprived of it. But it does not appear 
becoming that so holy a creature should fall in any 
way without guilt on her part, all the more so since 

(92) Loc. cit. 

(93) Loc. cit. 

(94) Jisus Intime. t. Ill, p. 262. 

(95) La Mere de Dieu, t. II, ch.I. 

(96) Tractatvs Dogmatici, 1927, t. II. p. 759; also Marie 
Pleine de Grace, 5th edit., 1926, pp. 24-32. 

(97) Mariologia, pp. 199, 201. 



96 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



her dignity demanded that she should progress con- 
tinuously and that her merit should be unbroken 
(98). 

It has been objected that St. Thomas regards the 
privilege as peculiar to Christ (99). Certain it is that 
Christ's permanent exercise of reason and will be- 
longs to Him alone as a strict right and consequence 
of the beatific vision. Mary cannot lay any such claim 
to the privilege. But it appears altogether becoming 
that the future Mother of God should have been 
granted it as a special and most appropriate favour. 
Besides, St. Thomas's words may be explained by the 
fact that the Immaculate Conception had not been 
defined in his time and, in consequence, prominence 
had not been given to the motives we have adduced 
for admitting the privilege in Mary's case (100). To- 
day, however, after the Bull Inetfabilis, we realise 
that Mary was favoured from the first instant more 
than all the saints united. Besides, as we have said, 
almost all theologians admit that she had the privi- 
lege at least transitorily from the first instant. If so, 
it is hard to see why it should ever have been 
withdrawn, interrupting her merit and progress, and 
leaving the initial plenitude, as it were, unproductive 
and sterile — all of which is opposed to the sweet and 
strong way in which Providence cared for Mary. 

Such was the initial fulness of grace which accom- 
panied the Immaculate Conception, and such were 
its first consequences. More and more can we see 
the implications of the angelic salutation: "Hail, 
full of grace." 

(98) This is the argument of Fr. Hugon, loc. cit. 

(99) Ilia, q.27, a.3: "... non habuit usum liberi arbitrii in 
ventre matris existens: hoc enim est speciale privilegium 
Christ! ..." 

(100) Cf. Hugon, locis citatis. 



CHAPTER III. 



Mary's Plenitude of Grace at and after the 
Incarnation 



In this chapter we shall speak of Mary's spiritual 
progress up to the Annunciation, of the increase of 
grace at that instant, of her perpetual virginity, of 
her growth in charity on certain important occasions 
which followed — notably on Calvary; finally we shall 
speak of Mary's wisdom, of her principal virtues and 
charismatic gifts. 



Article I 

Mary's Spiritual Progress up to the Annunciation 

The method which we have adopted in this book 
is first to treat principles, bringing out their 
force and .their sublimity, and then to apply 
them to the Mother of God. Hence we begin this 
article by recalling that spiritual progress is, most 
of all, progress in charity, the virtue which inspires, 
animates, and renders meritorious the other virtues. 
All the other infused virtues are connected with 
charity, and grow to the rhythm of its growth, just 
as the five fingers of a child's hands grow propor- 
tionately (1). 

(1) la Ilae, q.65 and q.66, a.2. 

G 



98 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



In the sections that follow we shall see why and 
how charity developed in Mary, and examine the 
stages of its growth. 

<s 

The Rapidity of the Growth of Charity in Mary 

Why is it that charity grew in Mary up to the time 
of her death? First of all, because such growth is in 
accordance both with the nature of the charity which 
is tending to eternity and with the divine precept: 
" Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with thy whole 
heart, and with thy whole soul, and with all thy 
strength "—a precept which is so worded as to denote 
progress. This divine precept, which takes pre- 
cedence over all other precepts and counsels, obliges 
all christians to tend towards the perfection of 
charity and the other virtues in the manner appro- 
priate to their condition of life— some in the married 
state, others in the priestly or the religious state. Not 
all are obliged to the practice of the three evangelical 
counsels. But all are obliged to strive to acquire their 
spirit, which is one of detachment from self and the 
things of this world in view of closer union with God. 

Of Our Blessed Lord alone can it be said that He 
never grew in grace or charity, for He alone received 
the complete fulness of them both at His conception 
in consequence of the hypostatic union. Thus, the 
Second Council of Constantinople declares that 
Jesus did not develop spiritually through progress in 
good works (2), even though He followed the normal 
sequence in performing the acts of virtue peculiar to 
each period of life. Mary, however, was continually 

,J$> Cf - Denz - 224: "Si quls defendit ... Christum ...ex pro- 
fectu operum melioratum ... A.S." 



MARY'S SPIRITUAL PROGRESS UP TO THE ANNUNCIATION 99 



growing in grace all through her life. What was still 
more, her growth was an accelerated one, in accor- 
dance with the principle formulated by St. Thomas 
d propos the text: "... comforting one another, and 
so much the more as you see the day approaching " 
(Hebr. x, 25). In his commentary in loc. he writes: 
" It may be asked why we should thus always pro- 
gress in faith and love. The reason is that a natural 
(or connatural) movement always becomes more 
rapid the nearer it approaches its term (the end 
which attracts it). With violent or unnatural move- 
ment, it is quite different." [To-day we remark that 
the downward movement of a falling body is uni- 
formly accelerated while the upward movement of 
one thrown into the air is uniformly slowed down.] 
" But," continues St. Thomas, " grace perfects the 
soul and makes it tend to the good in a natural way 
(like a second nature); it follows then, that those 
who are in the state of grace should grow more in 
charity according as they come nearer to their final 
end (and are more strongly attracted by it). That is 
why it is said in the Epistle to the Hebrews : ' Not 
forsaking our assembly ... but comforting one 
another, and so much the more as you see the day 
approaching ' — that is to say, the end of your journey 
approaching. We read elsewhere: 'The night is 
passed, and the day is at hand ' (Rom. xiii, 12). ' But 
the path of the just, as a shining light, goeth for- 
wards and increaseth even to perfect day ' " (Prov. 
lv, 18) (3). 

(3) Cf. also St. Thomas in L 1 de Caelo, ch. viil, lect. 17, end: 
"Terra (vel corpus grave) velocius movetur quanto magis 
.irscondit." Ia Ilae, q.35, a.6: "Omnis motus. naturalis 
mtensior est in fine, cum appropinquat ad terminum suae 
naturae convenlentem, quam in principio ... quasi natura magis 
tcndat in id quod est sibi conveniens, quam fugiat id quod est 
Mlbl repugnans." 



100 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



St. Thomas wrote this at a time when the law of 
universal gravitation was not yet known, and the rate 
of acceleration of falling bodies had not been calcu- 
lated accurately. Nevertheless, his genius enabled 
him to find in the little that had been observed a 
symbol of the accelerated progress of the saints who 
gravitate towards the Sun of justice and the Source 
of all good. His point is, therefore, that the intensity 
of the life of the saints increases, that they move 
more promptly and generously towards God, the 
nearer they come to Him. That is the law of univer- 
sal attraction in the spiritual life. Just as bodies 
attract one another in proportion to their mass and 
in inverse proportion to the square of their distances, 
so souls are attracted to God in proportion to their 
holiness and their nearness to Him. The trajectory 
of the spiritual motion of the saints is towards a 
zenith from which it does not descend. There is no 
twilight for them. Age weakens only their bodily 
powers. Their progress in love is even more rapid in 
their last years. They advance, not with a regular, 
but with an ever hastening step, in spite of the weight 
of years, and their " youth shall be renewed like the 
eagle's " (Ps. cii, 5). 

Mary's progress was the most continuous of all. It 
encountered no obstacle, was not halted nor delayed 
by attachment to self or to the things of this world. 
It was the most rapid of all, because the rate at which 
it commenced was determined by Mary's fulness of 
grace and therefore surpassed that of all the saints. 
Thus there was in Mary (especially if, as is probable, 
her infused knowledge gave her the use of reason and 
will during her hours of sleep) a wonderful increase 
in the love of God of which the accelerated motion 
of bodies under the force of gravitation is but a dis- 
tant image. 



MARY'S SPIRITUAL PROGRESS UP TO THE ANNUNCIATION 101 

Modern physical science tells us that the velocity 
of a falling body increases uniformly. This is an 
image of the growth of charity in a soul which allows 
nothing to hold it back, and which moves faster 
towards God according as increasing nearness to Him 
increases His attraction. Such a soul usually makes 
each sacramental or spiritual communion more 
fervently, and in consequence more fruitfully, 
than the preceding one. The movement of a stone 
thrown in the air, which grows uniformly slower and 
finally falls back, is a symbol of the lukewarm soul, 
especially if through a growing attachment to venial 
sin its communions become less fervent. 

The principles outlined in this article show what 
must have been Mary's spiritual progress from the 
time of her Immaculate Conception, especially if she 
had, as is probable, the uninterrupted use of reason 
and will in her mother's womb and afterwards (4). 
Besides, since it appears that Mary's initial fulness 
of grace surpassed that of all the saints, her subse- 
quent progress cannot but exceed our powers of 
description (5). Nothing held her back, neither the 

(4) We have quoted the authorities who support this view 
on p. 92. The following are the words of St. Francis de Sales : 
" How much more probable is it that the mother of the true 
Solomon had the use of reason in her sleep " : Treatise on the 
lA>ve of God, L. Ill, c.8, a propos the words of the Canticle of 
Canticles : " I sleep and my heart watcheth." 

(5) It is necessary to explain what is meant by the expres- 
sion " to exceed our powers of description." It is not a denial of 
the certain fact that Mary's grace remained limited. To 
attribute to her what is peculiar to her Divine Son would be 
unpardonable exaggeration. We know that her progress in 
grace could not go beyond certain limits. In other words, we 
know on the negative side what she could not do; but we do 
not know on the positive side all she could do, nor the degree 
of holiness to which she could attain, nor what was her point 
or departure. This is like our knowledge of the forces of 
nature: we do not know all they can do, but we do know 



102 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



consequences of original sin, nor any venial sin, 
neither negligence, nor distraction, nor imperfection, 
She was like a soul which, having taken the vow 
always to do the most perfect thing, proved com- 
pletely faithful to it. 

Saint Anne must have been struck by the unique 
holiness of her child. But she could not have sus- 
pected the Immaculate Conception nor the future 
divine maternity. Her child was much more loved 
by God than she thought. In a somewhat similar 
way, each soul in the state of grace is more loved by 
God than it thinks. To know fully how much it is 
loved, it would need to understand grace, and the 
glory of which grace is the germ, just as to know the 
full value of the acorn it is necessary to have seen a 
fully developed oak tree. The greatest things often 
he concealed in the most insignficant, as in a mustard 
seed, or in the tiny trickle which is the beginning of 
a mighty river. 

9 

Mary's Progress by Merit and Prayer 

If Mary's charity grew uninterruptedly in accor- 
dance with the great law of love, we may ask what 
were the sources of its growth. They were merit, 
prayer, and a certain spiritual communion with God 

certain things they cannot do— such as to cause the restora- 
tion to life of a dead man. 

In a similar way. we do not know positively all that the 
angels are capable of by their natural powers, especially the 
highest angels; but w e know for certain that the least degree 
of grace is higher than the nature of the highest angel. To 
know fully the value of the least degree of grace, germ of 
glory, it would be necessary to have enjoyed the beatific vision 
momentarily. Much less then can we understand the grace 
of Mary. 



MARY'S SPIRITUAL PROGRESS UP TO THE ANNUNCIATION 103 



Who was present in Mary's soul from the first 
moment of her existence. 

It must be recalled first of all that it is not precisely 
in extension that charity grows, for even the least 
degree of charity extends to God and to all men with- 
out exception — though it is true that we can and do 
extend the field of our active goodwill. Charity grows 
most of all in intensity. It takes ever deeper root in 
the will, or, to lay metaphor aside, it makes the will 
determined to avoid both evil and that which is less 
good and to tend generously to God. The growth of 
charity is not quantitative — as is that of a heap 
which grows by having more added to it— but quali- 
tative, as is the growth of knowledge which, even if 
no fresh conclusions are drawn, can become more 
penetrating, more profound, more unified, more 
certain. Charity grows by tending to love God above 
all things, more perfectly, more purely, and more 
firmly, and our neighbour as ourselves, so that all 
may be united in glorifying God in time and in 
eternity. This growth brings the formal object and 
motive of charity into fuller relief than it usually is 
at the beginning of a spiritual life. At first, we love 
God more for what He has given and for what we 
hope He will yet give, and less for His own sake. But 
gradually we come to realise that the Giver is greater 
and more lovable than the gift, and that He deserves 
to be loved for the sake of His own Infinite Goodness. 

In our case, a number of different influences con- 
tribute to the growth of charity— merit, prayer, the 
sacraments. We shall now consider the first of these 
in relation to Mary. 

A meritorious act, proceeding from charity or from 
a virtue inspired by it, establishes a right to a super- 
natural reward, and first of all to the reward of an 
increase of habitual grace and charity itself. The 



104 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



increase of grace and charity is not caused directly 
by the meritorious act, for grace and charity are not 
acquired but rather infused habits. God alone can 
produce them, for they participate in the depths of 
His lift;; He alone can increase them. That is why 
St. Paul says: "I have planted (by preaching and 
baptism), Apollo watered, but God gave the increase" 
(I Cor. hi, 6); and again: "He will . . . increase the 
growth of the fruits of your justice " (II Cor. ix, 10). 

But though our acts do not directly increase 
charity, they contribute in two ways to its growth: 
morally, by meriting it; physically, by disposing for 
it. Meritorious acts confer on the soul the right to 
receive from God an increase of charity so as to love 
Him more purely and more firmly. Besides, they dis- 
pose the soul for this increase by opening out in some 
way, or by unfolding, its higher faculties, enabling 
the divine life to enter them, to elevate them, and to 
purify them. 

It often happens that our meritorious acts remain 
imperfect — remiss, as theologians put it — that is to 
say, below the level or degree in which the virtue of 
charity exists in us. Oftentimes, though we have a 
charity of three talents, we act as if we had one of 
but two. It is as when an intelligent man is careless 
and does not apply himself seriously to what he is 
doing. Remiss acts are meritorious. But St. Thomas 
and the older generation of theologians teach that 
they do not obtain for the soul at once the increase of 
charity which they merit, precisely because they do 
not dispose it to receive it (6). A person who, having 
three .talents of charity, acts as if he had only two, is 
obviously not preparing or disposing himself to have 
his charity increased to four talents. He will receive 
the increase he merits only when he disposes himself 



(6) Cf. Ila Ilae, q.24, a.6, ad I. 



MARY'S SPIRITUAL PROGRESS UP TO THE ANNUNCIATION 105 

for it by a more generous or more intense act of 
charity or of one of the virtues which it controls. 

These few principles throw a flood of light on what 
has been said about Mary's progress by way of merit. 
She never performed a remiss or imperfect meri- 
torious act, for that would have been a moral 
imperfection, a lack of generosity in God's service 
such as theologians declare she was never guilty of. 
Hence her meritorious acts were rewarded at once 
by the increase of charity which they merited. 

But there is something more Theologians tell us 
that God is more glorified by a single act of charity 
of ten talents, than by ten acts of one talent. Simi- 
larly, one devout soul gives more glory to God than 
many who are lukewarm. In the spiritual order 
especially, quality means more than quantity. Hence, 
Mary's merits grew continuously in perfection. Her 
most pure heart dilated, and her capacity for the 
divine increased, as is described in Ps. cxviii, 32: "I 
have run the way of thy commandments, when thou 
didst enlarge my heart." Whereas we often forget 
that we are journeying towards eternity and treat 
this world as if it were to last for ever, Mary never 
withdrew her eyes from the goal of her life, God Him- 
self, and never wasted a moment of the time He gave, 
her. Each instant of her life on earth entered into 
the single instant of eternity through her accumula- 
ting ever richer merits. She saw the present not along 
the horizontal line of time which ends in a future on 
••arth, but along the vertical line which ends in an 
eternity that never passes. 

Another thing to be noted is that, according to the 
teaching of St. Thomas, no deliberate act really per- 
formed in the course of a lifetime is ever indifferent. 
For an act which is indifferent in itself, such as to take 
u walK or to teach mathematics, becomes good or bad 



106 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



in performance because of the end to which it is 
directed, and a reasonable being is obliged always to 
act for a reasonable or good end, and not simply for 
self-gratification or for some other disordered 
purpose (7). From this it follows that every deliberate 
act of a person in the state of grace which is not a sin 
is morally good; in consequence, it is virtually or- 
dained to God, the final end of the just, and is 
meritorious. " Every act of those who have charity 
is either meritorious or de-meritorious " (De Malo, 
a.5, ad 17). This is an additional reason for saying 
that all Mary's deliberate acts were good and meri- 
torious. And we may add that none of the acts she 
performed during her waking hours were indeliberate 
or machine-like, but all were under the control of her 
intellect and her grace-directed will. 

When we mediate on the outstanding occasions in 
Mary's life, it is especially in the light of the pre- 
ceding principles that we should do so. And since, 
just now, we are concerned with those which 
preceded the Incarnation, let us turn to her 
Presentation in the Temple, when she was as yet a 
child, or to her participation in the great feasts of 
Israel, or to her reading of the Messianic prophecies 
—those particularly of Isaias— which increased so 
wonderfully her faith, her hope, her love of God, and 
her longing for the advent of the Messiah. How much 
she must have penetrated the depth of meaning in 
Isaias' words : " For a child is born to us, and a son 
is given to us, and the government is upon his 
shoulder; and his name shall be called, Wonderful, 
Counsellor, God the Mighty, the Father of the world 
to come, the Prince of peace " (Is. ix, 6). Though 
she was still so young, Mary's vivid faith must, have 
grasped better than even Isaias did the meaning of 

(7) Cf. Ia Ilae, q.13. a.9. 



MARY'S SPIRITUAL PROGRESS UP TO THE ANNUNCIATION 107 



the words "God the Mighty." She understood 
already that the plenitude of the divine power would 
be in that Child, that the Messiah would be an 
eternal and immortal King, always the Father of His 
people (8). 

i 

The life of grace increases not by merit only but by 
prayer as well, which has its own peculiar efficacy (of 
impetration). For that reason, we pray every day to 
grow in the grace of God, saying : " Our Father, Who 
art in Heaven, hallowed be Thy Name; Thy Kingdom 
come (more and more in us); Thy Will be done (May 
Your precepts be better observed by us)." Similarly, 
the Church makes us pray on the 13th Sunday after 
Pentecost : " Grant us, O Lord, an increase of faith, 
hope and charity." 

After justification, one can therefore grow in grace 
both by the way of merit— which is based on the 
divine justice, and gives a right to a reward— and by 
the way of prayer— which relies on the divine mercy. 
Prayer is efficacious in the degree in which it is 
humble, confident, persevering, and desirous of an 
increase of virtue rather than of temporal favours: 
" Seek ye first the kingdom of God and His justice, 
and all these things shall be given to you." And it 

(8) No one can affirm as certain beyond question that Mary 
illd not understand the God the Mighty of the prophecy of 
Isaias as attributing divinity to the Messiah. The Church 
enlightened by the New Testament, understands the term in 
that sense in the Masses of Christmas. Who then will assert 
that Mary did not understand as much before the Incarnation? 
The Messiah is the Anointed of the Lord. In the light of New 
Testament teaching, we to-day realise that the anointing is 
"instituted first of all by the grace of union, which is the 
Word Himself, Who communicates substantial and uncreated 
holiness to the Sacred Humanity. Cf. Ilia, q.6, a 6; q.22, a.2, 
ftd 3. 



108 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



can happen that the soul in the state of grace will 
receive at once, in answer to fervent prayer, more 
than it merits. In other words, a person may, on 
occasion, receive an increase of grace through the 
impetratory power of a prayer which exceeds that 
due to prayer's meritorious value (9). 

Mary's prayer was most efficacious from her very 
childhood, not only because of its meritorious value, 
but also because of its wonderful impetratory value, 
proportionate to her humility, her confidence, and 
her perseverance in a continually growing generosity. 
Through it she grew continuously in the pure and 
strong love of God. She obtained also all the actual 
efficacious graces which cannot be merited strictly, 
such as those which incline to new meritorious acts, 
or the special inspiration which is the principle of 
infused contemplation. This must certainly have 
happened when she repeated in her prayer the words 
of the Book of Wisdom, vii, 7 : " Wherefore I wished, 
and understanding was given me: and I called upon 
God, and the spirit of wisdom came upon me: and I 
preferred her before kingdoms and thrones, and 
esteemed riches nothing in comparison with her . . . 
for all gold in comparison of her, is as a little sand, 
and silver in respect of her shall be counted as clay." 
In this way, the Lord came to her to nourish her with 
Himself, and each day gave Himself more fully to her 
by prompting her to give herself more fully to Him. 

More appropriately than anyone else except Jesus, 
she said with the psalmist: " One thing I have asked 

(9) This explains how the just can obtain by prayer graces 
which cannot be merited, as. for example, the grace of final 
perseverance, or actual efficacious grace which at the same 
time preserves from mortal sin and conserves and augments tne 
state of grace. The same can be said of the special inspiration 
which is the principle, through the gifts of understanding and 
wisdom, of infused contemplation. 



MARY'S SPIRITUAL PROGRESS UP TO THE ANNUNCIATION 109 

of the Lord, this will I seek after: that I may dwell 
in the house of the Lord all the days of my life; that 
I may see the delight of the Lord ..." (Ps. xxvi, 4). 
Day after day brought her a fuller understanding 
of the infinite goodness of God to those who seek Him 
and to those who find Him. Even before the institu- 
tion of the Blessed Eucharist, Mary enjoyed, there- 
fore, that spiritual communion which consists in the 
simple and intimate prayer of the soul in the unitive 
stage when it enjoys God present within it as in a 
spiritual temple : " O taste and see that the Lord is 
sweet " (Ps. xxxiii, 9). 

The psalmist expresses his thirst for God in burn- 
ing words : " As the hart panteth after the fountains 
of waters; so my soul panteth after thee, O God. My 
soul hath thirsted after .the strong living God " (Ps. 
xli, 2). What must have been Mary's thirst for God 
from the moment of the Immaculate Conception up 
to the day of the Incarnation ! 

St. Thomas tells us that Mary's progress in charity 
was not such that she merited the Incarnation, for 
the Incarnation is the principle of all merit since the 
sin of Adam, and could not itself be merited by one 
who was redeemed. Nevertheless, her progress 
merited for her gradually (as a result of the first grace 
which came from the future merits of her Son) that 
eminent degree of charity, humility, and purity which 
made her, on the Annunciation day, the worthy 
mother of the Saviour (10). 

Neither did she merit the divine maternity; that 
would have been equivalently to merit the Incarna- 
tion. She did, however, merit the degree of charity 
which was the proximate disposition for being made 

(10) Cf. Ilia, q.2, a.II. ad 3: " Beata Virgo dicitur meruisse 
poftare Dominum omnium, non quia meruit ipsum incarnari, 
Md quia meruit ex gratia sibi data ilium puritatis et sancti- 
i " I is gradum, ut congrue posset esse Mater Dei." 



110 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



Mother of God. This proximate disposition must 
have been an unimaginable summit of holiness, since 
even the remote disposition — Mary's first fulness of 
grace — surpassed the united holinesses of all the 
saints. 

Finally, we may add that Mary's years in the 
temple accelerated her growth in the grace of the 
virtues and the gifts in a way with which the growth 
of the most generous of souls is quite unworthy to be 
compared. 

It is, of course, possible to exaggerate Mary's 
growth in grace and to attribute to her a perfection 
which belongs only to her Son. But even if we are 
careful to confine ourselves to what were really her 
prerogatives, we are utterly incapable of forming a 
worthy idea of the elevation of her beginning and 
her progress in the spiritual life. The most we can 
do is to attain to some small measure of under- 
standing of so sublime a mystery. 



Note. 

When in our lives do the less fervent or remiss 
acts of charity obtain the increase of charity 
due to them? 

According to St. Thomas (1), every act of charity of the 
* wayfarer ' is meritorious, meriting an increase of this virtue 
and disposing the soul, at least in a remote manner, to receive 
it; but only fervent acts dispose one proximately, i.e. acts at 
least equal in intensity to the degree of the infused virtue 
from which they proceed. Therefore only fervent acts obtain 
Immediately the increase of charity that they merit. 

(1) Ha Ilae, q.24, a.6. 



MARY'S SPIRITUAL PROGRESS UP TO THE ANNUNCIATION 111 



When do the less fervent acts obtain it? 

One might think that it is as soon as a fervent meritorious 
act is made. However, there is a difficulty, for whereas this 
act certainly obtains the increase due to it and to which it 
disposes one proximately, it is not certain that it obtains at 
the same time the increase due to the less fervent meritorious 
acts which have preceded it and which has not yet been given. 

One way by which these arrears can be obtained is by fer- 
vent acts of charity which are themselves meritorious, and 
which also dispose one to receive already in the present life not 
only what they merit themselves but even more than they 
merit. 

This is the case with the fervent act of charity by which one 
prepares oneself for a good communion, which confers 'ex 
opere operato' an increase of charity corresponding to the 
actual fervent disposition and to the ' arrears.' This must be 
quite frequent with good priests and good christians, especi- 
ally at the more fervent communions which they make on 
certain feast-days or on the First Friday of the month. More 
so must this take place when, with good dispositions, one 
receives Holy Communion as Viaticum, or with Extreme 
Unction, which, effacing the remains of sin (reliquiae peccatD, 
produces an increase of charity in proportion to the fervour 
with which it is received; it can therefore produce also the 
• arrears ' merited but not yet obtained. 

One's ' arrears ' may be obtained also by a fervent prayer 
for an increase of charity; for this prayer is at once meri- 
torious, inasmuch as inspired by charity, and impetratory; and 
on this latter score it obtains more than it merits and can 
dispose one proximately to receive the ' arrears ' already 
merited but not obtained. 

Finally, it remains probable that the soul which may not 
have obtained its ' arrears ' during this life by any of the 
means we have mentioned, can dispose itself proximately to 
receive them by its fervent acts in Purgatory, acts which, 
however, are no longer meritorious. It is certain that these 
houIs in Purgatory, as their purification advances, make more 
und more fervent acts (non-meritorious), which attain at 
least to the degree of intensity of the infused virtue from 
which they proceed. These acts do not merit an increase of 
this virtue, but it is probable that they dispose one actually 
1 1 ' receive the ' arrears ' already merited ' in via ' and not yet 
obtained. Thus a soul which entered Purgatory with a charity 



112 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



of five talents, could leave it with a charity of seven, the degree 
of glory corresponding always to the degree of merit. 

And if this Is true, it would appear to be true especially with 
regard to the final act by which the soul disposes itself (ra 
genere causae materialis) to receive the light of glory, an act 
which is produced (in genere causae efficientis et formalis) 
under the influence of this light at the exact moment of its 
infusion, just as the last act which immediately disposes one 
for justification proceeds from charity at the exact moment 
of Its infusion. Thus the ' arrears ' would be obtained at least 
at the last moment, on one's entry into glory (2). 



Article II 

Mary's Wonderful Increase in Grace at the 
Annunciation 

As St. Thomas explains (11), it was becoming that 
the mystery of the Incarnation should be announced 
to the Blessed Virgin so as to instruct her in its 
meaning and that she might give her consent to it. 
Thereby she conceived the Word spiritually, as the 
Fathers say, before conceiving Him physically. And 
St. Thomas adds that her supernatural and meri- 
torious consent was given in the name of the whole 
human race which stood in need of the promised 
Redeemer. 

It was becoming also that the Annunciation should 
have been made by an angel, coming as ambassador 
of the Most High. A rebellious angel had caused the 
Fall; a holy angel, the highest of the archangels, 

(2) These different explanations, which are quite Drobable. 
have been proposed by several commentators on St. Thomas, 
in Ha, Ilae, q.24, a.6. We have exposed them more at length 
elsewhere: V Amour de Di'eu et la Croix de Jesus, t. 1, pp. 415- 
422, and Les Trois Ages de la Vie Interiewe, 1. 1, p. 180 sqq. 

(11) Ilia, q.30, aa. 1, 2, 3, 4. 



MARY'S WONDERFUL INCREASE IN GRACE AT THE ANNUNCIATION 113 

announces the Redemption (12). Becoming, as well, 
that Mary should have been enlightened before St. 
Joseph about the mystery, for by her predestination 
she was greater than he. Becoming, in the last place, 
that the Annunciation should have taken the form 
of a corporeal vision accompanied by an intellectual 
illumination, for the corporeal vision is, in itself, more 
certain and reliable than the imaginative one, and 
the grace of the intellectual illumination revealed 
with certainty the meaning of the words spoken (13). 
Joy and confidence succeeded reverential fear and 
astonishment as the angel spoke : " Fear not, Mary, 
for thou hast found grace with God. Behold thou 
shalt conceive in thy womb, and shalt bring forth a 
son ; and thou shalt call his name Jesus. He shall be 
great, and shall be called the Son of the Most High . . . 
The Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power 
of the Most High shall overshadow thee. And there- 
fore also the Holy which shall be born of thee shall be 
called the Son of God." And the angel adds, both 
as sign and as explanation of what is to come to pass : 
" And behold thy cousin Elisabeth, she also hath con- 
ceived a son in her old age, and this is the sixth month 
with her that is called barren. Because no word shall 
be impossible with God." 

And Mary consented, saying, "Behold the handmaid 
of the Lord; be it done to me according to thy word." 

Bossuet tells us in his Elevations on the Mysteries, 
12th Week, 6th Elevation, that Mary manifested 
principally three virtues in her consent: virginity, by 
her noble resolution to renounce the joys of the 
senses for ever; perfect humility in regard to God 
who so favoured her; and faith, by conceiving the 
Son of God in her soul before she conceived Him in 

(12) Ilia, q.30, a.3. 

(13) 7b., a.4. 

H 



114 



THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



her body — which is why Elisabeth saluted her : " And 
blessed art thou that hast believed, because these 
things shall be accomplished that were spoken to 
thee by the Lord." She manifested also confidence 
in God and courage, for she was not ignorant of the 
messianic prophecies — .those especially of Isaias — 
which foretold the great sufferings of the Messiah in 
which she was called to share. 

Many interior souls are struck most by Mary's total 
self-forgetfulness at the Annunciation, and see in it 
the highest humility. She thought only of God's will, 
of all that the Incarnation would do for His glory and 
for our salvation. And God, Who is the greatness of 
little ones, regarded her humility, and made her 
faith, her confidence, and her generosity all they were 
called to be by her participation in our redemption. 
There are men who think that their greatness con- 
sists in their genius and their gifts of nature. Mary, 
the greatest of creatures, turned her gaze from her- 
self, and sought her greatness in God. Deus humilium 
celsttudo, God, Who art the greatness of the humble, 
reveal to us the greatness of Mary, the loftiness of 
her charity (14). 

St. Thomas tells us (15) that Mary's fulness of 
grace increased notably at the Incarnation, through 
the presence of the Word of God made flesh. If she 

(14) Deus humilium celsttudo is the opening of the Collect 
of the Mass of St. Francis of Paula, April 2nd, and of the 
Blessed Martin Porres, November 5th, in the Dominican 
Missal. St. Albert the Great has some magnificent pages in 
his Mariale about the humility of Mary whom he regarded as 
his mother and his inspiration. 

(15) ma, q.27, a.5, ad 2: "In Beata Virgine fuit triplex 
perfectio gratiae. Prima quidem quasi dispositiva, per quam 
reddebatur idonea ad hoc quod esset mater Christi, et haec 
fuit prima perfectio sanctificationis. Secunda autem per- 
fectio gratiae fuit in Beata Virgine ex praesentia Filii Dei in 
elus utero incarnati. Tertia autem est perfectio finis, quam 
habet in gloria." 



MARY'S WONDERFUL INCREASE IN GRACE AT THE ANNUNCIATION 115 



had not been already confirmed in grace, she would 
have been so from that moment. 

® 

The Reason for Mary's Increase in Grace and 
Charity at the Incarnation 

Three reasons have been given for Mary's increase 
in the divine life at the Incarnation: the finality, or 
purpose, of her grace; the cause of her grace; the 
mutual love of Jesus and His Mother. 

In the first place, an increase in grace and charity 
was most becoming as a proximate and immediate 
preparation for the dignity of the divine motherhood. 
It is a general principle that the proximate prepara- 
tion (ultimate disposition) for any perfection is 
proportionate to it. But the divine maternity is 
superior by its term— which is of the hypostatic order 
— to every other dignity of nature or of grace. Hence, 
Mary must have received as proximate preparation 
for it a special increase of her fulness of grace. This 
special increase made her proximately worthy to be 
the Mother of God and to take her unique place in 
regard to the Word made flesh. 

In the second place, the Son of God owed it to 
Himself to enrich Mary with a still greater grace 
when He became present in her by the Incarnation. 
For by His Divinity He is principal cause of grace, and 
by His Humanity He is its meritorious and instru- 
mental cause. But Mary was, of all creatures, the 
one who entered into closest contact with Him in His 
Humanity since He took flesh in her womb. Hence, 
it was appropriate that she should have received a 
notable increase of grace at the Incarnation. Re- 
ceiving the Word into her womb, she must have 



116 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



experienced all— and more than all — the benefits of 
a fervent sacramental communion. Jesus gives 
Himself to us in the Blessed Eucharist under the 
appearances of bread; He gave Himself to Mary in 
His true form, and by an immediate contact which 
produced, ex opere operato, an increase in her parti- 
cipation in the divine life more bounteous than even 
that produced by the greatest of the sacraments. 

There is one remarkable point of dissimilarity 
between Jesus' gift of Himself to Mary and His gift 
of Himself to us in Holy Communion: He gives Himself 
to us that we may live by Him. But, though he 
nourished Mary's soul and gave Himself to her by the 
Incarnation, in His human nature, He lived by her 
and received from her the nourishment which His 
sacred Body required. 

In the third and last place, the mutual love of Jesus 
and Mary demanded an increase of Mary's fulness 
of grace. As we have said, grace is an effect of God's 
active love for His creature. But if the Word made 
Flesh loves all the men for whom He is prepared to 
shed His blood, if He loves in a special way the elect 
and among them in a still more special way the 
apostles and the saints, His love for Mary, who was to 
be the most closely associated with Him in His work 
for souls, is the greatest of all. But Jesus is God. 
Hence His love for her produces grace in her soul — 
such an abundance of grace as to be capable of over- 
flowing on souls. He is man too, and as man has 
merited all the effects of our predestination (16). 
Hence, in His love for her, He communicated to her 
the effects of her special predestination, most parti- 
cularly that increase of charity which brought her 
nearer to the final fulness that was to be hers in 

(16) Ilia, q.24, a.4. 



MARY'S WONDERFUL INCREASE IN GRACE AT THE ANNUNCIATION 117 



glory. We must remember too that Mary was never 
in the slightest degree unresponsive to Jesus' love for 
her; on the contrary, her maternal love for Jesus 
answered most fully to Jesus' love for her. On that 
account it was possible for Him to give Himself to her 
much more fully than to any of the great saints. To 
form some idea of Mary's maternal love for Jesus, we 
have only to think of the heroic love and of the im- 
mense sacrifices of which mothers are capable for 
their children in their hour of trial and suffering. 
Think too of how loving Mary's pure virgin heart 
was; and of how she loved her Son as her God; and 
of how her love was supernatural as well as natural, 
growing continuously in intensity. Such thoughts 
will enable you to glimpse Mary's love in a distant 
way. 

Speaking of the time when the Body of the Saviour 
was formed in Mary's virginal womb, Fr. Hugon says 
( 17) : " She must have made uninterrupted progress 
in grace during those nine months — ex opere operato, 
as it were — through her permanent contact with the 
Author of holiness. If her plenitude of grace is in- 
comprehensible at the time of the Incarnation, what 
must it have been at the Nativity . . . Each time she 
fed him at her virginal breast, she was nourished with 
grace . . . When she held Him in her arms and gave 
Him the kisses of a virgin-mother, she received from 
Him the kiss of the divinity, which made her still 
purer and holier." These words are but an echo of 
the liturgy (18). Even when physical contact with 
Jesus in her womb had ceased, Mary's charity and 



(17) Marie, pleine de grace, 5th edit., 1926. p.46. 

(18) Cf. Vespers Hymn for the Feast of the Holy Family: 
O Lux beata caelitum Maria dives gratia 

Et summa spes mortallum O sola quae casto potes 

Jesu, o cui domestica Fovere Jesum pectore, 

Arrisit orto caritas: Cum lacte donans oscula. 



118 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



motherly love continued to grow, and this up to the 
hour of her death. In her case, grace perfected 
nature in a degree which will remain for ever beyond 
the powers of the human tongue to express. 



Article III 

The Visitation and the " Magnificat " 

1. The Visitation 

After the Annunciation the Blessed Virgin went to 
visit her cousin, St. Elisabeth. As soon as Elisabeth 
heard Mary's salutation, the child she bore leaped in 
her womb for joy, and she was filled with the Holy 
Ghost. And she cried out: " Blessed art thou among 
women, and blessed is the fruit of thy womb. For 
behold, as soon as the voice of thy salutation sounded 
in my ears, the infant in my womb leaped for joy. 
And blessed art thou that hast believed, because those 
things shall be accomplished that were spoken to 
thee by the Lord." In the light of divine revelation 
Elisabeth understands that the Fruit of Mary's womb 
is beginning to bless men through His mother. She 
knows that it is the Lord Himself Who comes to her. 
The Son of God comes, through His mother, to His 
precursor; and the precursor, through his mother, 
recognised the Son of God. 

St. Luke gives the canticle of the Magnificat in .the 
verses which follow. The context, the authority of 
the great majority of the best manuscripts, and the 
unanimous voice of the oldest and most learned 
Fathers (Irenaeus, Origen, Tertullian, St. Ambrose, 
St. Jerome, St. Augustine, etc.) all point to Mary as its 
author. 



THE VISITATION AND THE " MAGNIFICAT " 119 

What strikes one most of all in the Magnificat is its 
simplicity and its dignity. In substance it is a song 
of thanksgiving, which recalls that God is the great- 
ness of the humble, that He lifts them up even while 
He casts down the pride of the mighty. Bossuet sums 
up well what the Fathers say about the Magnificat in 
his Elevations on the Mysteries, 14th week, 5 th Eleva- 
tion. We shall follow him in the next few pages (19). 

® ■ 

God has done great things in Mary 

" My soul doth glorify the Lord." Mary leaves self, 
as it were, to glorify God alone and to find in Him all 
her joy. She is in perfect peace, for no one can take 
from her Him Whom she sings. 

" My spirit hath rejoiced in God my Saviour." What 
Mary cannot find in herself she finds in God, Who is 
the Supreme Treasure. She rejoices " because He 
hath rewarded the humility of His handmaid." She 
does not think herself capable of attracting His gaze, 
for she is nothing. But He, in His goodness, has 
turned towards her, and now she has a sure ground 
for confidence — the Divine mercy. No longer does 
she fear to recognise all she has received freely from 
Him: rather is that a debt of gratitude to be paid. 
" For behold from henceforth all generations shall 
call me blessed " — a prophecy which is still fulfilled 

(19) St. Francis de Sales' two sermons on the Visitation 
should also be studied. In one place he asks if by " the humi- 
lity of his handmaid " Mary referred to her lowly condition 
as a creature or also to her humility. With some of the 
Fathers — though against many authorities — he answers that 
It is more probable that she spoke of her humility; for she 
knew from the angel's words that she was full of grace, and 
had, in consequence, the virtue of humility in a high degree. 
But to God she gave the glory due to her virtue. 



120 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



after two thousand years with each " Hail Mary " that 
men say. 

And now she sees that her joy will be the joy of all 
men of good will: " He that is mighty hath done great 
things to me; and holy is His name. And His mercy 
is from generation unto generation, to them that fear 
Him." He Who is mighty has performed in her the 
greatest work of His might — the redemptive Incarna- 
tion: He has given a Saviour to the world through 
her, while yet leaving her virginity intact. 

The Most High is holy, is Holiness. This is all the 
more evident to us who believe that the Son of God, 
Who is also the Son of Mary, has bestowed mercy, 
grace and holiness on men of so many different times 
and nations who feared God with that childlike fear 
which is the beginning of wisdom, and accepted the 
yoke of His commandments by grace. 

© 

3. God raises up the humble and through them 
triumphs over the pride of the mighty 

To explain these wonderful effects Mary appeals to 
the Divine Power : " He hath showed might in His 
arm; He hath scattered the proud in the conceit of 
their heart. He hath put down the mighty from their 
seat, and hath exalted the humble." God did all she 
mentions when He sent His only Son to confound the 
proud by the preaching of His gospel, and to make 
use of the weakness of the apostles, confessors and 
virgins, to bring the strength of a proud paganism to 
naught. His sublime mysteries He has hidden from 
the wise and revealed to little ones (Matt, xi, 25). 
Mary is herself an example of what God does by the 
little ones. He raised her above all because she looked 
on herself as the least of all. The Son of God chose 



MARY'S PERPETUAL VIRGINITY 



121 



for His dwelling not the rich palaces of kings but the 
poverty of Bethlehem, and He manifested His power 
by the very weakness in which He came to exalt the 
little ones. 

" He hath filled the hungry with good things; and 
the rich He hath sent empty away." Jesus in His turn 
will say : " Blessed are ye that hunger now, for you 
shall be filled . . . Woe to you that are filled, for you 
shall hunger " (Luke vi, 21 & 25). In Bossuet's words, 
it is when the soul sees the glory of the world in ruins 
and God alone great that it finds peace. 

The Magnificat concludes as it began, with thanks- 
giving: "He hath received Israel His servant, being 
mindful of His mercy : As He spoke to our fathers, to 
Abraham and to his seed for ever." We should make 
our own the words of St. Ambrose : " Let Mary's soul 
be in us to glorify the Lord; let her spirit be in us that 
we may rejoice in God our Saviour " (20). May His 
Kingdom come in us through the accomplishment of 
His will. 



Article IV 

Mary's Perpetual Virginity 

The Church teaches three truths concerning Mary's 
virginity: that she was a virgin in conceiving Our 
Saviour, that she was a virgin in giving Him birth, 
and that she remained a virgin her whole life 
through. The first two truths were defended against 
the Cerinthians and the Ebionites towards the end 
of the 1st century; against Celsus, who was refuted 
by Origen; in the 16th century against the Socinians, 



(20) In Lucam, 1. II, n. 26. 



122 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



whom Paul IV and Clement VIII condemned; and 
recently against the rationalists — Strauss, Renan, 
and the Pseudo-Herzog in particular (21). The second 
truth was attacked by Jovinian, who was condemned 
in 390. The third truth was denied by Helvidius and 
defended by St. Jerome (22). 



The Virginal Conception 

Mary's virginity in the conception of her Son was 
foretold by Isaias (Is. vii, 14) : " A virgin shall con- 
ceive, and bear a son." The virginal conception is 
clearly the literal sense of this text; otherwise, as St. 
Justin pointed out to Tryphon (23), there would be 
no question of a sign, as Isaias had promised. Gabriel 
also gave testimony to the virginal conception at the 
Annunciation : " The Holy Ghost shall come upon 
thee, and : the power of the Most High shall over- 
shadow thee." The message given by the angel to St. 
Joseph is to the same effect: " Joseph, son of David, 
fear not to take unto thee Mary, thy wife, for that 
which is conceived in her is of the Holy Ghost" (Matt, 
i, 20). And St. Luke says of Jesus: "... being (as it 
was supposed) the son of Joseph " (Luke iii, 23). 

Tradition confirms that the conception of Christ 
was virginal, as can be learned from the testimonies 
of St. Ignatius the Martyr, Aristides, St. Justin, Ter- 
tullian, St. Irenaeus. All the creeds teach that the 
Son of God made flesh " was conceived by the Virgin 
Mary, by the operation of the Holy Ghost (24). It was 

(21) Cf. Denzinger, nos. 20, 91, 113, 143 sqq., 201, 214, 255 
sqq., 282, 293, 344. 429, 462. 708, 735, 993. 1314, 1462. 

(22) De perpetua virginitate B. Mariae adversus Helvidium, 
P.L.. XXIII. 183-205. 

(23) Dial, cum Tryphone, LXXXIV; P. G., VI, 673. 

(24) Denz., 6 sqq. 



MARY'S PERPETUAL VIRGINITY 



123 



defined by the Lateran Council under Pope Martin I 
in 649 (25) and it was reaffirmed by Paul IV against 
the Socinians (26). 

The arguments which show the appropriateness of 
the virginal conception are exposed by St. Thomas 
(27) : 1 — It is appropriate that He Who is the natural 
Son of God should have no father on earth, but only 
in heaven; 2 — The Word, conceived eternally in the 
most complete purity, should be conceived virginally 
when being made flesh; 3 — That the human nature 
of the Saviour be exempt from original sin it was ap- 
propriate that it should not be formed by the ordinary 
process of human generation, but virginally; 4 — By 
being born of a virgin Christ showed that His 
members should be born by the Spirit of His virginal 
and spiritual spouse, the Church. 

The Virginal Birth 

St. Ambrose bears witness to the virginal birth 
when commenting on the text of Isaias : " A virgin 
shall conceive, and bear a son "; she will be a virgin, 
he says, in giving birth as well as in conceiving (28). 
The same had been said earlier by St. Ignatius the 
Martyr (29), Aristides (30), Clement of Alexandria 
(31). It was denned by the Lateran Council (32). 

St. Thomas gives the following arguments to show 
the appropriateness of the virginal birth: 1 — The 

(25) Denz., 256. 

(26) Denz., 993. 

(27) UTa, q.28. a.l. 

(28) Epist. XLII ad Siricium Papam. P. L., XVI, 1124: "Non 
pnim concepturam tantum modo virginem, sed et parituram 
(Isaias) dixit." 

(29) Ad Ephes.. xv, 1. 

(30) Ex vita Barlaam et Josaphat, P. G., XCVI. 1121. 

(31) Strom.. VII. xvl; P. G., IX, 529. 

(32) Denz., 256; item 993. 



124 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



Word, Who is conceived and Who proceeds eternally 
from the Father without any corruption of His sub- 
stance, should, if He becomes flesh, be born of a virgin 
mother without detriment to her virginity; 2 — He 
Who came to remove all corruption should not by His 
birth destroy the virginity of her who bore Him; 3— 
He Who commands us to honour our parents should 
not Himself diminish by His birth the glory of His 
holy mother. 



The Perpetual Virginity of Mary after the 
Saviour's Birth 

The Lateran Council affirmed this point of doctrine 
in 649, as did Paul IV later against the Socinians (33). 

Among the Greek Fathers two deserve special 
mention as having explicitly taught it: Origen (34) 
and St. Gregory the Wonderworker (35). The ex- 
pression semper virgo — " always a virgin " — is 
common in the 4th century, especially in the works 
of St. Athanasius and Didymus the Blind (36). It 
was also used by the 2nd Council of Constantinople 
(37). The Latin Fathers are represented by Saints 
Ambrose (38), Augustine (39), and Jerome (40). St. 
Ephrem voices the mind of the Syraic Church (41). 

St. Thomas's arguments to show the appropriate- 
ness of the perpetual virginity are as follows (Ilia, 

(33) Denz., 256; 993. 

(34) In Matt., t. X, xvii; P. G, XIII. 876 B; Homil. VII in 
Luc; P. G., XIII, 1818. 

(35) Serm. in Nativit. Christi; P. G, X, 391. 

(36) St. Athanas., Orat. II contra Arianos, LXX; P. G., XXVI, 
296; Didymus, De Trinitate, I. xxvii; P. G., XXXIX, 404. 

(37) Denz., 214. 218. 

(38) Epist. XLU ad Siricium Papam; P. L.. XVI. 1124. 

(39) Serm. Ill in Natali Domini, n.l: P.L., XXXVIII, 995. 

(40) De perpetua virginitate B. Mariae adversus Helvidium. 

(41) S. Ephrem Syri opera, ed. Rom., 1743, t. II, p. 267. 



MARY'S INCREASE IN GRACE AFTER THE INCARNATION 125 



q.28, a.3) : 1 — Helvidius's error is opposed to the dig- 
nity of Christ himself, for just as He is the only Son 
in eternity of the Father so also He ought to be the 
only Son in time of the Virgin; 2 — It is opposed also 
to the dignity of the Holy Ghost Who sanctified once 
and for ever the virginal womb of Mary; 3 — It is 
opposed to the dignity and holiness of the Mother of 
God as it would imply that she was dissatisfied with 
having borne such a Son; 4 — Finally, St. Joseph 
would have been guilty of the greatest presumption 
had he violated the virginity of her whom he knew, 
by the angel, to have conceived of the Holy Ghost 
(42). 

St. Thomas explains also (Ilia, q.28, a.4) the 
commonly accepted teaching that the Blessed Virgin 
had taken a vow of perpetual virginity. Her words 
to the angel prove the point: "How shall this be 
done, because I know not man?" Tradition is summed 
up in the phrase of St. Augustine's : " Virgo es, sancta 
es, votum vovisti " (43). 



Article V 

The Principal Mysteries Which Contributed to 
Mary's Increase in Grace after the Incarnation 

These mysteries are those especially which the 
Rosary proposes for our consideration. 

(42) Those mentioned in the New Testament as brothers of 
the Lord were merely relatives, as tradition has always taught. 
The Hebrew word corresponding to " brother " signified near 
relative, and was used to cover cousins, nephews, etc. Cf. Gen, 
xiii, 8; xiv, 6. Cf. A. Durand, Freres du Seigneur in Diet. 
Apol. 

'43) Sermo CCCX in Natali Joannis Bapt.; P. L., XXXVIII, 
1319. 



126 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



The Nativity 

Mary grew in humility, poverty and love of God by 
giving birth to her Son in a stable. His cradle was 
but a manger. But, by contrast, there were the 
angels there to sing "Glory to God in the highest; 
and on earth peace to men of good will." Those 
words were sweet to the ears of the shepherds and of 
St. Joseph, and still more sweet to the ears of Mary. 
They were the beginning of a Gloria which the 
Church does not cease to sing at Mass while this 
world endures, and the liturgy of eternity has not 
yet replaced that of time. 

It is said of Mary that she kept all these words, 
pondering them in her heart. Though her joy at the 
birth of her Son was intense, she treasured it up in 
silence. St. Elisabeth alone received her confidences. 
God's greatest actions defy human expression. What 
could Mary say to equal what she had experienced? 



The Presentation in the Temple 

Mary said her Fiat in peace and holy joy on the 
day of the Annunciation. There was sorrow too in 
her heart at the thought of the sufferings which 
Isaias had foretold would befall her Son. Still more 
light is thrown for her on the mystery of the Redemp- 
tion when the holy old man Simeon speaks of the 
•child Jesus as the " Salvation, which thou hast pre- 
pared before the face of all peoples: A light to the 
revelation of the Gentiles." Mary remains silent in 
wonder and thanksgiving. Simeon continues : " This 
child is set for the fall, and for the resurrection of 
many in Israel, and for a sign which shall be contra- 
dicted." Jesus, come for the salvation of all, will be 



MARY'S INCREASE IN GRACE AFTER THE INCARNATION 127 



the occasion of the fall of many, he will be a 
stumbling block (Is. viii, 14) for many of the Jews, 
who, refusing to recognise Him as the Messiah, will 
fall into infidelity and thence to eternal ruin (Rom. 
ix, 32; I Cor. i, 13). Jesus Himself will say later: 
" Blessed is he that shall not be scandalized in me " 
(Matt, xi, 6). 

Turning then to Mary herself, Simeon addressed to 
her the prophetic words: " And thy own soul a sword 
shall pierce, that out of many hearts thoughts may 
be revealed." Mary will have a share in the Saviour's 
trials. His sufferings will be hers. Her very heart 
will be pierced by a sword of sorrow. Had the Son of 
Man not come thus on earth we should never have 
known the full malice of pride's revolt against truth. 
The hidden thoughts of hypocrisy and false zeal were 
revealed when the Pharisees cried out for the cruci- 
fixion of Him Who is Holiness. 

Jesus' fulness of grace had two apparently contra- 
dictory effects: the most perfect peace of soul; the 
will to offer Himself as a redemptive victim. Mary's 
grace produced two similarly contrasting effects : the 
pure joys of the days of the Annunciation and the 
Nativity; the desire to be united most generously to 
the sufferings of her Son for our salvation. Thus, 
presenting Him in the temple, she already offers Him 
for us. Joy and sorrow are wedded in the heart of 
the Mother of God who is already the Mother of all 
who will believe in her Son. 

The Flight into Egypt 

St. Matthew tells us how. after the Magi had come 
to adore, an angel appeared to Joseph in his sleep 
saying : " Arise, and take the Child and his mother, 
and fly into Egypt: and be there until I shall tell 



128 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



thee. For it will come to pass that Herod will seek 
the Child to destroy him." True to the angel's pro- 
phecy, Herod ordered the massacre of all the children 
of two years and under, in and around Bethlehem. 

It is Jesus Whom this king fears. He fears where 
there is no reason to fear, and despises God's anger 
which he should hold in dread. Mary and Joseph are 
called to share in Jesus' sufferings. "Before, they 
had lived in peace and earned their bread without 
anxiety by the labour of their hands. But as soon as 
Jesus is given to them their tranquil calm is broken 
. . . they must share in His Cross " (44). The Holy 
Innocents share also in the Cross. Their massacre 
shows us that they were predestined from all eternity 
for the glory of martyrdom. 

When Herod has died, an angel appears again to 
Joseph to tell him that the time has come to go to 
Nazareth in Galilee. 



The Hidden Life of Nazareth 

Mary grew continuously in grace and charity as 
she carried the infant in her arms, fed Him, embraced 
Him and was caressed by Him, heard His first words, 
guided His first steps. 

" Jesus advanced in wisdom and age and grace with 
God and men." Arrived at the age of twelve years, 
He accompanied Mary and Joseph to Jerusalem for 
the Pasch. When the day of departure came, He 
remained in the city unknown to His parents. It was 
only after three days that they found Him in the 
midst of the doctors. And He said to them: " How is 
it that you sought me: did you not know that I must 

(44) Bossuet, Elevations, 19th Week, 3rd Elevation. 



MARY'S INCREASE IN GRACE AFTER THE INCARNATION 129 



be about my Father's business?" But Mary and 
Joseph "understood not the word that he spoke to 
them." 

Mary accepted in faith what she could not as yet 
understand. The depth and the extent of the Mystery 
of the Redemption will be revealed to her only 
gradually. She is glad to have found Jesus again. But 
in her joy sounds many an overtone of sadnesses yet 
to come. 

Bossuet has some remarkable reflections on the 
hidden life, which lasted up to the time of Jesus' 
public ministry (45). 

" There are some who feel ashamed for Jesus' sake 
that He should have endured the wearisomeness of 
so long a retirement. They experience much the 
same feelings in regard to Mary, and try to enliven 
her period at Nazareth by attributing continual 
miracles to her. Rather let us pay heed to the words 
of the gospel : " Mary kept all these words in her 
heart." Was not that a task worthy of her? And if 
the mysteries of His infancy were so rich a subject 
for her meditation, what of the mysteries that suc- 
ceeded them? Mary meditated on Jesus ... she re- 
mained in perpetual contemplation, her heart 
melting, as it were, in love and longing. What then 
shall we say to those who invented so many pretty 
fables about Our Lady? What, if not that humble 
and perfect contemplation did not seem enough in 
their eyes? But if it was enough for thirty years of 
Mary's— and of Jesus'— life, it was enough for the 
other years too. The silence of the Scriptures about 
Mary is more eloquent than all discourses. Learn, 
O man, in the midst of your restless activity, to be 
satisfied to think of Jesus, to listen to Him within, to 



(45) Elevations, 20th Week, 9th and 10th Elevations. 

- I 



130 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

hear again His words ... Of what are you complaining, 
human pride, when you say you count for little in 
this world? Did Jesus count for much there? Or 
Mary? They were the wonder of the world, the sight 
that ravished God and angels. And what did they do? 
What name did they bear? Men wish to bear an 
honoured name, to take part in brilliant movements. 
They do not know Jesus and Mary . . . You say you 
have nothing to do. The salvation of souls is in your 
hands— in part, at least ! Do you not know enemies 
whom you could help to reconcile, quarrels you could 
mend? Are there not souls in misery you could save 
from blasphemy and despair? And even if you have 
nothing of all that, have you not the work of your 
own salvation, which is for every soul the true work 
of God?" 

Reflecting on the hidden life of Nazareth and on 
Mary's spiritual progress in its silence, and reflecting 
by way of contrast on what the world terms progress, 
we are forced to conclude : men never talked more of 
progress than since they began to neglect its most 
important form, spiritual progress. And what has 
been the result? That the baser forms of progress, 
sought for their own sake, have brought pleasure, 
idleness and unemployment in their train, and pre- 
pared the way for a moral decline towards 
materialism, atheism— and even barbarism, as the 
recent world wars prove. In Mary, on the contrary, 
we find the ever more perfect realisation of the 
gospel words: "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God, 
with thy whole heart, and with thy whole soul, and 
with all thy strength, and with all thy mind." The 
further she advances the more she loves God with all 
her heart, for the more she sees the opposition to 
Jesus growing in the course of His ministry up to the 
consummation of the mystery of the Redemption. 



MARY'S INCREASE IN GRACE AFTER THE INCARNATION 131 



The Cause of Mary's Dolours on Calvary and the 
intensity of her Love of God and of her Son 
and of Souls 

What was the profound cause of Mary's sorrows on 
Calvary? Every christian soul for whom practice has 
made the Stations of the Cross familiar will answer: 
the cause of Mary's sorrows, as of those of Jesus, was 
sin. Happy the souls for whom that answer is a vital 
truth, who experience true sorrow at the thought of 
their own sins— a sorrow that only grace can produce 
in them. 

We understand but little of the sorrows of Mary, 
for little grieves us except what wounds our bodies, 
our self-love, our vanity, or our pride. We suffer too 
from men's ingratitude, from the afflictions of our 
family or our native land. But sin grieves us but 
little. We have but little sorrow for our faults con- 
sidered as offences against God. In theory, we admit 
that sin is the greatest of evils since it affects the soul 
itself and its faculties, and since it is the cause of the 
disorders which we deplore in society; it is only too 
evidently the cause of the enmity between classes and 
nations. But in spite of that we do not experience 
any great sorrow for the faults whereby we contribute 
more or less ourselves to the general disorder. Our 
superficiality and our inconstancy prevent us from 
seeing what an evil sin is; precisely because it strikes 
■•;<> deep it cannot be known by those who look only 
at the surface. In its manner of ravaging souls and 
society, sin is like one of those diseases which affect 
vital but hidden organs, and which the sufferer is 
Ignorant of even while they near a crisis. 

To experience salutary grief, grief for sin, it is 
necessary truly to love God Whom sin offends and 
sinners whom it destroys. The saints suffered from 



132 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



sin in the degree in which they loved God and souls. 
St. Catherine of Siena recognised souls in the state 
of mortal sin by the insupportable odour which they 
exhaled. But to know just how far grief for sin can 
go, one must turn to the heart of Mary. Her grief 
sprang from an unequalled love for God, for Jesus 
crucified, and for souls — a love which surpassed that 
of the greatest saints, and even of all the saints 
united, a love which had never ceased to grow, a love 
which had never been restrained by the slightest 
fault or imperfection. If such was Mary's love, what 
must her grief have been! Unlike us who are so 
superficial, she saw with piercing clarity what it was 
that caused the loss of so many souls: the concupi- 
scence of the flesh, the concupiscence of the eyes, the 
pride of life. All sins combined to add to her grief; 
all revolts against God, all outbursts of sacrilegious 
rage, such as that which reached its paroxysm in the 
cry " Crucify Him " and in utter hatred of Him Who 
is the Light Divine and the Author of Salvation. 

Mary's grief was deep as was her love, both natural 
and supernatural, of her Son. She loved Him with a 
virginal love, most pure and tender; loved Him as her 
only Son, miraculously conceived, and as her God. 

To understand Mary's dolours, one would need to 
have received, as did the stigmatics, the impression 
of the wounds of the Saviour; one would need to have 
relived with the mystics His physical and moral 
sufferings, and to have shared with Him the hours 
of His Passion and Death. We shall try once more to 
speak of this matter when considering Mary as 
Mediatrix and Coredemptrix, and the reparation 
which she offered with, and by, and in her Son. 

Mary's love in her dolours was meritorious for us 
and for her also. By her sufferings she grew in 
charity as well as in faith, and hope, and religion; 



MARY'S INCREASE IN GRACE AFTER THE INCARNATION 133 

she grew in fact in all the virtues— those of humility, 
and meekness, and supernatural courage suggesting 
themselves especially to the mind. Her virtue in 
suffering was heroic in the highest degree. Thereby 
she became Queen of Martyrs. 

On the hill of Calvary, grace and charity overflowed 
from the Heart of Jesus to the heart of His mother. 
He it was Who sustained her, just as it was she who 
sustained St. John. Jesus offered up her martyrdom 
as well as His own, and she offered herself with her 
Son, Who was more dear to her than her own life. 
If the least of the acts of Nazareth increased Mary's 
charity, what must have been the effect of her par- 
ticipation in the Cross of Jesus ! 

Pentecost 

The glorious resurrection of Our Saviour and His 
different apparitions all marked new stages in Mary's 
spiritual growth. She saw in them the realisation of 
so many of Jesus' prophecies. She saw in them too 
His victory over death, a sign of Good Friday's victory 
over Satan. 

The mystery of the Ascension raised Mary's 
thoughts still higher heavenwards. The evening of 
that day, when she withdrew to the Supper-room 
with the Apostles (Acts i, 14) she must have felt, as 
they too did, how empty the world was without Jesus. 
The difficulty of converting the pagan world loomed 
up in all its magnitude. The presence of Our Lady 
helped the Apostles to face it. In union with Jesus 
she merited, de congruo, the graces they were about 
to receive in this room where the Blessed Eucharist 
had been instituted, where they had been ordained 
priests, and where the Master had appeared to them 
after His Resurrection. 



134 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



The day of Pentecost comes. The Holy Ghost de- 
scends on Mary and on the Apostles in the form of 
tongues of fire, to give the final enlightenment 
concerning the mysteries of man's salvation, and to 
impart the strength needed for the immense and ar- 
duous task that awaited its accomplishment. On 
that day, the Apostles were confirmed in grace. St. 
Peter went forth to manifest by his preaching that 
he had received fulness of knowledge of the mystery 
of Jesus Christ, Saviour and Author of newness of 
life. One and all, from being fearful the apostles 
became courageous, rejoicing to suffer for the name 
of Jesus. How marvellous must not Mary's progress 
have been — she who was to be on earth, as it were, 
the heart of the infant Church ! 

Now that Jesus has ascended to heaven no one will 
participate as she in His love for His Father and for 
souls. By her prayer, her contemplation, her cease- 
less generosity, she will, in some way, sustain the 
souls of the Twelve, following them as a mother in 
the labours and difficulties of their apostolate, right 
up to the crown of martyrdom. They are her sons. 
The Church will later call her Queen of Apostles. 
Even now she cares for them and makes their work 
fruitful by a continual oblation of herself in union 
with the sacrifice of Jesus perpetuated on the altar. 



Mary, Model of Devotion to the Eucharist 

It is most becoming to insist here a little on what 
Holy Mass and Holy Communion, received from the 
hands of St. John, must have meant for Our Blessed 
Lady. 

Why had Mary been committed to St. John on 
Calvary rather than to the holy women who were 



MARY'S INCREASE IN GRACE AFTER THE INCARNATION 135 



also at the foot of the Cross? The reason was that 
St. John was a priest and had a treasure which they 
could not give her, the treasure of the Eucharist. 

Why among the Apostles was John chosen rather 
than Peter? One reason is that John alone remained 
at the Cross, drawn and held there by a strong sweet 
grace. Another is that he is, as St. Augustine re- 
marks, the model of the contemplative life, of the 
interior and hidden life which had always been that 
of Mary and which would be hers till death. Mary's 
life will be cast in a very different mould from that 
of Peter, for she will have no share in ruling the 
Church. Her vocation will be to contemplate and to 
love Our Saviour in His sacramental presence, and to 
obtain by her unceasing prayer the spread of the 
faith and the salvation of souls. She will be thus in a 
very real sense the heart of the infant Church, for 
none other will enter as she into the depths and the 
strength of the love of Jesus (46). 

Let us consider her in this hidden life, especially at 
the hour when John celebrated Holy Mass in her 
presence. Mary has not the priestly character; she 
cannot perform the priestly functions. But she has 
received, in the words of M. Olier, " the plenitude of 
the priestly spirit," which is the spirit of Christ the 
Redeemer. Thus she is able to penetrate deeper than 

R ,ricHL^ t -T, T ? 0m ? s ^i a ^ s ; ^^-l' a '!' ad 3 - speaking of the 
Mystical Body of Christ: "The head has evident superiority 
over the members, whereas the heart exercises a hidden in- 
fluence. That is why the Holy Ghost Who vivifies and unifies 
the Church invisibly is compared to the heart, and Christ in 
His visible nature, is compared to the head." From another 

p ," in ,L of v i ew ; we 1 ay that Hol y Ghos t is like the soul of 
• lie Church, since the invisible soul is whole in the whole body 
and whole in each of its parts, though exercising its higher 
I unctions in the head. Mary's influence has been well com- 
pared to that of the heart, since it remains hidden, and since 
It Is principally of the affective order— the influence of a 
mother. 



136 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



St. John himself into the meaning of the mysteries 
he celebrates. Besides, her dignity of Mother of God 
is greater than that of ordained priest; she has given 
us both the Priest and the Victim of the sacrifice of 
the Cross and she has offered herself with Him. 

Holy Mass was for her, in a degree we can only sus- 
pect, the memorial and the continuation of the 
sacrifice of the Cross. A sword of sorrow had pierced 
her heart on Calvary, the strength and tenderness of 
her love for Jesus making her suffer a true 
martyrdom. She suffered so much that the memory 
of Calvary could never grow dim, and each Holy Mass 
was a fresh renewal of all she lived through there. 
Mary found the same Victim on the altar when John 
said Mass. She found the same Jesus, really present; 
not present in image only, but in the substance of His 
Body with His Soul and Divinity. True, there was no 
immolation in blood, but there was a sacramental 
immolation, realised through the separate consecra- 
tion of the bread and the wine : Jesus' blood is shed 
sacramentally on the altar. How expressive is that 
figure of His death for her who cannot forget, for her 
who bears always in the depths of her soul the image 
of her Son, outraged and wounded, for her who hears 
yet the insults and the blasphemies offered Him. St. 
John's Mass with Mary present at it, was the most 
striking memorial of the Cross as it is perpetuated in 
its substance on our altars. 



Mary Found in the Sacrifice of the Mass the Point 
of Contact of the Cults of Heaven and Earth 

It is the same Victim Who is offered at Holy Mass 
and Who, in Heaven, offers His glorious wounds to the 
Heavenly Father. The Body of Christ never ceases 



MARY'S INCREASE IN GRACE AFTER THE INCARNATION 137 

to be in heaven, it is true. It does not come down from 
heaven, in the strict sense of the terms, on to the 
altar. But, without being multiplied, It is made really 
present by the transubstantiation of the substance 
of the bread and the wine into Itself. 

There is the same principal priest, or offerer, in 
heaven and on earth also, " always living to make 
intercession for us " (Hebrews vii, 25). The celebrant 
of the Mass is but a minister who speaks in Jesus' 
name. When he says " This is my body " it is Jesus 
Who speaks by him. 

It is Jesus Who, as God, gives to the words their 
power of transubstantiation. It is Jesus as Man 
Who, by an act of His holy soul, transmits the divine 
power and Who continues to offer Himself thus for 
us as principal priest. If the human minister ever 
happens to be slightly distracted, the principal 
Offerer is not distracted, and Jesus as Man, continu- 
ing to offer Himself sacramentally for us, sees all that 
we miss— sees all the spiritual influence exercised by 
each Mass on the faithful present and absent, and on 
the souls in Purgatory. 

Jesus continues to offer Himself in each Mass, the 
actual offering being made through the hands of His 
minister. The soul of the sacrifice of our altars is the 
interior oblation which is always a living reality in 
His Sacred Heart; through that oblation He applies 
to us continually the merits and satisfaction of 
Calvary. The saints have sometimes seen Jesus in 
the priest's place at the moment of consecration. 
Mary knew the full truth better than any of the 
saints. Better than any of them she knew that the 
soul of every Mass was the oblation that lived in her 
Son's Heart. She understood too that when, this 
world having reached its term, the last Mass would 
have been said, Jesus' interior oblation would con- 



138 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



tinue for ever, not now as supplication but as adora- 
tion and thanksgiving — as the eternal cult 
expressed even now at Mass by the Sanctus in honour 
of the thrice-holy God. 

How did Mary unite herself to the oblation of 
Jesus, the principal priest? She united herself to it, 
as we shall explain later, as universal mediatrix and 
co-redemptrix. She continued to unite herself to it 
as at the foot of the Cross — in a spirit of adoring 
reparation, in petition and thanksgiving. Model of 
victim-souls, she offered up the anguish she suffered 
at those denials of the divinity of Jesus which 
prompted St. John to write his fourth Gospel. She 
offered thanks for the institution of the Blessed 
Eucharist and for all the benefits of which It is the 
source. She prayed for the conversion of sinners, 
for the progress of the good, for the help the Apostles 
needed in their work and their sufferings. 

In all that Mary is our model, teaching us how to 
become adorers in spirit and in truth. 

What shall we say of Mary's communions? The 
principal condition for a fervent communion is to 
hunger for the Eucharist. The saints hungered for It. 
When Holy Communion was denied St. Catherine of 
Siena, her desires obtained that a portion of the large 
Host broke off unknown to the celebrant and was 
carried miraculously to the saint. But Mary's hunger 
for the Eucharist was incomparably greater and 
more intense than that of the saints. Let us con- 
template reverently the strong loving desire which 
drew Mary to Jesus in the Blessed Sacrament. 

Every soul is drawn towards God, for He is the 
Sovereign Good for Whom we have been made. But 
the consequences of sin — original and actual — and of 
innumerable imperfections make God appear un- 
attractive in our eyes and weaken our inborn desire 



MARY'S INCREASE IN GRACE AFTER THE INCARNATION 139 1 



for union with Him. Mary's soul, however, knew 
nothing of the consequences of sins and imperfec- 
tions; nothing ever checked the godwards tendency 
of her wonderful charity. Forgetting herself, Mary 
turned firmly towards God, with a firmness that grew 
daily as did her merits. The Holy Ghost dwelling in 
her moved her to give herself to God and to be united 
to Him. Her love of God, like an intense thirst, was 
accompanied by a sweet suffering which ceased only 
when she died of love and entered on the union of 
eternity. Such was her desire of the Eucharist. 

Jesus for His part desired most ardently to con- 
summate Mary's holiness, to communicate to her the 
overflowing riches of His Sacred Heart. If He could 
suffer in glory, He would suffer from the resistance we 
offer to the same desire He has in our regard. But He 
found no resistance in Mary. And so He was able to 
communicate Himself to her in the most intimate 
way possible for two lives to be fused into one on 
earth : Jesus' union with Mary was a reflection of the 
sanctifying union of the Word with the Sacred 
Humanity, an image of the communion of the Three 
Divine Persons in the one infinite Truth and the one 
limitless Goodness. 

Mary became again the pure living tabernacle of 
the Lord when she communicated — a tabernacle 
which knew and loved; one a thousand times more 
precious than any golden ciborium; a true tower of 
ivory, house of gold, and ark of the alliance. 

What were the effects of Mary's communion? They 
surpassed anything St. Teresa recounts of trans- 
forming union in the Seventh Mansion of the In- 
terior Castle. Transforming union has been compared, 
in its power to transform the soul in some way into 
God by knowledge and love, to the union of fire with 
a piece of iron, or that of light with the air it 



140 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

illumines. Rays of supernatural warmth and light 
came forth from the soul of Jesus and communicated 
themselves to Mary's intellect and will. Mary could 
not take the credit to herself for the sublime effects 
they produced in her. Rather did she give praise on 
their account to Him Who was their principle and 
end : " He that eateth me, the same also shall live by 
me " : he who eats my flesh lives by me and for me, 
just as I live by my Father and for my Father. 

Each of Mary's communions surpassed the pre- 
ceding one in fervour and, producing in her a great 
increase of charity, disposed her to receive her next 
Communion with still greater fruit. Mary's soul 
moved ever more swiftly Godwards the nearer she 
approached to God; that was her law of spiritual 
gravitation. She was, as it were, a mirror which 
reflected back on Jesus the light and warmth which 
she received from Him ; concentrated them also, so as 
to direct them towards souls. 

In everything she was the perfect model of 
Eucharistic devotion. If we turn to her she will teach 
us how to adore and to make reparation; she will 
teach us what should be our desire of the Blessed 
Eucharist. From here we can learn how to pray at 
Holy Mass for the great intentions of the Church, and 
how to thank God for the graces without number He 
has bestowed on us and on mankind. 



Article VI 

Mary's Intellectual Endowments and her 
Principal Virtues 

To understand Mary's fulness of grace, especially 
towards the end of her life on earth, it is necessary 



MARY'S INTELLECTUAL ENDOWMENTS AND HER PRINCIPAL VIRTUES 141 

to examine the perfection of her intellect. We must 
consider her faith, enlightened by the gifts of 
Wisdom, Understanding and Knowledge. It will be 
necessary then to pass on to a consideration of some 
of her principal virtues, which, through their con- 
nection with her charity, were in her soul in a 
degree proportionate to her fulness of grace. To 
conclude this section we shall glance briefly at the 
gratuitous gifts of intellect which she received, par- 
ticularly those of prophecy and the discernment of 
spirits. 



Mary's Faith Enlightened by the Gifts 

The natural perfection of Mary's soul resulted in 
very great powers of penetration in her intellect, as 
well as moral rectitude in her will and her lower 
faculties. These natural endowments continued to 
develop throughout the course of her life. 

As regards her faith, it perceived its object in an 
exceptionally penetrating manner because of the 
revelation made to her at the Annunciation con- 
cerning the mysteries of the Incarnation and the 
Redemption, and because also of her daily intercourse 
with the Word made Flesh. Subjectively also her 
faith was remarkable, being strong, certain and 
prompt in its assent. In fact, Mary received the virtue 
of faith in the highest degree in which it was infused 
into any soul on earth, and the same must be said of 
her hope also. Jesus, having the beatific vision from 
the first instant of His conception, had neither faith 
nor hope: to Him belonged the full light of vision 
and full undelayed possession. 

Hence, the sublimity of Mary's faith surpasses our 
understanding. She did not hesitate at the Annun- 



142 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



ciation but believed at once the very moment the 
mystery of the redemptive Incarnation was 
sufficiently proposed to her, so that St. Elisabeth can 
say soon after : " And blessed art thou that hast be- 
lieved, because these things shall be accomplished 
that were spoken to thee by the Lord." In Bethlehem 
she sees her Son born in a stable and believes that 
He is the Creator of the world; she sees all the weak- 
ness of His infant body and believes in His 
omnipotence; when He commences to essay His first 
words she believes His infinite wisdom; when the 
Holy Family takes flight from Herod's anger she 
believes that Jesus is the King of Kings and Lord of 
Lords, as St. John would later say. At the Circum- 
cision and the Presentation in the Temple her faith 
in the mystery of the Redemption expands. Her 
whole life on earth was passed in a dark brightness, 
the darkness arising not from human error and 
ignorance but from the very transcendence of the 
light itself — a darkness which was, in consequence, 
revealing of the heights of the mysteries contem- 
plated by the blessed in heaven. 

She is at the foot of the Cross on Calvary, though 
all the Apostles, St. John only excepted, have fled; 
she stands erect there, firm in her faith that her Son 
is the Son of God, that He is the Lamb of God Who 
is even then taking away the sins of the world, that 
though apparently defeated, He is Victor over Satan 
and sin, and that in three days He will conquer death 
by His resurrection. Mary's act of faith on Calvary 
was the greatest ever elicited on earth, for the hour 
was unspeakably dark and its object was the most 
difficult of all— that Jesus had won the greatest of 
victories by making the most complete of 
immolations. 

Her faith was aided then by the gifts of the Holy 



MARY'S INTELLECTUAL ENDOWMENTS AND HER PRINCIPAL VIRTUES 143 



Ghost. By the gift of Understanding she read far 
into the revealed mysteries, far into their inner 
meaning, their harmony, their appropriateness, 
their consequences. She was particularly favoured 
in her understanding of the mysteries in which she 
herself had a part to play, such as the virginal con- 
ception of Christ, His Incarnation, and the whole 
economy of the Redemption. Brought as she had 
been into close contact with the Three Divine Persons, 
the mystery of the Blessed Trinity revealed more of 
its depths to her than to any other mere human 
being. 

By the gift of Wisdom the Holy Ghost enabled her 
to judge the things of God through a certain 
connaturality or sympathy which is based on charity 
(47). She knew therefore in an experimental 
manner how truly the great mysteries answer to our 
highest aspirations, and how grace continually 
awakens new desires in us so as to prepare the way 
for clearer light and more burning love. She relished 
the mysteries in the measure of her ever-growing 
charity, her humility, and her purity. In her were 
verified most strikingly the words " God gives His 
grace to the humble . . . Blessed are the pure of heart 
for they shall see God." Even on earth the pure have 
some vision of their Father in heaven. 

By the gift of Knowledge the Holy Ghost taught 
her to judge temporal things, at times as symbols of 
eternal and divine things (as, for example, to see the 
heavens telling the glory of God) or again in their 
nothingness and frailty so as to appreciate eternal 
life all the more by contrast. 



(47) Cf. Ila Ilae, q.45, a.2. 



144 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



Special Privileges 0/ Her Intellect 

Besides faith and the gifts of the Holy Ghost which 
all the faithful have as part of their spiritual 
organism, Mary, like many of the saints, had the 
gratiae gratis datae, or charismata which are given 
principally for the benefit of others rather than for 
the benefit of the person who receives them. These 
charismata are exterior signs having as purpose to 
confirm revelation or holiness, rather than fresh 
forms of sanctity. That is why they are distinct 
from grace, the infused virtues, and the gifts, all of 
which belong to a higher order (48). 

Regarding the charismata, theologians usually 
admit the principle: Mary received all privileges 
which it was becoming for her to receive, and which 
were not incompatible with her state, in a higher 
degree than the saints did. In other words, we cannot 
conceive of her as being inferior to the saints in the 
matter of charismata, seeing how much she sur- 
passed them in the matter of holiness. 

The principle is not, however, to be taken in a 
material sense. If, for example, certain saints have 
lived long months without food, if they have walked 
on the waters to come to another's aid, it does not 
follow that Mary did the same; it is enough if she 
received grace of a higher order in which such lower 
graces were contained and surpassed (49). At the 
same time, in virtue of the principle just now 
enunciated, we must assert that she had certain 
charismata, either certainly or very probably. 

First of all, she had by a special privilege a know- 
ledge of the Scriptures greater than that of any of 

(48) Cf. Ia Ilae. q.III, a.5. 

(49) Cf. E. Dublanchy, Diet, de Theol. Cath., article Marie, 
cols. 2367-2368; 2409-2413. 



MARY'S INTELLECTUAL ENDOWMENTS AND HER PRINCIPAL VIRTUES 145 

the saints, particularly in what concerned the 
Messiah, the redemptive Incarnation, the Blessed 
Trinity, the life of grace and of the virtues, and the 
life of eternity. And even though Mary did not 
receive the commission to share in the official 
ministry of the Church, she must have enlightened 
St. John and St. Luke concerning the infancy and 
the hidden life of Jesus (50). 

She must have known in a clear and penetrating 
manner all that was useful about objects of the 
natural order. Though she need not have known the 
chemical formula of such things as salt or water, it 
would still be possible for her to know their natural 
properties, and still more their higher symbolism. 
For Mary's knowledge of natural objects was of the 
kind which throws light upon the great religious and 
moral truths, such as the existence of God, His 
universal Providence extending to the minutest de- 
tails, the spirituality and immortality of the soul, free 
will and moral responsibility, the principles and 
conclusions of the moral law, the relation between 
nature and grace. She saw clearly the finality of 
nature, the order of creation, and the subordination 
.of every created cause to the First Cause. She saw 
that every good thing comes from God, even the free 
determination of our salutary and meritorious acts; 
she saw too that no one person would be better than 
another were he not more loved by God — a principle 
which is at the root of all humility and thanksgiving. 

The knowledge which Mary had while still on earth 

(50) Cajetan remarks in his commentary on the Ilia q 27 
a.5: Posset tamen dici quod non publica doctrina, sed 
familiari instructione, quam constat mulieribus non esse pro- 
hibitum, Virgo aliqua particularia facta explicavit 
Apostolis." Thus she did better and more frequently than 
Mary Magdalen, who obtained the title Apostolorum apostola 
through having announced th e Resurrection to the Apostles. 

K 



146 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



had limits, especially at the beginning. She did not, 
for example, understand the full import of what 
Jesus said about His Father's business when she found 
Him in the Temple. But, as has been often said, the 
limits were limits, not gaps. Hence she was in no sense 
ignorant, for the limits did not deprive her of the 
knowledge of anything she should have known at the 
time. God's Mother knew at every stage of her life 
all that it was becoming for her to know. 

Nor was she subject to error. She was never 
precipitate in judging; if she had not sufficient light 
she suspended her judgement; if she was not sure 
about a thing she was satisfied to affirm that it was 
likely or probable. For example, when she thought 
it likely that Jesus was not in the company of her 
friends and relatives on the occasion when she lost 
Him, her belief was a very likely one indeed— though 
in point of fact it was not true— and in looking on it 
as likely Mary did not err. 

We have seen earlier (Chapter II, art. 5) that it is 
very probable that she had infused knowledge from 
the time she was in her mother's womb. We have 
seen too that it is equally probable that she was never 
deprived of it in the course of her life, and that many 
theologians hold that she had the use of it even 
during her sleeping hours. 

Among Mary's gratuitous gifts we must include 
that of prophecy. An example of its exercise can be 
found in the Magnificat: "For behold from hence- 
forth all generations shall call me blessed." The 
realisation of this prophecy in the course of ages is 
as evident as is the meaning of the words themselves. 
It is more than likely that this was not the only occa- 
sion on which Mary used her prophetic gift since 
prophecy is so common among the saints, as for 



MARY'S INTELLECTUAL ENDOWMENTS AND HER PRINCIPAL VIRTUES 147 

example St. John Bosco and the Cure of Ars (51). 

Finally, she had, like so many saints, the gift of 
discernment of spirits, by which to recognise the 
spirit of God and to distinguish it from diabolical 
illusion and natural exaltation. It enabled her also 
to read the secrets of hearts, especially when someone 
came to ask counsel of her. Thus her advice was 
always sound, opportune and practical. 

Many theologians hold that Mary had the gift of 
tongues when she travelled in foreign countries — in 
Egypt, for example, and also in Ephesus (52). There 
is still greater reason for believing that she had this 
gift after the Assumption, for in her apparitions at 
Lourdes and La Salette and elsewhere she spoke the 
dialect of the district — the only one understood by 
those to whom she appeared. 

The question has been asked if Mary enjoyed on 
earth— even for a few instants — the face to face 
vision of the divine essence as the blessed in heaven 
do. On one point theologians are unanimous 
against Vega and Franciscus Verra: unlike her 
Divine Son, she had not that vision in a permanent 
way on earth, for if she had it permanently she would 
not have had the virtue of faith. But it is more diffi- 
cult to say whether or not she enjoyed the beatific 
vision from time to time. It is true that she must 
have had an intellectual vision of the Trinity higher 

(51) For this same reason many theologians teach that 
Mary had, particularly after the Ascension, the gift of miracu- 
lous healing and that she used it to lighten the sorrows of the 
nITllcted and to help the unfortunate who had recourse to her 
<>r whom she met. She was on earth the consoler of the 
uITlicted in such a manner as to manifest her great sanctity. 
This was the opinion of St. Albert the Great. St. Antoninus, 
and Suarez. and is common in most of the present-day 
manuals of Mariology. 

' r >2) Such was the teaching of St. Albert the Great, St. 
\ninninus. Gerson, Suarez, Cornelius a Lapide. Many modern 
theologians are of the same opinion. 



148 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



than that described by St. Teresa in the Seventh 
Mansion. But the vision of which St. Teresa speaks 
does not transcend faith, and is therefore immeasur- 
ably inferior to that of the blessed. 

Some light is thrown on the problem by what we 
know of St. Paul. St. Augustine and St. Thomas (53) 
teach that it is probable that St. Paul enjoyed the 
beatific vision momentarily when, in his own words, 
he was " caught up to the third heaven . . . and heard 
secret words which it is not given to man to utter " 
(II Cor. xii, 2). The two great doctors both mention 
that according to the Jews the third heaven was not 
merely the higher air, but the spiritual heaven in- 
habited by God, where He is seen face to face by the 
angels— Paradise, as St. Paul says in the same 
context. Hence they conclude that St. Paul, having 
been called to be the Doctor of the Gentiles and of 
grace, was probably favoured by a brief moment of 
the beatific vision, since grace cannot be understood 
fully without having seen the glory of which it is the 
beginning. The authority of two such Doctors, them- 
selves favoured with mystical graces and thus especi- 
ally competent to speak of such matters, is sufficient 
to constitute serious probability. It must, however, be 
admitted that neither Estius nor Cornelius a Lapide 
accept such an exegesis of St. Paul's text. Modern 
commentators tend to be non-committal. 

To return to Our Lady, we agree entirely with Fr. 
Hugon when he states that if it is probable that St. 
Paul enjoyed the beatific vision momentarily, it is 
difficult to see why the same should not be said of 
Our Blessed Lady (54), for her divine maternity, her 
fulness of grace, and her freedom from every stain 
disposed her more perfectly than any saint for the 

(53) Ila Ilae, q.175, a.3. 

(54) Marie, vleine de grAc* 5th edit., 1926. pp. 106 sqq. 



MARY'S INTELLECTUAL ENDOWMENTS AND HER PRINCIPAL VIRTUES 149 



beatitude of eternity. Hence, even if it is not certain 
that she had moments of the beatific vision, it re- 
mains very probable (55). 

This brief survey will suffice to give some idea of the 
rich intellectual gifts which Mary enjoyed on earth. 



Mary's Principal Virtues 

We have spoken already of her faith. A few words 
may now be said of her hope and her charity, as well 
as of the cardinal virtues and the virtues of humility 
and meekness. 

Her hope, by which she tended to the possession of 
God Whom she did not as yet fully possess, was a 
perfect confidence and trust which relied not on self 
but on the divine mercy and omnipotence. It was 
therefore sure (56). And its sureness was increased 
by the gift of Piety. For Piety awakens in us a filial 
attitude to God, and by it the Holy Ghost " giveth 
testimony to our spirit that we are the sons of God " 
(Rom. viil, 16) and assures us that we can count on 
His assistance. It was increased also by the fact that 
Mary was confirmed in grace and preserved free from 
every shortcoming— lack of confidence as well as 
presumption. 

Some of the occasions for the exercise of hope in 
Mary's life spring at once to the mind. She exercised 
it when, yet a child, she awaited the coming of the 
Messiah and the salvation of all peoples; again, when 

(55) Cf. E. Dublanchy. Diet. Thiol. Cath., article Marie, col 
2410: "Probably conferred on Moses and St. Paul, the favour 
.should be attributed to Mary also on the principle which allows 
us to attribute to her as Mother of God and Co-Redemptrix or 
universal Mediatrix every grace conferred on the other saints 
imd in keeping with her dignity." 

(56) Cf. Ila, Ilae, q.18, a.4. 



150 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



she awaited the time that the secret of the virginal 
conception would be revealed to St. Joseph; again, 
when she fled into Egypt; again— and most of ail- 
when on Calvary all seemed lost, but she awaited the 
victory which her Son had foretold He would win 
over death. Finally, her confidence, her unshaken 
hope, sustained the Apostles in their ceaseless labours 
for the spread of the Gospel and the conversion of 
the pagan world. 

Her charity — her love of God in Himself and of souls 
for His sake— surpassed even in its beginnings the 
charity of all the saints combined, for it was of the 
same degree as her fulness of grace. Mary was always 
most intimately united to the Father as His best- 
beloved daughter, to the Son as His Virgin Mother, 
and to the Holy Ghost in a mystic marriage more 
perfect than the world had ever known. She was, in 
a way beyond all power of understanding, a living 
temple of the Trinity, loved by God more than all 
creatures, and corresponding perfectly with that love 
by consecrating herself fully to Him in the instant of 
her conception, and by living thenceforth in the most 
complete conformity to His Will. 

No disordered passion, no vain fear, no distraction, 
checked the surge of her love for God. Her love for 
souls was of the same intensity, she offered her Son 
and herself unceasingly for souls. 

The pages of the Gospel call many occasions to 
mind when her charity must have burned with a 
special flame — the Annunciation, the finding of Jesus 
after the three days' loss, Calvary ... Well may the 
Church apply to Mary the words of Ecclesiasticus 
(Eccl. xxiv, 24) " I am the mother of fair love, and of 
fear, and of knowledge, and of holy hope." 

The moral infused virtues are in all souls in the 
state of grace in the degree of their charity: pru- 



MARV'S INTELLECTUAL ENDOWMENTS AND HER PRINCIPAL VIRTUES 151 

dence in the intellect, to make their judgement right 
in accordance with God's law; justice in their will to 
prompt them to give every one his due; fortitude and 
temperance in their sensitive nature to bring it into 
conformity with reason and faith. The acquired 
virtues — which bear the same names — facilitate the 
exercise of the corresponding infused virtues. 

Mary's prudence directed all her actions undevia- 
tingly towards her supernatural destiny. All her 
actions were deliberate and meritorious. Thus the 
Church calls her the Virgin most prudent. Aided by 
the gift of Counsel she exercised prudence in a 
notable manner at the Annunciation when, troubled 
at the angel's word, she wondered what his salutation 
could mean, and again when she asked " How shall 
this be done, because I know not man?" Nor was her 
prudence less when, the angel having explained his 
mission, she accepted God's will : " Behold the hand- 
maid of the Lord; be it done to me according to thy 
word." 

She practised justice in its highest form—that is to 
say, justice in regard to God, which is the virtue of 
religion aided by the gift of Piety— when she con- 
secrated herself to God in the first instant of her 
being. She practised it also by her vow of virginity, 
her presentation of Jesus to His Father in the Temple, 
and her final offering of Him on the Cross. On Calvary 
she offered the greatest act of the virtue of religion 
in union with Jesus, the perfect sacrifice and the 
holocaust of infinite value 

Justice was always wedded to mercy in Mary. As 
did her Son, she forgave all the wrongs done to her 
and showed the greatest compassion for sinners. 
Then as now, she was the Mother of Mercy, Our Lady 
of Perpetual Succour. The words of the psalmist find 



152 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



in her their realisation: "The earth is full of the 
mercy of God." 

Fortitude, that firmness of soul which can with- 
stand the greatest dangers, the most difficult tasks, 
and the cruellest afflictions, was found in Mary in a 
no less eminent degree than the other virtues. At the 
foot of the Cross she did not flinch nor weaken, but 
stood courageously, as St. John tells us. Cajetan 
wrote a special tract, De spasmo Virginis, refuting the 
idea that Mary fainted on the road to Calvary. In this 
he was at one with Medina, Toletus, Suarez and with 
theologians generally, who all agree that Mary did 
not collapse under her grief. By her courageous 
bearing of trials Mary merited to be called Queen of 
Martyrs. She shared more intimately in Jesus' 
suffering by her inner union with Him than did all 
the martyrs by their exterior afflictions. This thought 
is called to mind by the Church on the Feast of the 
Compassion of Our Lady and the Feast of the Seven 
Dolours, particularly in the Stabat Mater: 



Fac ut portem Christi 

mortem, 
Passionis fac consortem 
Et plagas recolere. 

Fac me plagis vulnerari, 
Fac me cruce inebriari, 
Et cruore Filii. 



Let me to my latest breath, 
In my body bear the death 
Of that dying Son of thine. 

Wounded with His every 

wound, 
Steep my soul till it hath 

swoon'd 
In His very blood away. 

— Fr. Caswall. 



Temperance in its different forms, especially in that 
of perfect virginity, appeared in her angelic purity. 
In Mary the soul reigned over the body, the higher 



MARV'S INTELLECTUAL ENDOWMENTS AND HER PRINCIPAL VIRTUES 153 

faculties over the senses. The image of God was re- 
flected in her as in a mirror. 

Her humility never had to struggle against the 
slightest movement of pride or vanity. She recog- 
nised that of herself she was nothing and could do 
nothing in the supernatural order. Therefore she 
bowed down before the Divine Majesty and before all 
that there was of God in creation. She placed all her 
greatness in God alone, realising thus the words of 
the Missal: Deus humilium celsitudo. 

At the Annunciation she speaks of herself as the 
handmaid of the Lord, and in the Magnificat she 
thanks the Most High for having regarded her lowli- 
ness. On the day of the Purification she submits to a 
law which did not bind her. Her whole life long, 
humility was manifested in her bearing, her modesty, 
her voluntary poverty, in the lowly tasks she per- 
formed — and all that, even though she had received 
graces as no other mere human ever did. 

The Liturgy reminds us too of her meekness : Virgo 
singularis, inter omnes mitis. She uttered no word of 
reproach against those who crucified Jesus, but in 
union with Him she forgave them and prayed for 
them. Here we have meekness at its highest united 
to consummate fortitude. 

Such are, then, the intellectual endowments and the 
principal virtues with which Mary was adorned. They 
made her a model of the contemplative life, one 
characterised by devotion to the Incarnate Word, and, 
through participation in His redemptive work, one in 
whom we find the most universal of all hidden 
apostolates (57). 

(57) For a treatment of Mary's virtues cf. Justin de Miechow, 
O.P.; R. Bernard, O.P., he Mystere de Marie, Paris, 1933; Ram- 
baud, O.P., Douce Vierge Marie, Lyons, 1939: Journet in Notre 
Dame des Sept Douleurs; Lallement and Sertillanges in Mater 
Misericordiae. 



154 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



What we have said in this chapter about Mary's 
principal virtues and her intellectual endowments 
shows in a concrete way the general plan of her 
spiritual progress. It remains to speak in the next 
chapter of her final fulness of grace at the moment 
of her death and of her entry into heaven. We shall, 
then, have followed the stages of her spiritual life 
from her Immaculate Conception to her final glorifi- 
cation, a life which in its progress resembles a river 
rising at a great height and causing the fertility of 
the regions through which it passes, before it plunges 
at length into the mighty ocean. 



Chapter IV 
The Final Plenitude of Mary's Grace 



The plan of this chapter will be: to speak first of 
Mary's fulness of grace at the time of her death; then 
to recall the teaching of the Church concerning her 
Assumption; finally to treat of her fulness of grace as 
it unfolded itself in heaven. 



Article I 

Mary's Fulness of Grace at the Moment of Death 

Bossuet remarks (1) that Mary was left in the 
world after Jesus to console the Church. This she did 
by her prayers and ever-increasing merits which 
were the support of the Apostles in their labours and 
trials as well as the hidden source of the fecundity 
of all they did for souls. 

We have seen already that in Mary's case death 
was not a consequence of original sin, but simply of 
human nature as such. Man was not made immortal 
at the beginning otherwise than by a special privi- 
lege. The Incarnate Word willed to take passible 
flesh (2). Mary's flesh was passible too. Thus the 

(1) 2nd Sermon for the Feast of the Assumption. 

(2) This presupposes the sin of the first man; in fact, it is 
one of the most convincing reasons for asserting that, in the 
actual order of Providence, the Word would not have become 
flesh had not man sinned, for the actual efficacious decree of 



156 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



deaths of Jesus and Mary were consequences of the 
inherent weakness of human nature left to itself and 
unsustained by any preternatural gift. Jesus, how- 
ever, mastered death by accepting it for our salvation. 
Mary united herself to Him in His death, making for 
us the sacrifice of His life in the most generous 
martyrdom of heart the world has ever known after 
that of Our Saviour. And when, later on, the hour 
of her own death arrived, the sacrifice of her life had 
been already made. It remained but to renew it in 
that most perfect form which tradition speaks of as 
the death of love, a death, that is to say, in which the 
soul dies not simply in grace or in God's love, but of 
a calm and supremely strong love which draws the 
soul, now ripe for heaven, away from the body to be 
united to God in immediate and eternal vision. 

Mary's last moments are described by St. John 
Damascene (3) in the words " She died an extremely 
peaceful death." St. Francis de Sales' chapters in 
his treatise on the Love of God (ch. xiii and xiv) are 
an eloquent commentary on the words of St. John 
Damascene: 

" The Blessed Virgin, Mother of God, died of love 
for her Son ... It is impossible to conceive of her 
death as having been anything except a death of love, 
which is the most noble of all deaths and the fitting 
crown of the most noble of all lives ... If the early 
Christians were said to have but one heart and one 
soul because of their perfect mutual love, if St. Paul 
lived no longer for himself but Christ lived in him 
because of the intense union of his heart with the 
heart of his Master . . . how much more true is it that 

the Incarnation bears on the Incarnation as it was realised 
hie et nunc, that is to say, in came passibili, which even on 
the admission of the Scotists presupposes Adam's sin. 

(3) Homiliae duae de dormiiione Virginis Mariae. Cf. also 
St. Brigid of Sweden, Revelations, Bk. VI, c. 62. 



MARY'S FULNESS OF GRACE AT THE MOMENT OF DEATH 157 



the Blessed Virgin and her Son had but one soul, one 
heart, and one life ... so that her Son lived in her. 
Mother most loving and most loved that could be . . . 
of a love incomparably higher than that of angels 
and men in the measure in which the titles of only 
mother and only Son are higher than all names that 
are united in love. 

But if this mother lived by the life of her Son, she 
died also by His death; for as the life is, so is the 
death . . . Retaining in her memory all the most lov- 
able mysteries of the life and death of her Son, and 
receiving always the most ardent inspirations which 
her Son, the Sun of Justice, poured out on men in the 
noon-day ardour of His charity . . . she was at length 
consumed by the sacred fire of this charity, as a holo- 
caust of sweetness. And thus she died, her soul 
ravished and transported in the arms of the love of 
Jesus . . . 

She died of a most sweet and tranquil love . . . The 
love of God increased every moment in the virginal 
heart of our glorious Lady, but in a sweet, peaceful, 
and continuous way, without agitation, nor shocks, 
nor any violence . . . like a great river which, finding 
no obstacles in the level plain, flows along effortlessly. 

Just as iron, if not hindered, is drawn strongly but 
sweetly by the magnet, and the attraction increases 
according as it is drawn more close to it, so the 
Blessed Virgin, being in no way hindered in the opera- 
tion of the love of her Son, united herself to Him in 
an incomparable union by sweet, peaceful and effort- 
less ecstasies ... So that the death of the Virgin was 
more peaceful than we can conceive, her Son drawing 
her gently by the odour of His ointments . . . Love had 
caused Mary the pangs of death on Calvary; it was 
only just, then, that death should cause her the 
highest delights of love." 



158 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



$ 

Bossuet, in his turn, voices the same sentiments in 
his first sermon for the Feast of the Assumption. 

" If to love Jesus and to be loved by Jesus are two 
things which draw down the divine blessing on souls, 
what a sea of graces must have inundated the soul of 
Mary. Who can describe the impetuosity of that 
mutual love in which all that is tender in nature 
concurred with all that is efficacious in grace? Jesus 
never tired of seeing Himself loved by His Mother: 
Mary never thought she had had enough of the love 
of her Son. She asked no grace from her Son except 
that of loving Him, and that fact drew down more 
graces on her. 

Compare, if you can, with her love the holy im- 
patience she experienced to be united to her Son . . . 
St. Paul wished to burst at once the bond of the flesh 
so as to be with his Master at the right hand of the 
Father, and how much greater must have been the 
longing of a maternal heart ! The absence of a year 
was enough to pierce the heart of the mother of 
Tobias with sorrow, and what must have been the 
regret of Mary when she felt herself so long separated 
from a Son she loved so well! When she saw St. 
Stephen and so many others depart from this world 
she must well have asked her Son why He wished to 
leave her the last of all. He had brought her to the 
foot of the Cross to see Him suffer, and would He delay 
to allow her to see Him enthroned? If only He would 
allow her love its way, it would soon withdraw her 
soul from her body to unite it to Him in Whom she 
lived. 

That love was so ardent, so strong, so inflamed, 
that not a desire for heaven sprang from it which 
was not capable of drawing with it Mary's soul. 

Thus, Mary yielded her holy and blessed soul peace- 



THE ASSUMPTION OF THE BLESSED VIRGIN 



159 



fully and without violence into the hands of her Son. 
Just as the least touch gathers the ripe fruit, so was 
gathered her blessed soul, to be at once carried to 
heaven; thus the divine Virgin died in a movement 
of the love of God." 

That holy death reveals the final fulness of Mary's 
grace, a fulness which corresponded wonderfully to 
that initial fulness which had not ceased to grow 
from the moment of the Immaculate Conception. It 
disposed her for the consummated fulness of heaven 
which is always proportionate to the merits acquired 
at the moment of death. 



Article II 

The Assumption of the Blessed Virgin 

What is meant by the Assumption? The whole 
Church understands by the term that the Blessed 
Virgin, soon after her death and glorious resurrec- 
tion, was taken up body and soul to heaven to be 
forever throned above the angels and saints. The 
term Assumption is used rather than Ascension since, 
unlike Jesus Who ascended to heaven by His own 
power, Mary was lifted up by God to the degree of 
glory for which she had been predestined. 

Was the Assumption capable of being perceived by 
the senses, and if there were witnesses — the apostles 
and St. John in particular — had they ocular evidence 
of it? Certainly there was something of the 
sense-perceptible order about the Assumption, since 
it was the taking up of Mary's body to heaven. But 
the term of that taking up, that is, the entry to 



160 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



heaven and the exaltation of Mary above all the 
saints, was invisible and inaccessible to the senses. 

It can be admitted that did certain witnesses find 
the tomb of the Mother of God empty after her 
burial, and did they later witness her resurrection 
and her being raised up in the skies, they would have 
been able to presume that she entered heaven and 
that Our Blessed Lord had associated her with the 
glory of His Ascension. But a presumption is not 
certitude. Mary's body could have been transported, 
for all their evidence proved, into a place not visible 
to human eyes — to the place, for example, in which 
Jesus' risen body was between His different appari- 
tions. 

But if a presumption is not certitude, how was Our 
Lady's entry into heaven ever known with certainty? 
For that a divine revelation was required. St. Thomas 
remarks that there was such a revelation in the case 
of the Ascension (4) made through the intermediary 
of the angels who said : "Ye men of Galilee, why stand 
you looking up to heaven? This Jesus Who is taken 
up from you to heaven, shall so come, as you have 
seen him going into heaven " (5). 

Besides, without a divine revelation, the Assump- 
tion would not be capable of being defined a dogma 
of faith, since the motive of faith is the authority of 
God in revelation. A private revelation would not 
however be sufficient. Private revelations — those 
made to St. Joan of Arc, to St. Bernadette, to the 
little shepherds of La Salette, are examples of private 
revelations — could become well known and public in 
that sense. But they are not public in the sense of 
being part of the common deposit of revelation and 
proposed infallibly by the Church to all the faithful. 

(4) Ilia. q.55. a.2, ad 2. 

(5) Acts i, 11. 



THE ASSUMPTION OF THE BLESSED VIRGIN 



161 



Neither would a revelation of the kind made to St. 
Margaret Mary be sufficient. For her revelations 
were private too, and did no more than to draw atten- 
tion to certain practical consequences of what was 
already known to be an object of faith— the already 
accepted truth that the Sacred Heart of Jesus is 
entitled to adoration or the cult of latria. 

Hence, that the Assumption should have been 
known as certain and capable of being proposed to 
the whole Church for acceptance, a public revelation 
must have must have been made to the apostles, or 
at least to one of them— to St. John, for example. 
Note that this revelation must have been made to an 
apostle since the deposit of common and public 
revelation was completed with the death of the last 
apostle. It may have been made explicitly or im- 
plicitly, in this latter case its message would have 
become more explicit in the course of time. 
^ Let us now see what we have to learn from 
Tradition, and also the theological arguments which 
have been commonly invoked, at least since the 7th 
century. 

1st— The documents of Tradition show that the 
privilege was at least implicitly revealed. 

Ct is not possible to prove directly from Sacred 
■cripture nor from primitive documents that the 
privilege of the Assumption was revealed explicitly 
to any of the Apostles, for no text of scripture affirms 
It. explicitly, and there is a similar absence of explicit 
testimony in the primitive documents. But it can be 
proved indirectly from later documents that there 

; at least an implicit revelation since there are 

' lain facts, dating from the 7th century, which are 
•x pi 1 cable in no other way. 

From the 7th century, almost the whole Church, 
1 I II and west, celebrated the Feast of the Assump- 

L 



162 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



tion. Pope Sergius (687-707) ordered a solemn 
procession on that day (6). Many theologians and 
liturgists contend that it existed already before the 
time of St. Gregory the Great (d. 604) and they quote 
in support of their opinion the Collect of the Mass 
of the Assumption contained in the Sacramentary 
known as Gregorian (though it is probably later in 
date) where we read the words : " Nec tamen mortis 
nexibus deprimi potuit " (7). St. Gregory of Tours 
seems to imply that the Feast was celebrated in Gaul 
in the 6th century (8). At any rate, it was certainly 
celebrated there in the 7th century as is proved by 
the Missale Gothicum and the Missale Gallicanum 
vetus, which date from the beginning of that century 
and contain very beautiful prayers for the Feast. 
(P. L., t. LXXII, col. 245-246). 

In the East the historian Nicephorus Callistus (9) 
recounts that the Emperor Maurice (582-602), con- 
temporary and friend of St. Gregory the Great, 
ordered the solemn celebration of the Feast on 
August 15th. The earliest testimony to the tradi- 
tional faith of the East appears to be that of Saint 
Modestus, Patriarch of Jerusalem (d. 634) in his 
Encomium in dormitionem Deiparae (P.G., t.LXXXVI 
col. 3288 sqq.). His account of the matter is that the 
apostles were led to the Blessed Virgin by a divine 
inspiration and were present at the Assumption. 
After him, mention must be made of St. Andrew of 
Crete (d 720), monk in Jerusalem and later Arch- 
bishop of Crete, the author of the homilies In 

(6) Liber Pontificate, P. L., t.CXXVIII, c.898; in Duchesne's 
edit., 1. 1, p. 376. 

(7) P. L., t.LXXVIII, col. 133. 

(8) " Domlnus susceptum corpus (Virginis) sanctum in nubp 
deferre jussit in paradisum ubi, nunc, resumpta anima, cum 
electis eius exultans, aeternitatis bonis nullo occasuris line 
perfruitur " De ploria martyrum, civ; P. L., t.LXXI, col. 708. 

(9) H. E., l.XVII, c.xxviii; P. G., t. CXLVII, col. 292. 



THE ASSUMPTION OF THE BLESSED VIRGIN 



163 



dormitionem Deiparae (10), of St. Germanus, 
Patriarch of Constantinople (d. 733), author of In 
sanctam Dei Genitricis dormitionem (11), and finally 
of St. John Damascene (d. 760), author of In dormi- 
tionem beatae Mariae Virginis (12). 

There is no shortage of testimonies from the 8th 
century on. Those comonly quoted are Notker of 
St. Gall, Fulbert of Chartres, St. Peter Damien, 
St. Anselm, Hildebert, Peter Abelard, St. Bernard,' 
Richard of St. Victor, St. Albert the Great, St. Bona- 
venture and St. Thomas (13). The period between 
the 7th and the 9th centuries witnessed the 
development of the liturgy, theology, and preaching 
of the Assumption. Pope Leo rv instituted the octave 
of the Feast around the year 847. Authors then and 
in the succeeding periods regarded the object of the 
feast not as a pious belief peculiar to this or that 
country, but as an integral part of the general tradi- 
tion which went back in the Church to the earliest 
times. And not only the authors, but the Church 
herself voiced the same doctrine: the simple fact 
that the Church celebrated the Feast universally in 
East and West, usually on the 15th of August, shows 
that she considered the privilege of the Assumption 
to be a certain truth taught by her ordinary 
magisterium, that is to say, by all the bishops in 
union with the supreme pastor. For the faith of the 
Church is manifested in her prayer: Lex orandi, lex 
credendi. The doctrine of the Assumption has not 
yet been solemnly defined, but it is commonly 
asserted that it would be at least temerarious or 
erroneous to deny it (14). When some few authors 

{ M\$ G > *• XCVIH, coL 345 sqq. 

(12) P. G.. t.XCVI, col. 716. 

nil S£ Merkelbach, Mariologia, pp. 277 sqq. 

(14) That is the teaching of St. Antoninus, Suarez, Lugo, 



164 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



proposed to change the Feast of the 15th of August, 
Benedict XIV answered: Ecclesiam hanc amplexam 
esse sententiam (15). 

The attitude of the Church in regard to the 
doctrine is not therefore simply one of tolerance : she 
proposes it positively in the liturgy and in preaching 
both in the East and- the West. This universal agree- 
ment of the whole Church in celebrating the solemn 
feast shows that her ordinary magisterium is at work. 
But the ordinary magisterium presupposes at least 
that the doctrine has been implicitly revealed: 
otherwise, as we have seen, there could be no cer- 
tainty that Mary had entered heaven. And we may 
go further still and assert that it is probable that the 
revelation made to the Apostles, or to one of them, 
was even explicit, since otherwise it is hard to explain 
the universal tradition in the East and the West 
from the 7th century at the latest, which manifests 
itself in the celebration of the Feast (16). For if the 



Baronius, Frassen, Cano, Soto, Billuart, Tanner, Gotti, 
Renaudin, Noyon, Hugon. Cf. Merkelbach, Marioloaia, 1939, 
pp. 286 sqq. 

If theologians do not agree on the note— whether of teme- 
rity or error— with which the denial of the Assumption should 
be qualified, the reason is that some concentrate on the 
theological arguments for the privilege, which may be 
considered in the abstract as mere arguments ex convenient^. 
or in the concrete as an expression of the traditional faith, in 
which latter case they are much more cogent. Besides, even 
if an occasional author has raised doubts, it may never be 
forgotten that since the 7th century the areai majority ot 
ecclesiastical writers have regarded the Feast of the 
Assumption as the expression of the ordinary maaxstermm of 
the Church. 

(15) De Canoniz. Sanct., 1. 1, c.42, no. 151 

(16) This is the opinion of Dom P. Renaudin, La Doctrine de 
la Assumption, sa d6finibiliU, Paris, 1913, pp. 119 sqq.; of J. 
Bellamy, Diet. Theol., art. Assomvtion, col. 2139 sqq. and many 
other authors including P. Terrien. Other theologians are 
satisfied to assert that there was an implicit revelation, though 
not denying the probability of an explicit one, transmitted 
orally and by the liturgy. 



THE ASSUMPTION OF THE BLESSED VIRGIN 



165 



revelation had been only implicit at the beginning, 
how could it happen that the different bishops and 
theologians in the different parts of the Church, both 
East and West, would agree that it was implicitly 
revealed? For such agreement much preliminary 
work and many preliminary councils would be re- 
quired, of which there is absolutely no record. Neither 
is there any record of private revelations such as are 
sometimes made in order to set the Church's official 
investigations of the deposit of revelation in motion. 

Up to the 6th century this privilege of Mary's was 
hidden behind a veil of silence, lest it be misunder- 
stood through an unfortunate confusion with the 
fables concerning pagan goddesses. The principal 
contribution of the early centuries of the Church to 
Mariology was to establish her great title, " Mother 
of God " and eventually to define it in the Council 
of Ephesus. 

Thus, we may conclude that everything tends to 
indicate that the privilege of the Assumption was 
explicitly revealed to the Apostles, or at least to one 
of them, and that it was transmitted subsequently by 
the oral tradition of the Liturgy; otherwise there is 
no explanation of the universal Feast of the Assump- 
tion, found so clearly from the 7th century on, by 
which time the Assumption itself was already 'the 
object of the ordinary magisterium of the Church. 

2nd— The theological reasons usually adduced show 
that the Assumption is at least implicitly revealed. 

These theological arguments, as well as the scrip- 
tural texts on which they are built, may be 
considered in two ways: abstractly— from which 
point of view many of them are mere arguments ex 
convenientia and are not demonstrative — and in the 
concrete— that is to say, as expressing concrete facts, 
the complexity and richness of which is learned from 



166 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

tradition. It is well to note too that even the argu- 
ments ex convenientia may be considered from two 
points of view: either purely theoretically or as being 
themselves at least implicitly revealed and as having 
influenced the divine choice . 

In this section we shall insist on two arguments 
which, taken as expressing Tradition, show that the 
privilege of the Assumption is implicitly revealed 
(17). As for the eminent dignity of the Mother of 
God, though this is the root reason of all Mary's 
privileges, it is not the proximate cause of her 
Assumption. Thus it seems to yield only an argument 
ex convenientia which is not demonstrative (18). The 
first of these two arguments runs as follows : 

Mary received fulness of grace and was blessed by 
God among women in an exceptional way. But this 
exceptional blessing negatives the divine malediction 
to bring forth children in pain and to return to dust 
(Gen. hi, 16-19). Mary was therefore preserved 
through it from corruption in her body: her body 
would not return to dust but would be resuscitated in 
an anticipated resurrection. Since the two premisses 
of this argument are revealed, the conclusion is, ac- 
cording to the teaching of most theologians, capable 
of being defined. 

A thing to be noted in this argument is that the 
reasoning process in it is not precisely illative, but 
rather explicative since the divine malediction con- 
tains the " into dust thou shalt return " of Genesis 
not as a cause contains an effect but as a whole 
contains its parts: " Into dust thou shalt return " is 
a part of the divine malediction. Thus Mary, blessed 
among women, and not falling under the malediction, 

(17) Cf. Merkelbach, op. cit., pp. 279 sqq., and Friethoff, O.P., 
De Doctrina Assumptions corporalis B. Manae Virgwvs 
rationibus theologicis Ulvstrata, Angelicum, 1938, pp. 13 sqq. 

(18) Cf. Friethoff, loc. cit. 



THE ASSUMPTION OF THE BLESSED VIRGIN 



167 



would not suffer the corruption of the tomb. The hour 
of the resurrection would be anticipated for her, and 
her glorious resurrection would be followed by the 
Assumption or elevation of her glorified body to 
heaven. It is, then, clear that the privilege of the 
Assumption is contained implicitly revealed in the 
plenitude of grace and the exceptional blessing with 
which Mary was favoured. 

The second argument is no less cogent. It was put 
forward by the many fathers of the Vatican Council 
who asked for the definition of the dogma of the 
Assumption and was indicated by Pius IX in the Bull 
Ineffabilis Deus (19). The argument may be formu- 
lated thus: 

Christ's perfect victory over Satan included victory 
over sin and death. But Mary, the Mother of God 
was most intimately associated with Jesus on Calvary 
in His victory over Satan. Hence she was associated 
with Him in His victory over death by her 
anticipated resurrection and her Assumption. 

In this argument, as in the first one, the premisses 
are both revealed, and the argument itself is explica- 



,. ul\, Fo £ t i le y atican Fafcn ers cf. Cone. Vatic, documentorum 

uditam, triplici victoria de peccato et de peccatorum fruc 
Ubus concupiscent a et morte, veluti ex partibus inteorantibus 
< mstituatur ille triumphus, quern de Satana, antique serpente' 
' hnstus retuht; quumque Gen. iii, 15, Deipara exhibeatur 

;n!2?t7, SS0Ciata F ili0 suo ln suo'triumpho; aTcedente 
inimi sanctorum patrum suffragio non dubitamus quin in 

, , ;«^,? ra .f, ul0 * beata Vir OO triplici ilia victoria £ae- 

sgnificetur Mustris, adeoque non secus ac de peccato per im- 
M^^ a ^ aa ? Conc eptionem et de concupiscentia per vU-ginalem 
Kh, t ^ tatem, 1 ? ic etiam de iriimica morte. siniularem 
I'luinphum relatura, per acceleratam similitudinem Filii sui 
■•■'iMCCtionis. ibidem praenuntiata fuerit." In the Bull 
,'"nH?m ,Z & w f,If ad: — sem Piternas contra venenosum ser- 
pi mum lnlmlcitias exercens, ac de Ipso plenjssime triumphant 
P i; n „ 0 a ™ again ,-• Numquam fuit maledlcto obnoxla, ergo 
'i h too ^ victorious ln consequence ovlr 



168 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

tive rather than illative: it turns on Christ's perfect 
victory which is a whole containing as its parts 
victory over sin and victory over death. 

The major premiss is known to be revealed, as the 
Fathers of the Vatican Council stated, from many 
texts in the Epistles of St. Paul. Among texts from 
other books of the New Testament, we may mention 
a few from St. John's gospel. Jesus is " the Lamb of 
God . • who taketh away the sin of the world " (John 
i, 29); He said of Himself "I have overcome the world" 
(John xvi, 33); shortly before His Passion He said 
" Now is the judgement of the world: now shall the 
prince of this world be cast out. And I, if I be lifted 
up from the earth, will draw all things to myself " 
(John xii, 31-32). The sacrifice of the Cross offered 
in love, the acceptance of humiliation and a most 
painful death— these were the victory over Satan and 
sin. But death is a consequence of sin. Hence, He 
Who had conquered Satan and sin on the Cross would 
conquer death by His glorious resurrection. 

The minor premiss is revealed also — that is, that 
Mary, Mother of God, was associated as closely as 
possible on Calvary with Jesus' perfect victory over 
Satan. It is announced mysteriously in Genesis in 
the words addressed to Satan: "I will put enmities 
between thee and the woman, and thy seed and her 
seed: she shall crush thy head ..." And though that 
text alone would not suffice to establish the point, we 
have in addition Mary's words at the Annunciation : 
" Behold the handmaid of the Lord; be it done to me 
according to Thy word ..." uttered when she con- 
sented to be the Mother of the Redeemer. But she 
would not have been a worthy mother unless her will 
were perfectly conformed to the will of Him Who was 
to offer Himself for us. Besides, Simeon told her of 
the sufferings to be borne : " And thy own soul a sword 
shall pierce ..." Last of all we read in St. John's 



THE ASSUMPTION OF THE BLESSED VIRGIN 



169 



gospel : " There stood by the Cross of Jesus, his 
mother, and his mother's sister." She shared in His 
sufferings, therefore, in the measure of her love for 
Him: so fully did she share that she is called 
Co-redemptrix (20). 

There is a very intimate connection between com- 
passion and motherhood, for the deepest compassion 
is that of a mother, and Mary would not have been a 
worthy mother of the Redeemer had she been lacking 
in conformity of will with His redemptive oblation. 

Since, therefore, Mary was associated very inti- 
mately with Jesus in His perfect victory over Satan, 
it follows that she was associated also with Him in 
the different parts of His triumph, that is to say, in 
His victory over sin and over death, sin's consequence. 

It could, perhaps, be objected that it would be 
enough were Mary associated in His victory over 
death by her final resurrection on the Last Day. To 
which the answer can be given that Mary was more 
closely associated than anyone else with Jesus in His 
perfect victory— or in the perfection of His victory — 
over Satan, and that perfect victory included exemp- 
tion from bodily corruption, and, in consequence, 
anticipated resurrection and assumption into heaven. 

(20) Cf. Denz. 3034. Plus X wrote in his Encyclical, Ad diem 
Ulum, Feb. 2nd, 1904, quoting Eadmer, the disciple of St. 
Anselm: "Ex hac autem Mariam inter et Christum 
communione dolorum et voluntatis ' promeruit ' ilia ' ut re- 
paratrix perditi orbis dignissime fleret.' Quoniam universis 
sanctitate praestat conjunctioneque cum Christo atque a 
Christo ascita in humanae salutis opus, de congruo, ut aiunt, 
promeret, nobis, quae Christus de condigno promeruit." Cf. 
also Benedict XV in the Apostolic Letter, Inter Sodalicia, 
March 22nd. 1918: "Ita (B.M.V.) Filium immolavit. ut dici 
merito queat, ipsam cum Christo humanum genus redemisse " 
and Pius XI in the Apostolic Letter Explorata res, February 
2nd. 1923: "Virgo perdolens redemptionis opus cum Christo 
participavit." 

The Holy Office approved the invocation of Mary as Co- 
redemptrix of the human race on June 26th, 1913 and January 
22nd, 1914; cf. Denz. 3034, note. 



170 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



As we read in the Collect of the Mass of the 
Assumption: " Mortem subiit temporalem, nec tamen 
mortis nexibus deprimi potuit . ." She died; but 
she was not retained captive by the bonds of death — 
a privilege accorded to no other saint, for even though 
the bodies of some saints are miraculously preserved 
from corruption, they are still in the bonds of death. 

These two great theological arguments taken 
respectively from Mary's fulness of grace united to 
her special blessing, and her association with Jesus 
in His perfect victory, prove that the Assumption is 
implicitly revealed and capable of definition as an 
article of faith. 

There are other theological arguments too which 
confirm the same conclusion, at least by way of proof 
ex convenientia. The love of Jesus for Mary can be 
appealed to as a reason why she should have been 
accorded the privilege. The excellent virginity of 
Mary seems to demand that her body, free from all 
stain of sin, should be free from the bonds of death, 
the consequence of sin. The Immaculate Conception 
calls for it also since death is a consequence of 
original sin from which Mary was preserved. It may 
also be added that there are no relics of Our Lady, 
which is a probable indication of her Assumption, 
body and soul, into heaven. 

Since the Assumption is contained at least 
implicitly in Revelation, it can be defined as an article 
of faith. The opportuneness of its definition is 
manifest, as Dom Renaudin says (21). For, from the 
doctrinal point of view, the Assumption of the 
Blessed Virgin along with the Ascension of Our 
Blessed Lord, crowns our faith in the objective com- 
pletion of the work of the Redemption, and gives our 

(21) La Doctrine de V Assumption, sa difinihUite, Paris, 1913, 
pp. 204-217. 



THE FINAL PLENITUDE OF GRACE IN HEAVEN 



171 



hope a new guarantee For their part, the faithful 
will derive from a solemn definition of the Assumption 
the advantage of being able to go beyond their ad- 
herence to the infallibility of the ordinary 
magisterium of the Church who has instituted the 
feast, and to adhere immediately to the dogma on 
the authority of God Who revealed it, in which dogma 
they will find an arm against all those errors of our 
times — whether materialism, rationalism, or liberal 
Protestantism — which agree in minimising the faith 
in every possible way rather than to recognise that 
the gifts of God surpass our ideas of them. From the 
point of view of heretics and schismatics, the solemn 
definition will be a help rather than a hindrance, for 
it will make more manifest the power and goodness 
of Mary who has been given to men to lead them 
along the way of salvation. Finally, the just man 
lives by his faith. Hence he finds in the solemn defi- 
nition of a revealed truth a form of spiritual 
nourishment which increases his faith, and 
strengthens his hope, and makes his charity more 
fervent. 



Article III 

The Final Plenitude of Grace in Heaven 

In this article we shall consider Mary's eternal 
beatitude: the beatific vision; the love of God and the 
Joy which results from it; her elevation above the 
choirs of angels; her participation in Christ's King- 
Bhip and the consequences which follow from it. 

Mary's Essential Beatitude 

Mary's essential beatitude surpasses in intensity 
and extension that conferred on all the other blessed. 



172 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 

This doctrine is theologically certain. Heavenly 
glory, or essential beatitude, is proportioned to the 
degree of grace or charity which precedes entry to 
heaven. But Mary's initial fulness of grace surpassed 
the final grace of the highest saints and angels; and 
we have seen that it is probable, if not certain, that 
it surpassed their final graces united. It follows that 
Mary's essential beatitude surpasses that of all the 
saints taken together. In other words, Mary's beatific 
vision penetrates more deeply into the divine essence 
seen face to face than that of all the other blessed — 
exception being, of course, made for the beatified soul 
of Jesus. 

It is true that the natural intellectual powers of the 
angels are greater than those of Mary, or even the 
human powers of Jesus. Nevertheless Mary's intuitive 
gaze of the divine essence is more piercing than theirs 
because of the much more intense lumen gloriae 
(light of glory) with which she is enriched. The ob- 
ject of the beatific vision being essentially 
supernatural, greater natural powers confer no 
greater advantage in knowing it. In much the same 
way an unlettered Christian can have a greater 
infused faith and charity than an highly endowed 
and qualified theologian. 

Not_only does Mary know more of the essence of 
God in heaven, but she knows more too of His wisdom, 
His love, His power, and she sees better the range of 
their extent both in the order of possible and of 
existing realities. Besides, since the blessed in heaven 
see more things in God according as their mission is 
a more universal one, Mary, as Mother of God, 
Universal Mediatrix, Co-Redemptrix, Queen of 
Angels, Saints, and the whole universe, sees much 
more in God, in Verbo, than do the other blessed. 
Higher than her in glory is only her Divine Son. His 



THE FINAL PLENITUDE OF GRACE IN HEAVEN 



173 



human mind reads into the divine essence deeper 
than hers. He knows certain secrets which are hidden 
from her, for they pertain to Him only, the Saviour, 
the High Priest and the Universal King. 

Mary comes immediately after Jesus in heavenly 
glory. That is why the liturgy affirms, on the Feast 
of the 15th of August, that she has been lif ted up 
above the choirs of angels, and that she is at the right 
hand of her Son (Ps. xliv, 10). According to St. Albert 
the Great (22) she constituted among the blessed an 
order apart, higher than the seraphim as they are 
higher than the cherubim : for the queen is as much 
higher than the first of her servants as they are 
higher than the last of their fellows. 

Being Mother of God she participates more than 
anyone else in the glory of her Son. And since the 
divinity of Jesus is absolutely evident in heaven, it is 
clear to the blessed that Mary belongs to the hypo- 
static order, that she has a special affinity to the 
divine Persons, and that she shares in a unique way 
in Jesus' universal kingship over all creatures. This 
is the doctrine of so many of the liturgical prayers: 
Ave Regina Coelorum , . . Regina Coeli . . . Salve 
Regina, It is found also in the Litanies: Queen of 
Angels . . . Queen of all saints . . . And it is affirmed 
also in the passage we quoted earlier from the Bull 
Ineffabilis Deus. It is taught explicitly by St. 
Germanus of Constantinople (23), St. Modestus (24), 
St. John Damascene (25), St. Anselm (Orat. I), St. 
Bernard (26), St. Albert the Great (27), St. Thomas 
Aquinas (28), and all the doctors. 

(22) Mariale, q.151. 

(23) Horn. II in Dorm. (24) Enc. in Dorm. 

(25) Horn. I, II, III, in Dorm.; De Fide orth., IV, 14. 

(26) He speaks very frequently of Mary as Regina and 
Domina. 

(27) Mariale, q.151. 

(28) In J/J Sent., dist. 22, Q.3. a.3, q.3, ad 3. 



174 THE DIVINE MATERNITY AND THE PLENITUDE OF GRACE 



Mary's Accidental Beatitude 

To Mary's accidental beatitude contribute her more 
intimate knowledge of the glorious Humanity of 
Jesus, the exercise of her universal mediation and of 
her motherly mercy, and the cult of hyperdulia 
which she receives as Mother of God. She enjoys 
also in an eminent way the triple aureola of the 
martyrs, the confessors, and the virgins, for she 
suffered more than the martyrs during the Passion 
of her Son, she instructed the apostles themselves in 
a private and intimate way, and she preserved 
virginity of soul and body in all its perfection. The 
glory of her body — which is a reflection of that of her 
soul— is of the same eminent degree. 

Under all these respects Mary is raised above all 
the saints and angels, and it becomes increasingly 
evident that the reason and root cause of all her 
privileges is her eminent dignity as Mother of God. 



PART II 

Mary, Mother of all men 

Her universal mediation and 
our interior life 



Having considered the Blessed Virgin as Mother 
of God, and the fulness of grace which was given her 
that she might be God's worthy mother, it remains 
to speak of her relations with men. Tradition 
attributes to Mary three titles, Mother of the Re- 
deemer, Mother of all men, and Mediatrix, to express 
her relations with men as yet on their way to eter- 
nity. In regard to the blessed she has especially the 
title, Universal Queen. 

Theology teaches us that these titles correspond 
to those of Christ the Redeemer (1). He performed 
His redemptive work as Head of the humanity He 
was to regenerate, as First Mediator Who has the 
power by His priesthood to sacrifice and to sanctify, 
and to exercise teaching authority, and finally as Uni- 
versal King, Who legislates for all men, judges the 
living and the dead, and governs all creatures not 
excluding the angels. Mary, in her quality of 
Mother of the Redeemer, is associated with Jesus in 
those three roles. She is associated with Him as 
Head of the Church by being spiritual Mother of all 
men; she is associated with Him as First Mediator 
by being a secondary and subordinate mediatrix; 
and she is associated with Him as Universal King by 
being Queen of the universe. That is Mary's triple 

(1) Cf. Merkelbach, Mariologia, p.295. 



177 

mission to men which we are about to consider in 
this part of the book. 

We shall speak first of Mary as Mother of the 
Redeemer and as Mother of all men; then of her 
universal mediation on earth and in heaven; finally 
of her universal queenship. All these titles, but 
especially that of Mother of God, are the justifica- 
tion of the cult of hyper dulia of which we' shall 
speak in the last place. At no time shall we en- 
deavour to put forward original views, or those of 
individual authors— nor have we done that in the 
earlier part of the book-but rather will it be our 
aim to expose the common teaching of the Church 
transmitted by the Fathers and explained by theo- 
logians. It is only on such a foundation that one 
can safely build. 

Because of the method we have chosen, a super- 
ficial reader may think our treatment of the different 
questions banal or elementary. But it is well to 
recall that the most elementary philosophical 
truths, such as the principles of causality and 
iinahty, and the most elementary religious truths 
■such as those contained in the Our Father, are found 
i-o be the most profound and vital when they are 
examined carefully and put into practice. In the 
i "".sent matter as elsewhere it is necessary to ad- 
vance from what is known and certain to what is 
less well known, from what is easy to what is diffi- 
cult; were one to embark on a premature considera- 
tion of more difficult problems, especially if they 
were presented in the form of dramatic and striking 
paradoxes, the result might be— as has happened to 

.many heretics-to end up by denying evident 
• "| I lis and obvious conclusions. The history of 
logy and philosophy shows that this is no ficti- 
,s danger. Finally it should not be forgotten 



H 



178 



that though in human matters, where truth and 
falsity, good and evil, are jumbled together, simpli- 
city is superficiality and exposes one to error, in the 
things of God, where there is but the true and the 
good, simplicity alone will reveal the greatest 
heights and the most secret depths (2). 



(2) For a treatment of the place of Our Lady in the interior 
life cf. M. V. Bernadot, O.P., Notre Dame dans ma Vie, 
Morineau, L'Annee Mariale ; , Bpulenger, O P.. Le Dieu if Mane 
dans le Saint Rosaire; Marie de Sainte-Therese, L Union 
Mystique a Marie: Neubert, La Doctrine Maria \« p - 
Chaminade; all of which are published by La Vie Spirituelle. 



CHAPTER I 



The Mother of the Redeemer 
and of all men 



These two titles are evidently connected. We shall 
consider them in the order indicated. 



Article I 

The Mother of the Saviour Associated With 
His Redemptive Work 

The Church calls Mary Mother of the Saviour as 
well as Mother of God. In the Litany of Loreto, for 
example, after the invocations, Holy Mother of God 
and Mother of the Creator, we find the other, Mother 
of the Saviour, pray for us. Though some have 
thought the contrary (1) the fact of these two titles 
is no reason for believing that Mariology labours 
under the defect of a duality of distinct principles- 
■'Mother of God" and "Mother of the Saviour, who 
Is associated with His redemptive work " Mariology 
Ifl a unity, for Mary is " Mother of God the Redeemer 
Or the Saviour." In much the same way the two 
mysteries of the Incarnation and the Redemption do 

(1) Rev. Professor Bittremieux in De supremo nrinrt-nin 
""no ogiae, Eph. theol. Lovan., 1931, though he does not Sv 
m a sense Mariology can be reduced to one princMe 

psSo»i. o a s d q u q aiity - * against tws ^« 



180 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

not take away from the unity of Christology, for its 
central point is the redemptive Incarnation. The 
motive of the Incarnation is sufficiently indicated 
in the Creed which says that the Son of God came 
down from heaven for our salvation. 

Let us now see how Mary became Mother of the 
Saviour by her consent, and how, as Mother of the 
Saviour, she was to be associated with His redemp- 
tive work. 

Mary Became Mother of the Saviour by Her Consent 

Mary gave her consent to the redemptive Incar- 
nation when, on the day of the Annunciation, the 
angel said to her: " Thou shalt conceive in thy womb, 
and shalt bring forth a son; and thou shalt call his 
name Jesus " — the name to be given to her Son 
meaning " Saviour." Mary was not ignorant of the 
Messianic prophecies — most particularly those of 
Isaias — which foretold the redemptive sufferings of 
the promised Saviour. Thus, when she uttered her 
flat she accepted in advance for herself and for her 
Son all the sufferings which the redemption would 
involve. 

She learned something still more explicit about 
them a few days later when Simeon spoke to her: 
"Behold this child is set for the fall, and for the 
resurrection of many in Israel, and for a sign which 
shall .be contradicted; And thy own soul a sword 
shall pierce." A little earlier he had spoken of Jesus 
as "... thy salvation, which thou hast prepared 
before the face of all peoples." Mary, we are told, 
kept all these words in her heart. The divine plan 
became gradually clearer to her contemplative faith, 
lit up as it was by the illumination of the gift of 
understanding. 



MARY ASSOCIATED WITH THE SAVIOUR IN HIS WORK 181 



Mary therefore became freely Mother of the Re- 
deemer in His role of Redeemer; she grew in her 
appreciation of the fact that the Son of God became 
man for our salvation. She united herself to Jesus 
as only a mother, and a very holy mother, could in 
perfect oneness of love for God and souls. That was 
her way of fulfilling the great precept of the law— 
and what more perfect way could there be? Tradi- 
tion is clear on Mary's union with the Redeemer; it 
never tires of repeating that as Eve was united to 
the first man in the work of perdition Mary was 
united to the Redeemer in the work of redemption. 

Mother of the Redeemer, she grew too in her 
appreciation of the manner of our redemption. It 
was sufficient for her to call to mind and meditate 
on the prophecies which all knew so well. Isaias 
(liii, 1-12) announced the sufferings and humilia- 
tions of the Messiah, saying that they would be borne 
to expiate our sins by Him Who is innocence itself, 
and that by His Death He would justify many. She 
knew too David's psalm (Ps. xxi) " O God, my God, 
why has thou forsaken me?" describing the prayer of 
the Just One, His cry of anguish in His abandon- 
ment, and His confidence in Jahve, His apostolate 
and its effects in Israel and among the gentiles. 
There was finally Daniel's prophecy of the Son of 
Man (Dan. vii, 13-14) and of the power that would 
be given Him: "And he gave Him power, and glory, 
and a Kingdom: and all peoples, tribes, and tongues 
shall serve him: his power is an everlasting power 
that shall not be taken away: and his kingdom, that 
shall not be destroyed." All Tradition has seen the 
Messiah promised as Redeemer in the Man of Sor- 
rows of Isaias and the Son of Man of Daniel. 

Mary, who was not ignorant of these prophecies, 
became therefore Mother of the Redeemer in His 



182 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



role of Redeemer at the Annunciation. Prom her 
consent " Be it done to me according to thy word " 
follows all the rest of her life, just as all Jesus' life 
followed from the consent He gave to His Father's 
will on entering the world: "Holocausts for sin did 
not please thee. Then said I: Behold I come to do 
thy will, O God " (Hebr. x, 6, 9). The Fathers could 
say that our salvation depended on Mary's consent, 
and that she conceived her Son spiritually before 
she conceived Him corporeally (2). 

It may be objected that a divine decree such as 
that of the Incarnation could not depend on the con- 
sent of a creature who was free not to give it. To 
this theology answers that God has efficaciously 
willed and infallibly foreseen everything that will 
happen in the course of time. Therefore, He willed 
efficaciously and foresaw infallibly Mary's consent to 
the realisation of the mystery of the Incarnation. 
From all eternity God, Who works with strength and 
gentleness, decided to give Mary the efficacious 
grace which would move her to consent freely and 
meritoriously. Just as He makes the trees to bear 
their blossoms, so He makes our wills to produce 
their free acts; and far from doing them any vio- 
lence He is the author of their freedom, for that too 
is a reality, a form of being. The " how " of all this 
is the secret of God Omnipotent. Just as Mary 
conceived the Saviour by the operation of the Holy 
Ghost without losing her virginity, so she uttered 
her fiat infallibly under the motion of efficacious 
grace without prejudice to her complete liberty — 
rather did her will, under the divine motion, flower 

(2) Cf. St. Augustine, De Virg., c. 3. 31: St. Gregory the 
Great, Horn. 38 in Evang.; St. Leo the Great, Sermo 20 in Nat. 
Dom., c. 1: St. Bernard, Horn. IV super Missus est; St. Laurence 
Justinian, Serm. de Ann. 



MARY ASSOCIATED WITH THE SAVIOUR IN HIS WORK 183 



spontaneously into the free consent she gave in the 
name of all mankind. 

Mary's fiat belonged entirely to God as First Cause 
and entirely to Mary as secondary cause. In it we 
find a perfect example of what St. Thomas speaks 
of (Ia,q.l9,a.8): "Since the will of God is supremely 
efficacious it follows that not only do the things that 
God wills (efficaciously) happen, but that they hap- 
pen in the way in which He wills. But it is His will 
that some things should happen of necessity and 
others freely." By her fiat, then, Mary became volun- 
tarily the Mother of the Redeemer. 

Tradition recognises that Mary consented to be 
Mother of the Redeemer in His redemptive role by 
calling her the New Eve. The first Eve, by consent- 
ing to temptation, led the first man to commit the 
sin which lost original justice for mankind. Mary 
is the New Eve by her consent to be the Mother of 
the Redeemer for the sake of the work of redemp- 
tion. 

Some non-Catholics have objected that Mary's 
parents could equally well have been entitled father 
or mother of the Redeemer and regarded as asso- 
ciated with Him in the work of redemption. It is 
not hard to find an answer to this objection. Mary 
alone received the light required for the consent of 
which we speak. Her parents did not know that the 
Messias would be born of their family. St. Anne 
could not foresee that her child would be the mother 
of the Messias. 

® 

How Was the Mother of the Redeemer to be 
Associated with His Work? 

According to what the Fathers of the Church tell us 
about Mary as the New Eve whom many saw foretold 



184 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



in the words of Genesis, it is common and certain 
doctrine, and even fidei proxima, that the Blessed 
Virgin, Mother of the Redeemer, is associated with 
Him in the work of redemption as secondary and 
subordinate cause, just as Eve was associated with 
Adam in the work of man's ruin (3). 

The doctrine of Mary as the second Eve was uni- 
versally accepted in the 2nd century. The Fathers 
who taught it then did not regard it as the fruit of 
personal speculation but as the traditional doctrine 
of the Church supported by the words of St. Paul 
which describe Jesus as the second Adam and oppose 
Him to the first as the Author of salvation to the 
author of the fall (I Cor. xv, 45 sqq.; Rom. v, 12 sqq.; 
I Cor. xv, 20-23). They fitted St. Paul's words into 
the context of Genesis' account of the fall, the pro- 
mise of the redemption, and the victory over the 
demon, as well as St. Luke's account of Mary's con- 
sent at the Annunciation. It is necessary therefore 
to regard the doctrine of Mary as the second Eve, 
associated with the redemptive work of her Son, as 
a di vino-apostolic tradition (4). 

The Fathers who speak most explicitly of this 
matter are St. Justin (5), St. Irenaeus (6), Tertullian 
(7), St. Cyprian (8), Origen (9), St. Cyril of Jerusa- 

(3) Many Fathers, followed by many theologians, have noted 
that If Eve alone had sinned there would have been no original 
sin, and if Mary alone had given her consent without Jesus 
there would have been no redemption. 

(4) Cf. Merkelbach, Mariologia, pp. 74-89. 

(5) Dial, cum Tryphone, c. 100 — written about 160 a.d. 

(6) Adv. Haer., Bk. Ill, c. 19, 21-23; Bk. IV, c. 33; Bk. V, c. 19 
— written before the end of the 2nd century. 

(7) Liber de Came Chxlsti c. 17— written about 210-212 a.d. 

(8) Lib. II ad Quirinum. 

(9) Horn. 8 in Luc. 



MARY ASSOCIATED WITH THE SAVIOUR IN HIS WORK 185 



lem (10), St. Ephrem (11), St. Epiphanius (12), St. 
John Chrysostom (13), St. Proclus (14), St. Jerome 
(15), St. Ambrose (16), St. Augustine (17), St. Basil 
(18), St. Germanus of Constantinople (19), St. John 
Damascene (20), St. Anselm (21), St. Bernard (22). 
In later times the theologians of the middle ages and 
of our own day have maintained the same doctrine 
(23). 

What, according to Tradition, is the sense in which 
Mary, the New Eve, was associated with the work of 
redemption? 

It was not merely by having conceived the Re- 
deemer physically, by having given Him birth and 
nourished Him, but rather was her association moral, 
through her free, salutary, and meritorious acts. Eve 
contributed morally to the fall by yielding to the 
temptation of the devil, by disobedience, and by 
leading up to Adam's sin; Mary, on the contrary, co- 
operated morally in our redemption by her faith in 
Gabriel's words, and by her free consent to the 
mystery of the redemptive Incarnation and to all 
the sufferings it entailed for her Son and for herself. 



(10) Cat. XII, 5, 15. 

(11) Edit. Assemani, 1. 11, syr. lat., pp. 318-329; edit Lamy. 
1. 1, p. 593; t. II, p. 524. 

(12) Panarion, haer. lxxxiii, 18. 

(13) Horn, in Pasch.. n. 2; in Ps. xliv. 

(14) Or. I in laud. S.M. 

(15) Ep. 22 ad Eustochium, n. 21. 

(16) Ep. 63 ad Eccl. Vercel. n. 33. 

(17) De agone Christiana, 22. 

(18) Or. 3, n.4. 

(19) Horn. II in Dorm. 

(20) Horn. I in Dorm. 

(21) Or. 51 and 52. 

(22) Sermo in Dom. infra Oct. Ass.; in Nat. B. V. de Aquae- 
ductu; 12 Praer. 

(23) Hugo a S. Charo, Postillae in Luc. I, 26-28; Richardus 
nS. Laurentio, De Laud. B. M. V., 1. 1, c. 1; S. Albertus Magnus, 
Manale. q.29, 3: St. Bonaventure. De donis Sp. Sti., coll. 6, n.16; 
Srrmo III de Ass. B. M. V.\ St. Thomas, Opusc. VI Exp. Saint. 
Ang. 



186 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

Clearly, Mary is not the principal and perfective 
cause of the Redemption: she could not redeem us 
in justice, de condigno, since for that a theandric 
act of infinite value which could belong only to an 
incarnate Divine Person was required. But she is 
really a secondary cause of salvation, dispositive, and 
subordinate to Jesus. She is said to be subordinated 
to Jesus not merely in the sense that she is inferior 
to Him, but also in the sense that she concurred in 
saving us by a grace which proceeded from His 
merits, and therefore acted in Him, with Him, and by 
Him. We must never forget that Jesus is the Uni- 
versal Mediator. He redeemed Mary by preserving 
her from original sin. Similarly, it is through Him 
that she contributed to saving us. She is not the 
perfective cause of salvation, but a dispositive one, 
disposing us to undergo the action of her Son, Who 
it is achieves our salvation and is our Redeemer. 

Mary's association with Jesus in the redemption is 
therefore not like that of the Apostles, but is some- 
thing still more intimate. That is what St. Albert 
the Great formulated so happily when he said : " The 
Blessed Virgin Mary was chosen by God not to be 
His minister but to be His consort and His helper — 
in consortium et adjutorium — according ,to the words 
of Genesis: Let us make him a help like to himself " 
(Mariale, q.42). 

9 

We can now see that the unity of Mariology does 
not suffer from the defect of having two distinct 
principles. There is one principle which dominates 
it: Mary is Mother of God the Redeemer and is by 
that fact associated to His work. In the same way, 
the two mysteries of the Incarnation and the 



MOTHER OF ALL MEN 187 

Redemption do not constitute a duality so as to take 
from the unity of Christology, for they find them- 
selves united in the idea of the redemptive Incarna- 
tion; and their union in it is expressed in the Creed 
in the words "... qui propter nos homines et prop- 
ter nostram salutem descendit de caelis, et incar- 
natus est." 

Jesus' natural sonship of God or His grace of 
hypostatic union is greater than His fulness of 
created grace and our redemption. In the same way 
Mary's motherhood of God is greater than her ful- 
ness of grace which overflows on us, as has been 
shown in the first chapter of this book. The unity 
of theological knowledge contributes to its certainty, 
since, because of its unity, it uses subordinated and 
not co-ordinated principles. All the different trea- 
tises, too, which go to make it up are subordinated 
in their totality to some supreme truth. 



Article II 

Mother of All Men 

Tradition ascribes to Mary the titles Mother of 
Divine Grace, Mother most amiable, Mother most 
admirable, Mother of mercy. The Fathers have often 
spoken of Mary as Mother of all Christians, and even 
as Mother of all men. In what sense is this maternity 
to be understood? When did Mary become our 
Mother? How does her maternity affect all the 
faithful, even those who are not in the state of grace, 
and all men, even those who have not the true faith? 
These are the questions we shall try to answer in this 
section. 



188 mary's universal mediation and our interior life 



In what sense is Mary Our Mother? 

Evidently Mary is not our mother in the ordinary 
sense of the term since she did not give us natural 
life. Considering our natural life, it is Eve who de- 
serves to be called the mother of all men. Mary is 
our mother rather in a spiritual sense and through 
adoption, for, by her union with Jesus the Redeemer, 
she has communicated to us the supernatural life of 
grace. She is very much more than a sister in grace : 
we say, on the analogy of natural life, that she has 
given us birth to a divine form of life. St. Paul could 
say, speaking to the Corinthians, " In Christ Jesus, 
by the gospel, I have begotten you " (I Cor. iv, 15). 
With still more truth can we speak of Mary's spiritual 
maternity — a maternity which is source of a life 
destined to endure not sixty or eighty years, but all 
eternity. 

Mary's maternity is adoptive, as is God's father- 
hood of the just. It is, however, much more intimate 
and fruitful than in ordinary human adoption. 
Human adoption constitutes a person legally the child 
and heir of another. But all this is in the legal order; 
and even though it is a sign of the affection bestowed 
on the adopted child, it does not produce any in- 
terior change in it. Divine adoption, on the contrary, 
produces sanctifying grace in the soul of the just, 
thereby making it to participate in the divine nature 
and to have within itself the germ of eternal life. 
The soul which is endowed thus with grace is agree- 
able in God's eyes and is His child, called to know 
Him face to face and to love Him for all eternity. St. 
John speaks of this in his prologue when he describes 
those who believe in the Son of God made man as 



MOTHER OF ALL MEN 



189 



" Who are born, not of blood, nor of the will of the 
flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God " (John i, 
13). Mary's maternity participates in the fruitful- 
ness or fecundity of the divine Paternity: in union 
with the Redeemer, she has truly and really 
communicated to us grace, the germ of eternal life. 
She can therefore be called Mother of grace, Mother 
of mercy. That is what the Fathers meant when 
they called her the New Eve, and said that she had 
co-operated voluntarily in our salvation as Eve had 
co-operated in our fall. 

The points of doctrine just outlined are found in 
the Church's preaching from the 2nd century on. The 
references are the same as those given a short while 
ago in connection with the doctrine of the New Eve. 
St. Ephrem, in the 4th century, is a particularly 
eloquent witness. He calls Mary " Mother of life 
and of salvation, Mother of the living and of all men" 
since she gave us the Saviour and united herself to 
Him on Calvary (24). Similar expressions are found 
in St. Germanus of Constantinople (25), St. Peter 
Chrysologus (26), Eadmer (27), St. Bernard (28), 
Richard of St. Laurence (29), St. Albert the Great 
(30) who calls Mary " Mater misericordiae, Mater 
regenerationis, totius humani generis mater 
spiritualis," and in St. Bonaventure (31). 

Every day the liturgy repeats : " Hail holy Queen, 
Mother of mercy . . . Show thyself a mother . . . Hail, 

(24) Opera S. Ephraem Syr., edit. Assemani t. II, syr. lat., 
pp. 324, 327; III. 607. 

(25) Sermo in Dorm. Deip., 2 and 5. 

(26) Serm. 140 and 142. 

(27) De Exc. V.M., c. xl, 5. 

(28) Sermo de Aquaeductu. n. 4 sqq. 

(29) De Laud. B. M. V., 1. VI, c. 1, n. 12; l.IV, c. 14, n. 1. 

(30) Mariale, q.29, n.3; qq. 42. 43. 

(31) Serm. VI in Ass. B. M. V., and in / Sen., d.48, a.2, q.2, 
dub. 4. 



190 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



Mother of mercy, Mother of God and Mother of 
pardon, Mother of hope and Mother of grace." 

9 

When did Mary become our Mother? 

The different texts we have quoted indicate that 
Mary became our mother by consenting freely to be 
the Mother of the Saviour, the Author of grace and 
of our spiritual regeneration. By that act she con- 
ceived us spiritually and would have been our 
adoptive mother as its result even had she died before 
her Son. But that was not to be. Instead she lived 
on to unite herself to Jesus in the sacrifice of the 
Cross and by that great act of faith, hope and love 
of God and souls, she became our mother in a still 
more perfect way and contributed more directly, 
more intimately, and more profoundly to our salva- 
tion. Besides, it was on Calvary that Jesus 
proclaimed Mary our Mother, when He addressed to 
Mary the words: "Woman, behold thy son," and to 
St. John, who personified all the redeemed, the 
words : " Behold thy mother." Tradition has always 
understood the words in that sense : they do not refer 
to a grace peculiar to St. John alone, but go beyond 
him to all who are to be regenerated by the Cross 
(32). 

(32) This explanation, suggested by Origen in the 3rd cent.. 
Praef. in Joan., I. 6, is explicitly advanced by many authors, 
especially from the 12th century on, from which time it be- 
came common. It has been regarded in different papal 
documents as the common belief of the Church. Cf . Benedict 
XIV Bull Gloriosae Dominae, Sept. 27th. 1748; Gregory XVI, 
Bull Praestantissimum; Leo XIII, enc. Octobri Mense, 22nd 
Sept.. 1891; Adjutricem, 5th Sept., 1895; Augustissimae Virginis, 
12th Sept., 1897: Pius X, Ad diemillum, Feb. 2nd, 1904: Benedict 
XV. litt. op. Inter Sodalicia, Mar. 22nd, 1918; Pius XI, litt. ap. 
Exvlorata res, Feb. 2nd, 1923; enc. Rerum Ecclesiae, Feb. 21st, 
1926. 



MOTHER OF ALL MEN 



191 



The words of the dying Saviour, like sacramental 
words, produce what they signify: in Mary's soul 
they produced a great increase of charity and of 
maternal love for us; in John a profound filial affec- 
tion, full of reverence for the Mother of God. There 
is the origin of devotion to Mary. 

Mary continues to exercise her motherly functions 
in our regard by watching over us so that we grow 
in charity and persevere in it, by interceding for us 
and by distributing to us all the graces we receive. 

§ 

What is the Extension of Mary's Maternity"? 

She is first of all Mother of the faithful, of those 
who believe in her Son and receive through Him the 
life of grace. But she is also Mother of all men, since 
she gave the world the Saviour of all men and since 
she united herself to the oblation of her Son Who 
offered His precious blood for all. This is what has 
been affirmed by Popes Leo XIII, Benedict XV, and 
Pius XI (33). 

She is not the Mother of all men in a general way, 
as may be affirmed of Eve in the natural order, but 
of each man in particular, for she intercedes for each 
and obtains for each all the graces he receives. Jesus 
says of Himself that He is the Good Shepherd who 
" calleth his own sheep by name " (John x, 3). Some- 
thing the same may be said of Mary who is the 
mother of each individual man. 

(33) Leo XIII calls Mary mother not only of christians, but 
of the whole human race: enc. Octobri Mense, Sept. 22nd, 1891: 
ep. Amantissimae voluntatis, April 14th, 1895; enc. Adjutricem 
vopuli, Sept. 25th. 1895:Benedict XV calls her mother of all 
men: litt. av. Inter sodalicia, March 22nd, 1918; for Pius XI cf. 
litt. ap. Exvlorata res, Feb. 2nd, 1923; enc. Rerum Ecclesiae 
Feb. 21st. 1926. 



192 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



However, Mary is not Mother of the faithful and of 
infidels, of the just and sinners, in exactly the same 
way. The distinctions which are made in regard to 
the members of Christ's Mystical Body must be made 
here also (34). Mary is Mother of infidels in that she 
is destined to engender them to grace, and in that 
she obtains for them the actual graces which dispose 
them for the faith and for justification. She is 
Mother of the faithful who are in the state of mortal 
sin, in that she watches over them by obtaining for 
them the graces necessary for acts of faith and hope, 
and for disposing themselves for justification. Of 
those who have died in the state of mortal sin, she is 
no longer the mother: she was their mother. She is 
fully the Mother of the just, since they have received 
sanctifying grace and charity through her. She cares 
for them with tender solicitude so that they may 
continue in grace and grow in charity. She is in an 
eminent way the Mother of the blessed who can no 
longer lose the life of grace. 

All this makes clear .the meaning of what the 
Church sings every day at Compline: Hail, Holy 
Queen, Mother of mercy; Hail, our life, our sweetness, 
and our hope. To thee do we cry, poor banished 
children of Eve. To thee do we send up our sighs in 
this vale of tears . . . 

9 

St. Grignon de Montfort has explained the conse- 
quences of this doctrine very beautifully in his 
Treatise on True Devotion to the Blessed Virgin, ch. 
1, art. 1, no. 2 : God wishes to make use of Mary for 
the sanctification of souls. He sums it up thus in the 

(34) Cf. Ilia, q.8, a.3. 



MOTHER OF ALL MEN 



193 



Secret of Mary (First Part: Why Mary is necessary 
for us): 

" She it is who has given life to the Author of 
grace, and on that account she is called Mother of 
grace. In giving her His Son, God the Father, from 
Whom all good things descend, gave her all graces: 
as St. Bernard says, God's will is given her in Him 
and with Him. 

" God has chosen her to be treasurer and dispensa- 
trix of all His graces. All His graces and all His gifts 
pass by her hands . . . Since Mary has formed the 
Head of the predestined, Jesus Christ, it pertains to 
her to form also the members of the Head, who are 
the true christians . . . She has received from God a 
special power to nourish souls and to make them grow 
in Him. St. Augustine goes so far as to say that the 
predestined in this world are enclosed in Mary's 
womb and that they come to the light only when 
their good Mother brings them forth to eternal life. 
It is to her that the Holy Ghost has said ' Take root 
in my elect' (Eccl. xxiv, 13)— roots of profound 
humility, of ardent charity and of all the virtues. 

" Mary is called by St. Augustine, and is in fact, the 
living mould of God— forma Dei. In her was the 
Man-god formed . . .. and in her alone can man be- 
come deiform. Whoever is in this mould and allows 
himself to be shaped there, takes on the appearance 
of Jesus Christ, true God, in a manner adapted to his 
human weakness, without excess of pain and labour. 
This is a sure way, without danger of illusion, for 
Satan never had and never will have power over 
Mary, holy and immaculate, stainless and sinless. 

"What a difference there is between a soul formed in 
Jesus by the method of those who, like sculptors, rely 
on their art and their industry, and a soul which, 
relying in nothing on itself, and freed from all 

N 



194 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



attachments and submissive in all things, throws 
itself into Mary's hands, there to be shaped by the 
action of the Holy Ghost. What stains, what defects, 
what darkness, what illusions, what an amount of the 
merely natural there is in the first soul, and how the 
second one is pure, divine, and like to Jesus . . . ! 

" A thousand times happy is the soul to whom the 
Holy Ghost reveals the secret of Mary and to whom 
He opens this enclosed garden. That soul will find 
God alone in that most lovable creature— God 
infinitely holy and infinitely condescending, yet pro- 
portioned to its weakness . . . God lives in her and, far 
from causing souls to rest in herself, she leads them 
to God and unites them to Him." 

Thus christian doctrine becomes the object of a 
penetrating faith for St. Grignon de Montfort, of a 
contemplation which issues in a true and strong 
charity. 



Mary, Exemplary Cause of the Elect 

Jesus is our model. His predestination to natural 
divine sonship is the exemplary cause of our pre- 
destination to adoptive sonship for "whom he 
foreknew He also predestined to be made conformable 
to the image of His Son; that he might be the first- 
born among many brethren " (Rom. viii, 29). 
Similarly Mary our Mother, associated with her Son, 
is the exemplary cause of the life of the elect. It is 
in that sense that St. Augustine and St. Grignon de 
Montfort after him say that she is the mould or the 
model according to which God forms the elect. One 
must be marked with Mary's seal and reproduce her 
characteristics to have a place among those loved by 



MOTHER OF ALL MEN 



195 



Our Lord— which is the reason why theologians teach 
commonly that a true devotion to Mary is one of the 
signs of predestination. Blessed Hugh of Saint-Cher 
even says that she is, as it were, the book of life (35), 
or the mirror of that eternal book, since God has 
written in her the names of all the elect, just as He 
willed to form, in her and by her, Jesus Who is the 
First of the elect. 

St. Grignon de Montfort writes (36): " God the Son 
said to His Mother ' Let thy inheritance be in Israel ' 
(Eccl. xxiv, 13). It is as if He had said: God, My 
Father, has given me for heritage all the nations of 
the earth, all men good and evil, predestined and 
reprobate; I shall lead some by a rod of gold and 
others by a rod of iron; I shall be the father and 
advocate of some, the just chastiser of others, and 
the Judge of all; but you, My dear Mother, you shall 
have for your heritage only the predestined who are 
prefigured by Israel, and as their mother, you will 
give them birth, nourish and rear them; as their 
Queen you will lead, govern and protect them." 

It is in that same sense that we must understand 
the words of St. Grignon de Montfort a little further 
on in the same work, when showing that Mary, like 
Jesus, makes her choice always in accordance with 
the divine good pleasure: " The Most High has made 
her His treasurer and the dispenser of His favours, 
to ennoble, raise up, and enrich whom she wills, to 
allow whom she wills to enter on the narrow way of 
heaven, to make whom she wills pass through the 
narrow gate of life in spite of everything, and to give 
the throne, the sceptre, and the kingly crown to whom 

(35) Comm. in Eccles., XXIV. 
I I no T 2 eatiSe of Trve Lofton to the Blessed Virgin, ch. 1, 



196 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



she will. To Mary alone has God given the keys of 
the cellars of divine love, and the power to enter on 
the highest and most secret ways of perfection and to 
lead others thereto." 

Those words make clear the scope of Mary's 
spiritual maternity by which she forms the elect and 
leads them to the term of their predestination. 



CHAPTER II 



Mary's Universal Mediation during her Earthly 
Existence 

We shall see first of all in what this mediation 
consists and what are its principal characteristics. 
After that we shall examine the two ways in which 
Mary exercised her mediation during her life on 
earth, by her merits and her satisfaction. 



Article I 

Mary's Universal Mediation in General 

Our Holy Mother the Church approved during the 
pontificate of Benedict XV the proper Mass and Office 
of Mary, Mediatrix of all Graces (1). Many theologians 
consider that the doctrine of Mary's universal media- 
tion is sufficiently contained in the deposit of 
revelation to be one day proposed solemnly as an 
object of faith by the infallible Church. It is taught 
by the ordinary magisterium of the Church through 
the liturgy, through encyclical letters, through 
pastoral letters, in preaching, and in the works of 
theologians approved by the Church. Let us see first 
what is meant by this mediation and then enquire if 
it is affirmed by tradition and proved by theology. 

(1) Cf. the decree of January 21st. 1921, of the Sacred 

»i 0 -? r ? l 5 a ^ 0n of Rltes: " De Pest0 Beatae Mariae Virginis 
Medlatricis omnium gratiarum." 



198 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



What is meant by Mary's Universal Mediation? 

St. Thomas says, speaking of the mediation of the 
Saviour (Ilia, q.26, a.l): "It pertains to the office of 
a mediator between God and men to unite them." 
That is, as he explains in the following article, the 
mediator offers to God the prayers of men, and most, 
particularly sacrifice which is the principal act of the 
virtue of religion, and distributes as well to men 
God's sanctifying gifts, light from on high and grace. 
There is, thus, a double movement in mediation : one 
upwards in the form of prayer and sacrifice, and the 
other downwards in the form of God's gifts to men. 

The office of mediator belongs fully only to Jesus, 
the Man-God, Who alone could reconcile us with God 
by offering Him, on behalf of men, the infinite sacri- 
fice of the Cross, which is perpetuated in Holy Mass. 
He alone, as Head of mankind, could merit for us in 
justice the grace of salvation and apply it to those 
who do not reject His saving action. It is as man 
that He is mediator, but as a Man in Whom humanity 
is united hypostatically to the Word and endowed 
with the fulness of grace, the grace of Headship, 
which overflows on men. As St. Paul puts it: "For 
there is one God, and one mediator of God and men, 
the man Christ Jesus: Who gave Himself for a re- 
demption for all, a testimony in due times " (I Tim. 
ii, 5-6). 

But, St. Thomas adds (Zoc. cit.): " there is no reason 
why there should not be, after Christ, other secon- 
dary mediators between God and men, who co-operate 
In uniting them in a ministerial and dispositive 
manner." Such mediators dispose men for the action 
of the principal Mediator, or transmit it, but always 
in dependence on His merits. 

The prophets and priests of the Old Testament 



MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION IN GENERAL 



199 



were mediators of this kind, for they announced the 
Saviour to the chosen people by offering sacrifices 
which were types of the great sacrifice of the Cross. 
The priests of the New Testament may also be spoken 
of as mediators between God and men, for they are 
the ministers of the supreme Mediator, offering 
sacrifice in His Name, and administering the sacra- 
ments. 

The question arises, is Mary, in subordination to 
and in dependence on the merits of Christ, universal 
mediatrix for all men from the time of the coming 
of the Saviour, in regard to obtaining and distribu- 
ting all graces, both in general and in particular? 
Does it not appear that she is? Nor is her role pre- 
cisely that of a minister, but that of an associate in 
the redemptive work, in the words of St. Albert 
already quoted. 

Though non-catholics answer the question with a 
denial, the christian sense of the faithful, formed for 
years by the liturgy, which is one of the voices of the 
ordinary magisterium of the Church, has no hesita- 
tion in maintaining that, by the very fact of her 
being Mother of the Redeemer, all the indications are 
that Mary is universal mediatrix, for she finds herself 
placed between God and men, and more particularly 
between her Son and men. 

Since she is a creature she is, of course, altogether 
below God Incarnate. But at the same time she is 
raised far above men by the grace of the divine 
maternity, which is of the hypostatic order, 
and by the fulness of grace which she received 
even from her Immaculate Conception. Hence, 
the mediation attributed by the liturgy and 
the christian sense of the faithful to Mary 
is, strictly speaking, subordinated to that of Jesus 
and not co-ordinated; her mediation depends com- 



200 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

pletely on the merits of the Universal Mediator. Nor 
is her mediation necessary (for that of Jesus is super- 
abundant and needs no complement) : it has however 
been willed by God as a kind of radiation of the 
Saviour's mediation, and of all radiations the most 
perfect. The Church regards it as most useful and 
efficacious to obtain from God all that we need to 
lead us directly or indirectly to salvation and perfec- 
tion. Last of all, Mary's mediation is perpetual and 
extends to all men, and to all graces without any 
exception whatever. 

The above is the precise sense in which universal 
mediation is attributed to Mary in the liturgy, in the 
Feast of Mary Mediatrix, and by the theologians who 
have recently treated the question at great length. 

i 

The Testimony of Tradition 

Mary's mediation was affirmed in a general and 
implicit way from the earliest centuries by the use 
of the titles, the New Eve, the Mother of the Living. 
There is all the more reason for so understanding 
tradition in that the titles were attributed to her not 
solely because she gave birth physically to the Saviour 
but because she co-operated morally in His redemp- 
tive work, especially by uniting herself very intimately 
to the sacrifice of the Cross (2). From the 4th 
century onwards, and notably in the 5th century, the 
Fathers affirm clearly that Mary intercedes for Us, 
that all the benefits and helps to salvation come to us 
through her, by her intervention and her special 

(2) Cf St. Justin, Dial., 100; P. G., t. VI. col. 711; St. Irenaeus, 
Contr. haer.. Ill, xxii, 4; V, xix, I; P. G., t. VII, col. 958 sqq., 
1175; Tertullian, De carne C*~isti, 17; P. L., t.II, col. 782. 



MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION IN GENERAL 



201 



protection. From the same time too she is called 
mediatrix between God and men or between Christ 
and us. Recent studies have thrown much light on 
this point (3). 

The antithesis between Eve, cause of death, and 
Mary, cause of salvation for all men is repeated by 
St. Cyril of Jerusalem (4), St. Epiphanius (5), St. 
Jerome (6), St. John Chrysostom (7). The following 
invocation of St. Ephrem deserves to be quoted in 
full : " Hail, most excellent mediatrix of God and 
men, hail most efficacious reconciler of the whole 
world" (8). 

St. Augustine speaks of Mary as mother of all the 
members of our Head, Jesus Christ. He tells us that 
by her charity she co-operated in the spiritual birth 
of all the faithful who are Christ's members (9), St. 
Peter Chrysologus says that Mary is the mother of 
all the living by grace whereas Eve is the mother, by 
nature, of all the dying (10). It is evident that he 
considers Mary as associated with the divine plan for 
our redemption. 

From the 8th century we may quote the Venerable 



(3) Cf. Blttremieux, De mediatione universale B. Marias 
Virginis, 1926; Marialia, 1936; Dublanchy In Dict^ de Thiol. 
Cath. also Marie Mediatrice in La Vie Spirituelle, 1921-22. 
Buver, S.J., La Mediacidn universal de la Segunda Eva en la 
Tradicidn patristica, Madrid, 1923-1924. Frietoff, O.P., Maria 
alma socia Christi mediatoris, 1936. Merkelbach, Mariolooia, 
1939, pp. 309-323. Genevois, O.P.. La materniU spirituelle de 
Marie en saint Irenee, Revue Thomiste, 1935. Galtler, S J., 
l.a Vierge qui nous regenere, Rech. de sc. rel. 1914. 

(4) Cat., XII, 5, 15. 

(5) Haer., LXXVIII, 18; P. G., t.XXII, col. 728. 

(6) Epist., XXII, 21; P. L., XXII, col. 408. 

(7) Horn, in sanctum Pascha, 2; P. G., t. LV, col. 193 and in 
Urn., Ill, hom. XVII, I; P. G., t.LIII. col. 143. 

(8) Opera omnia, edit. Assemani, Rome, 1740, t. Ill, graeco- 
lut. col. 528 sqq., 531 sqq., 551; in Lamy's edit. II p.547 and t.I, 
prolog., p. xlix. 

(9) De sancta virginitate, VI, 6; P. L., t. XL, col 399. 

(10) Serm. 140 and 142, P. L., t.LII, col. 576, 579. 



202 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



Bede (11). St. Andrew of Crete calls Mary Mediatrix 
of grace, dispenser and cause of life (12). St. 
Germanus of Constantinople says that no one has 
been saved without the co-operation of the Mother 
of God (13). The title of mediatrix is given by St. John 
Damascene also, who asserts that we owe to her all 
the benefits conferred on us by Jesus (14). 

In the 9th century we find St. Peter Damien teach- 
ing that nothing is accomplished in the work of our 
redemption without her (15). The teaching of St. 
Anselm (16), Eadmer (17), and St. Bernard in the 12th 
century is the same. St. Bernard speaks of Mary as : 
gratiae inventrix, mediatrix salutis, restauratrix 
saeculorum (18). 

From the middle of the 12th century the explicit 
affirmation of Mary's co-operation in our redemption 
becomes quite common. Her co-operation is looked 
on as consummated by her consent to her sacrifice 
at the Annunciation, and its accomplishment on 
Calvary. Among names that may be cited are those 
of Arnold of Chartres, Richard of St. Victor, St. Albert 
the Great (19), and Richard of Saint-Laurent. St. 
Thomas seems to be of the same opinion (20). It is 



(11) Homil. I in fest. Annunc. and horn. I in fest Visit.: P. L., 
t. XCIV. col. 9. 16. 

(12) In Nativit. B. M., horn. IV, and 271 Dorm.it. S. M., Ill; 
P. G., t.XCVII, col. 813 and 1108. 

(13) In dormit. B. M.\ P. G., t. XCVIII, c. 349. 

(14) In dormit, B. M., horn. I, 3, 8, 12; II, 16; P. G., t.XCVI, 
cols. 705, 713, 717, 744. 

(15) Serm. 45; P. L., CXLIV, cols. 741, 743. 

(16) Orat. 47, 52; P. L., t. CLVIII, cols. 945, 955, 964. 

(17) De excellentia B. M., IX, XI; P. L., t. CLIX, cols. 573, 578. 

(18) Ep. 174; P. L., t. CLXXXII, col. 333; Super Missus est, 
horn. IV, 8; P. L., t.CLXXXIII, c. 83. 

(19) Mariale, q.42. He terms Mary the coadjutrix et socio 
Christi. 

(20) He says that on the day of the Annunciation Mary gave 
her consent in the name of all humanity, loco totius humanae 
naturae. Cf. also his Expos. Salut. Angelicae. 



MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION IN GENERAL 203 

found quite explicitly in St. Bernadine of Siena, St. 
Antonine (21), Suarez (22), Bossuet (23), and St. 
Alphonsus. St. Grignon de Montfort is one of those 
who, in the 18th century, did the most to spread the 
doctrine by bringing out its practical conclusions 
(24). 

In the encyclical Ad diem ilium, Pius X stated that 
Mary is the all-powerful mediatrix of the world before 
her Son : " Totius terrarum orbis potentissima apud 
Unigenitum Pilium suum mediatrix et conciliatrix." 
The title of mediatrix has been consecrated by the 
institution of the feast of Mary, Mediatrix of all 
graces, on January 21st, 1921. 

Theological Arguments 

The theological arguments invoked by the Fathers 
and still more explicitly by theologians are principally 
the following: 

Mary deserves the title of universal mediatrix, 
subordinated to the Redeemer, if she is an inter- 
mediary between Him and men, presenting to Him 
their prayers and obtaining benefits from Him for 
them. But that is precisely Mary's role. For, though 
a creature, she reaches by her divine maternity to the 
frontiers of the divinity, and she has received a ful- 
ness of grace which is intended to overflow on us. She 
has, too, co-operated in saving us by consenting 

(21) He terms Mary adjutrix nostrae redemptionis et mater 
nostrae spiritualis regenerationis. Sv.jn.ma TheoL, part IV, 
tit. XV, c.xiv, 2. 

(22) In IHam S. Thomae, t. II, disp. XXIII, sect. I, n. 4. He 
shows from tradition that Mary merited de congruo what 
Christ merited de condigno. This is also the teaching of John 
of Cartagena, Novatus, Chr. de Vega, ThSophlle Raynaud, etc. 

(23) 4th sermon for the Feast of the Annunciation. Cf. also 
the index to his works under the word Marie. 

(24) Treatise of True Devotion to the Blessed Virgin, chs. I 
and II. 



204 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



freely to be the Mother of the Saviour and by uniting 
herself as intimately as possible to His sacrifice. We 
shall see later that she has merited and made satis- 
faction for us, and we know from the teaching of the 
Church that she continues to interecede for us so as 
to obtain for us all graces that contribute to our 
salvation. These different offices pertain to the 
exercise of her maternity, as we have already seen. 

Thus Jesus is the principal and perfect Mediator, 
in dependence on Whose merits — and they are super- 
abundant and sufficient of themselves — Mary 
exercises her subordinate mediation (25). But Mary's 
mediation has nevertheless been willed by God 
because of our weakness and because God wished to 
honour her by allowing her the exercise of causality 
in the order of salvation and sanctification. 

The work of redemption proceeds therefore entirely 
from God as First Cause of grace, entirely from Jesus 
as principal and perfect Mediator, and entirely from 
Mary as subordinate mediatrix. These three causes 
are not partial and co-ordinate — as are three men 
who drag the same load — but total and subordinated : 
the second acts under the influence of the first, and 
the third under the influence of the second. An 
example which may make the point clear is that of 
the fruit which proceeds entirely from God the 
Author of nature, entirely from the tree, and entirely 
from the branch on which it grows. It does not 
proceed in its different parts from different causes: 
neither is our redemption the work in part of the 
Divinity, in part of the Humanity, and in part of Mary 

(25) Jesus' merits needed no complement on the part of 
Mary; that Is why she is compared in the mystical body to the 
neck which unites the head to the members. She is compared 
also with an aqueduct through which grace passes to us. 



MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION IN GENERAL 



205 



(26). It is worth noting how becoming it is that 
Mary who was redeemed by the Saviour in a most 
excellent manner and preserved from all sin, original 
and actual, should co-operate in this way in our justi- 
fication and our final perseverance. 

Mary's mediation is of a much higher order than 
that of the saints, for she alone has given us the 
Saviour, she alone was so intimately united to the 
sacrifice of the Cross, she alone is universal mediatrix 
for all mankind and (as we shall see later) for all 
graces in particular— even for that grace which is of 
all the most particular, the grace of the present 
moment which assures our fidelity from instant to 
instant. 

We shall grasp this universality better when we 
shall have seen that Mary merited de congruo every- 
thing that Jesus merited in strict justice, that she 
made satisfaction (ex convenientia) for us in union 
with Him, and that as regards the application of the 
fruits of the redemption, she continues to intercede 
for each one of us, and more particularly for those 
who invoke her, so that of all the particular graces 
granted to us, none are granted de facto without her 
intervention. 



(26) For the moment we are attributing to Mary only moral 
causality which, as we shall see, is exercised by merit, satis- 
faction and intercession. However, it is probable, as we shall 
show later, that she exercises a physical, instrumental 
causality as well in the spiritual order for the transmission 
and production of the graces which we receive through her. 
This is no more than a simple probability, but we believe it 
cannot be denied without running the risk of diminishing 
Mary's influence, which must be greater than is commonly 
believed. Cf. infra pp. 234-248. 



203 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



Article II 

Mary's Merits For Us 

Nature and Extent of Her Merits 

The exercise of her functions as universal media- 
trix was not confined for Our Lady to the period of 
her glory in heaven: she exercised them on earth, 
as far as the acquisition of grace was concerned, by 
co-operating in our redemption by her merits and 
her satisfaction. In that she followed the example 
of Jesus Who was Mediator during His life on earth, 
most of all by His death on Calvary: in fact, His 
mediation on earth was the foundation of His 
mediation in heaven, whence, by His intercession, 
He transmits to us the fruits of His sacrifice. 

The Three Kinds of Merits 

Merit in general means a right to a reward: the 
meritorious act confers a right to a reward even 
though it does not itself produce it. Supernatural 
merit — which presupposes habitual grace and 
charity— is a right to a supernatural reward. It is 
distinguished from satisfaction, which has as pur- 
pose to expiate the insult offered the Divine majesty 
by sin and to render God once more propitious. It is 
distinguished also from prayer, for even a sinner in 
the state of mortal sin can pray with the help of 
actual grace. Besides, unlike merit, prayer appeals 
not to the divine justice but to the divine mercy. 
Even when a person is in the state of grace the meri- 
torious value of his prayer should be distinguished 
from its value considered precisely as prayer. 



MARY'S MERITS FOR US 



207 



Considered as prayer— that is, from the point of view 
of impetratory value — it can obtain grace, such as 
that of final perseverance, which cannot be merited 
in the strict sense of the term. 

There are three kinds of merit. The highest kind, 
which was that of the Incarnate Word, is merit which 
is perfectly and fully worthy of a reward, perfecte de 
condigno: the act of charity of the God-Man, since 
it is the act of a divine Person, is at least equal in value 
to the reward, even when evaluated in strict justice. 
Even when the reward was not for Himself, but for 
us, Jesus could still merit it in strict justice since He 
was Head of the human race through the fulness of 
grace which had been given Him that we might all 
receive of it. 

The second kind of merit is that of the person in 
the state of grace. It is a dogma of faith (27) that 
every person in the state of grace and endowed with 
the use of reason and free will, and who is as yet a 
member of the Church militant, can merit an increase 
of charity and of eternal life with a merit commonly 
termed de condigno. The force of the term (which 
may be translated literally " of worthiness ") is that 
such a person is capable of performing acts which are 
really worthy of a supernatural reward, not in the 
sense that they are fully equal in value to it, but in 
the sense that they are proportionate to it since they 
proceed from habitual grace which is the germ or 
beginning of that eternal life which God has 
promised to those who keep His commandments. 
Merit de condigno is a right in distributive justice, 
though not in the full rigour of justice. The connec- 
tion between merit de condigno and justice throws 
light on certain texts of scripture such as those in 
which eternal life is spoken of as a crown of justice 

(27) Council of Trent, Session VI, cm. 32: Denz. 812. 



208 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



(28) , a retribution made according to each one's work 

(29) , or the recompense of a labour which God could 
not pass over (30). 

A person in the state of grace cannot, however, 
merit grace de condigno for another— for example, 
the conversion of a sinner or another's advance in 
charity. The reason is that Christ alone has been 
constituted Head of the human race to regenerate 
men and to lead them to salvation (31). In other 
words the merit de condigno of the just, and even of 
Mary, is incommunicable. One person can, however, 
merit grace for another by a lower kind of merit — 
that known as de congruo proprie, or merit of be- 
comingness. Merit de congruo is founded on charity 
or friendship with God rather than on justice: 
theologians say that it is founded on the rights of 
friendship, in jure amicdbili. St. Thomas explains 
it thus : " Since a man in the state of grace does God's 
will, it is in keeping with the proprieties (or rights) 
of friendship that God should do his will in saving 
another person (for his sake)— although it can hap- 
pen that at times there will be an obstacle on the side 
of the other person " (32). In this way, a good 
christian mother, for example can, by her good works, 
her love of God and of her neighbour, merit the 
conversion of her son de congruo proprie. St. Monica 
obtained the conversion of St. Augustine by that kind 
of merit as well as by her prayers: "The son of so 
many tears " said St. Ambrose, " could not be lost." 

This third kind of merit is that of Mary in our 
regard. It should be noted that it is merit in the 

(28) II Tim. iv, 8. 

(29) Rom. ii, 6-7. 

(31) Cf. b Acts'iv, 12: "There is no other name under heaven 
given to men, whereby we must be saved." Cf. also la liae, 
q.114, a.6. 

(32) la liae, q.114, a.6. 



MARY'S MERITS FOR US 



proper sense of the term since it is founded on the 
rights of friendship and presupposes the state of 
grace in the person meriting. The reason why it is 
truly and properly merit, and not something else or 
something less, is that the idea of merit is analogical, 
and admits therefore of differing senses which bear 
some proportion to one another. Thus there are, 
lower than the merits of Christ, and lower than the 
merits whereby the just man merits for himself, the 
merits de congruo proprie, founded not on the rights 
of strict equality of justice, nor even On the rights 
of distributive justice, but on the rights of friendship 
(33). 

There is a fourth member of the merit group which 
is merit in an improper sense of the term. It is that 
of the sinner in the state of mortal sin who prays to 
God under the impulse of an actual grace. His prayer 
has impetratory value; it addresses itself to God's 
mercy and not to His justice, and it is founded not on 
the rights of friendship but on the actual grace which 
moves the sinner to pray. It is merit de congruo im- 
proprie — merit of becomingness in the wide or im- 
proper sense. 

Mary's Merit de Congruo for Us. 

Once the nature of merit de congruo has been 
explained, it is at once evident that Mary could merit 
for us de congruo just as any mother can merit for 
her children. Hence, it is in no way astonishing that 
from the 16th century on theologians have taught 
that Mary merited for us de congruo proprie all that 

(33) The term merit de condigno has sometimes been trans- 
lated as merit properly so called. This is a mistake, since it 
implies that merit de congruo pro-prie is not properly merit 
at all. 



0 



210 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OCR INTERIOR LIFE 



Jesus merited for us de condigno. Suarez is very 
explicit. He shows, by appealing to a wide tradition, 
that though Mary merited nothing for us de condigno, 
since she was not constituted head of the Church, 
she co-operated in our salvation by her merits de 
congruo (34). John of Cartagena (35), Novatus (36), 
Chr. de Vega (37), Theophile Raynaud (38), George 
of Rhodes (39), all teach the same as Suarez. Later 
theologians follow this teaching also. Among the 19th 
and 20th century theologians the following may be 
mentioned: Ventura, Scheeben, Terrien, Billot, 
Lepicier, Campana, Hugon, Bittremieux, Merkelbach, 
Friethoff, and all those who have written in recent 
years on the universal mediation of the Blessed 
Virgin. 

We may conclude this list of authorities with the 
words of Pius X in his encyclical Ad Diem Ilium, Feb. 
2nd, 1904 : " Mary . . . since she surpasses all creatures 
in holiness and union with Christ, and since she has 
been associated by Him with the work of salvation, 



(34) In lam P. S. Thomae, t. II, disp. XXIII, .sect. I, no 4: 
" Ouamvis B Virgo nec nos redemerit, nec aliquid de condigno 
nS^eruerii tamen. impetrando, merentode c™°™°tem 
ad incarnationem Christi suo modo cooperando ac salutem 
nnstram aliauo modo cooperata est ... M eisciem moaib 
saepSe sancti Patres B. Virgin! a™^ p « r ?^ u a s e 
fuerit salutis causa." He then proceeds to quote ft^renaeus. 
St Augustine, St. Fulgentius, St. Anselm, St Bernard, St. 
Germanus, St. Ephrem, St. Peter Damien Richard of St. 
Victor, Innocent III, in support of his thesis. 

Si TZkn^iiZ^Sae viralnis Mariae, Rome, 1629, t.I. 

PP rt?) 9 rSoote Mariana, Naples, 1866, t. II, pp. 441 sqq. 

m K t V pp. 224 sqq. Raynaud stresses the point 
th»t thV redemption as accomplished by Jesus is of an in- 
flate and "supSundant value and does not need any com- 

ple ^ n ^,- frQn i, M ^ ry ^h S ^ e 'tr VIII De Deipara virgins Maria, 
t n 3 V26TLy l on' 166 ' GeoS of RhK states that Ma * V 
merited for us de co^ruo alf that Jesus merited for us de 
condigno. 



MARY'S MERITS FOR US 



211 



has merited for us de congruo, as it is termed, all that 
Christ merited for us de condigno, and is the principal 
minister in the distribution of graces "(40). 

As has been remarked (41) there is a double diffe- 
rence between Mary's merit de congruo. for others and 
that of ordinary souls in the state of grace. The first 
difference is that Mary merited all graces, and not 
some only, in that way. The second is that she 
merited the acquisition of grace as well as its appli- 
cation, since, by her union with Jesus on Calvary, she 
had a share in the act of redemption itself even be- 
fore interceding for us in heaven. 

The doctrine expressed by Pius X in the words 
quoted just now are merely an application to Mary 
of the commonly received doctrine regarding the 
nature and condition of merit de congruo. proprie. 
Some theologians look on it as morally certain; others 
as a certain theological conclusion; others as a truth 
formally and implicitly revealed and capable of being 
defined as a dogma of faith. In our opinion, it is at 
least a certain theological conclusion. We shall 
return to the point later (pp. 251-256). 

What is the Extension of Mary's Merit for Us? 

To answer this question it is enough to recall what 
Jesus has merited for us, since Mary has been 
associated with Him in the whole work of redemption 
and since the theologians— and their teaching has 
the authority of Pius X to support it— teach in general 
that Mary merited de congruo all that Jesus merited 
for us de condigno (42). But Jesus merited in justice 

(40) Denz. 3034. Concerning this text cf. Merkelbach, 
Mariologia, p 328. 
141) Merkelbach, ib., p.329. 

• 42) Under the Old Dispensation graces were given— as it 
were on credit: — in view of the future merits of Jesus, with 



212 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



all the graces required that all men should really be 
enabled to observe the commandments, even though 
in point of fact they do not observe them. He merited 
also all efficacious graces and their effects— that is to 
say the effective accomplishment by men of the 
divine will He merited finally for the elect all the 
effects of their predestination: their christian voca- 
tion, their justification, their final perseverance, and 
their eternal glory (43). 

It follows that Mary has merited all these same 
graces de eongruo and that she asks for their appli- 
cation' now in heaven and distributes them (44). 

i 

The foregoing points show in what an elevated, in- 
timate and all-embracing manner Mary is our 
spiritual mother, Mother of all men. We can suspect 
too what her care must be for those who are not con- 
tent to invoke her at distant intervals but who 
consecrate themselves to her that she may lead them 
to intimacy with Jesus, as St. Grignon de Montfort 

which were associated those of Mary. Thus Mary's merits 
te congruS extended by anticipation to the just of the Old 
Dispensation ^ ^ commentaries Thc . U gh we 

rannot merit our final perseverance for ourselves (it can be 
obtained by prayer the value of which is distinct from merit 
as we have shown) Our Blessed Lord has merited it in just ce 
f^r thosfwho will persevere and Our Lady has merited it also 

de (44?Tt W °follows from the principles enunciated in this 
section that Jesus has merited for Mary all the effects of her 
predestination, except the divine mater nty. The reason lor 

perseverance, and glory. 



MARY'S MERITS FOR US 



213 



explains so admirably in the following extract from 
his Treatise on True Devotion. 

Treatise, Ch. I, a.2: "Mary is necessary for men 
that they may arrive at their final end. (Devotion to 
Mary is not therefore a work of supererogation, as is 
devotion to any particular saint : it is necessary, and 
when it is true, faithful and persevering, it is a sign 
of predestination). That devotion is still more 
necessary for those who are called to special perfec- 
tion, and I do not think it possible that anyone can 
arrive at intimate union with Our Blessed Lord and 
perfect fidelity to the Holy Ghost without a great 
spirit of union with Our Blessed Lady and of depen- 
dence on her assistance ... I have said that this will 
happen especially towards the end of the world . . . 
because then the Most High and His Holy Mother will 
need to form great saints . . . These great saints, full 
of grace and zeal, will be chosen to oppose the 
enemies of God who will rage on every side, and they 
will be singularly devout to Our Lady, enlightened by 
her, nourished by her, led by her spirit, sustained by 
her and kept under her protection, in such wise that 
they fight with one hand and build with the other . . . 
That will arouse many enemies, but it will also yield 
many victories and much glory to God." 

This noble spiritual doctrine, the fruits of which we 
see daily more clearly, is the normal consequence, on 
the level of contemplation and intimate union with 
God, of the doctrine admitted by all theologians: 
t hat Mary has merited de eongruo all that Jesus has 
merited for men de condigno, and especially has she 
merited for the elect the effects of their predesti- 
nation. 



214 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



Article III 

The Sufferings of Mary as Co-Redemptrjx 
How Did Mary Make Satisfaction For 17s? 

The purpose of satisfaction is to repair the offence 
offered to God and to make Him once more favourable 
to the sinner. The offence offered by mortal sin has 
about it a certain infinity, since offence is measured 
by the dignity of the person offended. Mortal sin, by 
turning the sinner away from God, his final end, de- 
nies in practice to God His infinite rights as the 
Supreme Good and destroys His reign in souls. 

It follows from this that only the Incarnate Word 
could offer to the Father perfect and adequate satis- 
faction for the offence of mortal sin (45). For 
satisfaction to be perfect, it must proceed from a love 
and oblation which are as pleasing to God as, or more 
pleasing than, all sins united are displeasing to Him 
(46). But every act of charity elicited by Jesus had 
these qualities for His Divine Person gave them infi- 
nite satisfactory and meritorious value. A meritorious 
work becomes satisfactory (or one of reparation and 
expiation) when there is something painful about it. 
Hence, in offering His life in the midst of the greatest 
physical and moral sufferings, Jesus offered satisfac- 
tion of an infinite and superabundant value to His 
Father. He alone could make satisfaction in strict 

(45) It is easier to knock down than to build up. The offence 
of a creature's mortal sin has a certain infinity from the side 
of the Person offended, whereas the creature's love is limited 
because of the limitations of its principle. Besides, mortal sin 
destroys the life of grace, and once that has been lost, we 
cannot be restored to it by ourselves. 

(46) Ilia, q.l, a.2, ad 2; q 48, a.2. 



THE SUFFERINGS OF MARY AS CO-REDEMPTRIX 



215 



justice since the value of satisfaction like that of 
merit comes from .the person, and the Person of Jesus, 
being divine, was of infinite dignity. 

It was, however, possible to associate a satisfaction 
of becomingness (de congruo) to Jesus' satisfaction, 
just as a merit of becomingness was associated to His 
merit. In explaining this point, we shall show all the 
more clearly the depth and extent of Mary's 
sufferings. 

Mary offered for us a satisfaction of becomingness 
(de convenientia) which was the greatest in value 
after that of her Son. 

When a meritorious work is in some way painful it 
has value as satisfaction as well. Thus theologians 
commonly teach, following upon what has been ex- 
plained in the previous section, that Mary satisfied 
for all sins de congruo in everything in which Jesus 
satisfied de condigno. Mary offered God a satisfaction 
which it was becoming that He should accept: Jesus 
satisfied for us in strict justice. 

As Mother of the Redeemer, Mary was closely united 
to Jesus by perfect conformity of will, by humility, 
by poverty, by suffering— and most particularly by 
her compassion on Calvary. That is what is meant 
when it is said that she offered satisfaction along 
with Him. Her satisfaction derives its value from 
her dignity as Mother of God, from her great charity, 
from the fact that there was no fault in herself 
which needed to be expiated, and from the intensity 
of her sufferings. 

The Fathers treat of this when they speak of Mary 
" standing " at the foot of the Cross, as St. John says 
(John xix, 25). They recall the words of Simeon, "Thy 
own soul a sword shall pierce " and they show that 



216 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



Mary suffered in proportion to her love for her cruci- 
fied Son; in proportion also to the cruelty of His 
executioners, and the atrocity of the torments in- 
flicted on Him Who was Innocence itself (47). The 
liturgy also has taught many generations of the 
faithful that Mary merited the title of Queen of 
Martyrs by her most painful martyrdom of heart. 
That is the lesson of the Feasts of the Compassion of 
the Blessed Virgin and of the Seven Dolours, as well 
as of the Stabat Mater. 

Leo XIII summed up this doctrine in the statement 
that Mary was associated with Jesus in the painful 
work of the redemption of mankind (48). Pius X 
calls her " the repairer of the fallen world " (49) and 
continues to show how she was united to the priest- 
hood of her Son: " Not only because she consented to 
become the mother of the only Son of God so as to 
make sacrifice for the salvation of men possible, but 
also in the fact that she accepted the mission of pro- 
tecting and nourishing the Lamb of sacrifice, and 
when the time came led Him to the altar of 
immolation— in this also must we find Mary's glory. 
Mary's community of life and sufferings with her Son 
was never broken off. To her as to Him may be 
applied the words of the prophet: My life is passed in 
dolours and my days in groanings. To conclude this 
list of Papal pronouncements we may refer to the 
words of Benedict XV: "In uniting herself to the 

(47) Cf St. Ephrem, Oratio ad Virginem; St. Ambrose, De 
Instit. Virg., c.V. Epist. 25 ad Eccles. Vercell.; St. Bernard, 
Sermo de Passione, Sermo de duodecim stellis, Sermo Dom. 
infra Oct. Ass.; St. Albert the Great, MaHale, q.42; St. Bona- 
venture, Sermo I de B. V.-; St. Laurence Justinian, Sermo de 
nativ. Virginis. 

(48) Encycl. Jucunda Semper, Sept. 8th. 1894: " Consors cum 
Christo existlt laboriosae pro humano genere expiationts. 

(49) Encycl. Ad diem Wum, Feb. 2nd, 1904: " Reparatnx 
perditi orbis." 



THE SUFFERINGS OF MARY AS CO-REDEMPTRIX 



217 



Passion and Death of her Son she suffered almost 
unto death; as far as it depended on her, she im- 
molated her Son, so that it can be said that with Him 
she redeemed the human race " (50). 

The Depth and Fruitfulness of Mary's 
Sufferings as Co-Redemptrix 

Mary's sufferings have the character of satisfaction 
from the fact that like Jesus and in union with Him, 
she suffered because of sin or of the offence it offers 
to God. This suffering of hers was measured by her 
love of God Whom sin offended, by her love of Jesus 
crucified for our sins, and by her love of us whom sin 
had brought to spiritual ruin. In other words, it was 
measured by her fulness of grace, which had never 
ceased to increase from the time of the Immaculate 
Conception. Already Mary had merited more by the 
easiest acts than the martyrs in their torments be- 
cause of her greater love. What must have been the 
value of her sufferings at the foot of the Cross, granted 
the understanding she then had of the mystery of the 
Redemption ! 

In the spiritual light which then flooded her soul, 
Mary saw that all souls are called to sing the glory 

(50) Cf. Denz. 3034. no. 4. In this same place reference Is 
made to the words of Pius XI: "Virgo perdolens redemptionis 
opus Jesu Christo participavit " and to a decree of the Holy 
Office praising the custom of adding after the name of Jesus 
that of His Mother, our Co-Redcmptrix, the Blessed Virgin 
Mary. The same Congregation has indulgenced (Jan. 22nd, 
1914) the prayer in which Mary is addressed as Co-Redemp- 
trix of the human race. Cf. Diet, de Theol. Cath., art. Marie, 
coi 2396: "Since the word 'Co-Redemptrix' signifies of itself 
simple co-operation in the work of redemption, and since It 
has received in the theological usage of centuries the very 
precise meaning of secondary and dependent co-operaticn ... 
I here can be no serious objection to its use. on condition that 
It be accompanied by some expression indicating that Mary's 
role in this co-operation is secondary and dependent." 



218 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



of God. Every soul is called ,to be as it were a ray of 
the divinity, a spiritual ray of knowledge and love, 
for our minds are made to know God and our wills to 
love Him. But though the heavens tell God's glory 
unfailingly, thousands of souls turn from their 
Creator. Instead of that divine radiation, instead of 
God's exterior glory and His Kingdom, there are 
found in countless souls the three wounds called by 
St. John the concupiscence of the flesh, the concupis- 
cence of the eyes, and the pride of life: living as if 
there were no desirable love except carnal love, no 
glory except that of fame and honour, and no Lord 
and Master, no end, except man himself. 

Mary saw all that evil, all those wounds in souls, 
just as we see the evils and wounds of bodies. Her 
fulness of grace had given her an immense capacity 
to suffer from the greatest of evils, sin. She suffered 
as much as she loved God and souls: God offended by 
sin and souls whom it rendered worthy of eternal 
damnation. Most of all did Mary see the crime of 
deicide prepared in hearts and brought to execution : 
she saw the terrible paroxysm of hatred of Him Who 
is the Light and the Author of salvation. 

To understand her sufferings, we must think too of 
her love, both natural and supernatural, of her only 
Son Whom she not only loved but, in the literal sense 
of the term, adored since He was her God. She had 
conceived Him miraculously. She loved Him with 
the love of a virgin — the purest, richest and most 
tender charity that has ever been a mother's. Nor 
was her grief diminished by ignorance of anything 
that might make it more acute. She knew the reason 
for the crucifixion. She knew the hatred of the Jews, 
His chosen people — her people. She knew that it was 
all for sinners. 

From the moment when Simeon foretold the 



THE SUFFERINGS OF MARY AS CO-REDEMPTRIX 



219 



Passion — already so clearly prophesied by Isaias — 
and her compassion, she offered and did not cease 
to offer Him Who would be Priest and Victim, and 
herself in union with Him. This painful oblation 
was renewed over years. Of old, an angel had de- 
scended to prevent Abraham's immolation of his son 
Isaac. But no angel came to prevent the immolation 
of Jesus. 

©> 

In his sermon on the Compassion of Our Lady, we 
read the following magnificent words of Bossuet: " It 
is the will of the Eternal Father that Mary should not 
only be immolated with the Innocent Victim and 
nailed to the Cross by the nails that pierce Him, but 
should as well be associated with the mystery which 
is accomplished by His death . . . Three things occur 
in the sacrifice of Our Saviour and constitute its per- 
fection. There are the sufferings by which His 
humanity was crushed. There is His resignation to 
the will of His Father by which He humbly offered 
Himself. There is the f ruitfulness by which He brings 
us to the life of grace by dying Himself. He suffers 
as a victim who must be bruised and destroyed. He 
submits as a priest who sacrifices freely; voluntarie 
sacrificabo tibi (Ps liii, 8). Finally He brings us to 
life by His sufferings as the Father of a new people . . . 

" Mary stands near the Cross. With what eyes she 
contemplates her Son all covered with blood, all 
covered with wounds, in form now hardly a man! 
The sight is enough to cause her death. If she draws 
near to that altar, it is to be immolated there: and 
there, in fact, does she feel Simeon's sword pierce 
her heart . . . 

" But did her dolours overcome her, did her grief 
cast her to the ground? Stabat juxta crucem: she 



220 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



stood by the Cross. The sword pierced her heart 
but did not take away her strength of soul : her con- 
stancy equals her affliction, and her face is the face 
of one no less resigned than afflicted. 

" What remains then but that Jesus Who sees her 
feel His sufferings and imitate His resignation should 
have given her a share in His fruitf ulness. It is with 
that thought that He gave her John to be her son: 
Woman, behold thy son. Woman, who suffer with me, 
be fruitful with me, be the mother of my children 
whom I give you unreservedly in the person of this 
disciple; I give them life by my sufferings, and 
sharing in the bitterness that is mine your affliction 
will make you fruitful." 

In the sermon, of which the paragraphs I have 
quoted are the opening, Bossuet develops the three 
main points outlined and shows that Mary's love for 
Jesus was enough to make her a martyr: " One Cross 
was enough for the well-beloved Son and the 
mother." She is nailed to the Cross by her love for 
Him. Without a special grace she would have died 
of her agony. 

Mary gave birth .to Jesus without pain: but she 
brings the faithful forth in the most cruel suffering. 
"At what price she has bought them! They have 
cost her her only Son. She can be mother of christians 
only by giving her Son to death. O agonising fruit- 
fulness! It was the will of the Eternal Father that 
the adoptive sons should be born by the death of the 
True Son . ■ • What man would adopt at this price and 
give his son for the sake of strangers? But that is 
what the Eternal Father did. We have Jesus' word 
for it: God so loved the world as to give His only 
begotten Son (John hi, 16). 

" (Mary) is the Eve of the New Testament and the 
mother of all the faithful; but that is to be at the 



THE SUFFERINGS OF MARY AS CO-REDEMFTRIX 



221 



price of her First-born. United to the Eternal Father 
she must offer His Son and hers to death. It is for 
that purpose that providence has brought her to the 
foot of the Cross. She is there to immolate her Son 
that men may have life . . . She becomes mother of 
christians at the cost of an immeasurable grief ..." 
We should never forget what we have cost Mary. The 
thought will lead to true contrition for our sins. The 
regeneration of our souls has cost Jesus and Mary 
more than we can ever think. 

i 

We may conclude this section by noting that Mary 
the Co-Redemptrix has given us birth at the foot of 
the Cross by the greatest act of faith, hope and love 
that was possible to her on such an occasion. One 
may even say that her act of faith was the greatest 
ever elicited, since Jesus had not the virtue of faith 
but the beatific vision. In that dark hour when the 
faith of the apostles themselves seemed to waver, 
when Jesus seemed vanquished and his work annihi- 
lated, Mary did not cease for an instant to believe 
that her Son was the Saviour of mankind and that 
in three days, He would rise again as He had foretold. 
When He uttered His last words " It is consummated" 
Mary understood in the fulness of her faith that the 
work of salvation had been accomplished by His most 
painful immolation. The evening before Jesus had 
instituted the Eucharistic sacrifice and the christian 
priesthood; she sees now something of the influence 
the sacrifice of the Cross will exercise. She knows 
that Jesus is the true Lamb of God Who takes away 
the sin of the world, that He is the conqueror of sin 
and the demon, and that in three days He will con- 
quer death, sin's consequence. She sees the hand of 
God where even the most believing see only darkness 



222 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



and desolation. Hers was the greatest act of faith 
ever elicited by a creature, a faith higher than that 
of the angels when they were as yet in their period of 
trial. 

Calvary saw too her supreme act of hope at a 
moment when everything seemed lost. She grasped 
the force of the words spoken to the good thief: 
"This day thou Shalt be with me in paradise"; 
heaven, she realised, was about to be open for the 
elect. 

It was finally her supreme act of charity : so to love 
God as to offer His only Son in the most painful 
agony : to love God above everything at the moment 
when He tried her in the highest and deepest of her 
loves, even in the object of her adoration — and that 
because of our sins. 

It is true that the theological virtues grew in Mary 
up to the time of her death, for these acts of faith, 
hope and charity were not broken off but continued 
in her as a kind of state. They even expanded in the 
succeeding calm, like a river which becomes more 
powerful and majestic as it nears the ocean. The 
point which theology wishes to stress is not that of 
Mary's subsequent growth in the virtues but the 
equality between her sacrifice and her merits at the 
foot of the Cross itself: both her sacrifice and her 
merits were of inestimable value and their fruitful- 
ness, while not approaching that of Christ's sacrifice 
and merits, surpasses anything the human tongue 
can utter. Theologians express this by saying that 
Mary made satisfaction for us de congruo. in propor- 
tion to her immense charity, while Jesus made 
satisfaction de condigno. 

Even the saints who have been most closely 
associated with the sufferings of the Saviour did not 
enter as Mary did into the most secret depths of the 



THE SUFFERINGS OF MARY AS CO-REDEMPTRIX 



223 



Passion. St. Catherine de Ricci had every Friday 
during twelve years an ecstasy of pain which lasted 
twenty-eight hours and during which she lived over 
again all the sufferings of the way of the Cross. But 
even such sufferings fell far short of those of Mary. 
Mary's heart suffered in sympathy with all the agony 
of the Sacred Heart to such a point that she would 
have died of the experience had she not been 
especially strengthened. 

Thereby she became the consoler of the afflicted, 
for she had suffered more than all, and patroness of 
a happy death. We have no idea how fruitful these 
sufferings of hers have been during twenty centuries. 

Mary's Participation as Co-Redemptrix in the 
Priesthood of Christ. 

Though Mary may be termed Co-Redemptrix in the 
sense we have explained, there can be no question of 
calling her a priest in the strict sense of the word 
since she has not received the priestly character and 
cannot offer Holy Mass nor give sacramental absolu- 
tisn. But, as we have seen already, her divine 
maternity is a greater dignity than the priesthood of 
the ordained priest in the sense that it is more to 
give Our Saviour His human nature than to make His 
body present in the Blessed Eucharist. Mary has 
given us the Priest of the sacrifice of the Cross, the 
Principal Priest of the sacrifice of the Mass and the 
Victim offered on the altar. 

It is more also, and more perfect, to offer her only 
Son and her God on the Cross as Mary did, by offering 
herself with Him in community of suffering, than to 
make the body of Our Lord present and to offer It on 
the altar as the priest does at Holy Mass. 

We must affirm, too, as has recently a careful 



224 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIAHON AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

theologian who has devoted years to the study of these 
questions (51) that " it is a certain theological con- 
clusion that Mary co-operated in some way in the 
principal act of Jesus' priesthood, by giving, as the 
divine plan required, her consent to the sacrifice of 
the Cross as it was accomplished by the Saviour." In 
another context he writes: "If we consider only 
certain immediate effects of the priest's action such 
as the eucharistic consecration or the remission of 
sins in the sacrament of penance, it is true that the 
priest can do certain things which Mary, not having 
the priestly power, cannot. But to look at the matter 
so is not to compare dignities but merely particular 
effects which are produced by a power which Mary 
lacks and which do not necessarily indicate a higher 
dignity" (52). 

But even if Mary cannot, for the reasons given, be 
spoken of as priest in the strict sense of the term, it 
remains true, as M. Olier has said, that she has re- 
ceived the fulness of the spirit of the priesthood, 
which is the spirit of Christ the Redeemer. That is 
the reason why she is called Co-Redemptrix, a title 
which, like that of Mother of God, implies a higher 
dignity than that of the christian priesthood (53). 

» 

Mary's participation in the immolation and obla- 
tion of Jesus, Priest and Victim, cannot be better 
summed up than in the words of the Stabat Mater of 
the Franciscan Jacopone de Todi (1228-1306). 

The Stabat Mater manifests in a singularly striking 
manner that supernatural contemplation of the 

(51) E. Dublanchy, Diet, de Theol. Cath., art. Marie, col. 
2396 sqq. 

(52) lb., col. 2366. 

(53) lb., col. 2365. 



THE SUFFERINGS OF MARY AS CO-REDEMPTHIX 



225 



mystery of Christ crucified is part of .the normal way 
of holiness. In precise and ardent words it speaks 
of the wounding of the Saviour's Heart and shows 
the intimate and persuasive manner in which Mary 
leads us to Him. Not only does Mary lead us to the 
divine intimacy, in a sense she produces it in us- that 
is what the repetition of the imperative " Fac " in the 
following strophes brings out- 



Eia Mater, fons amoris, 
Me sentire vim doloris 
Fac, ut tecum lugeam. 



O Thou Mother! Fount of 
love! 

Touch my spirit from above, 
Make my heart with thine 
accord ! 



F ac ut ardeat cor meum 
In amando Christum 

Deum, 
Ut sibi complaceam. 



Make me feel as thou hast 
felt; 

Make my soul to glow and 
melt 

With the love of Christ my 
Lord. 



Fac ut portem Christi 

mortem, 
Passionis fac corsortem 
Et plagas recolere. 

F ac me plagis vulnerari 
F ac me cruce inebriari, 
Et cruore Filii. 



Let me, to my latest breath, 
In my body bear the death 
Of that dying Son of thine. 



Wounded with His every 

wound, 
Steep my soul till it hath 

swoon'd 
In His very blood away. 

— Fr. Caswall 



This is the prayer of a soul which, under a special 
'"S' 0 "' to kn °w in a spiritual way the 

wound of love and to be associated in these painful 



p 



226 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



mysteries of adoring reparation as were John and the 
holy women on Calvary — and Peter, too, when he 
shed his bitter tears. Those tears of adoration and 
sorrow are what the Stabat asks for in the following 
strophes: 

Fac me tecum pie flere, Let me mingle tears with 
Crucifixo condolere, thee, 
Donee ego vixero. Mourning Him who 

mourn'd for me, 
All the days that I may live. 

By the cross with thee to 
stay. 

There with thee to weep 

and pray, 
Is all I ask of thee to give. 

— Fr. Caswall 

& 

Mary exercised therefore a universal mediation on 
earth by meriting de congruo all that Jesus merited 
de condigno and also by making similar satisfaction 
in union with Him. For both Jesus and Mary, the 
mediation exercised on earth is the foundation of that 
now exercised in heaven of which we shall speak in 
the next chapter. 



Juxta crucem tecum 

stare, 
Et me tibi sociare 
In planctu desidero. 



CHAPTER III 



Mary's Universal Mediation in Heaven 



Mary's mediation in heaven which she has exer- 
cised since the Assumption has as purpose to obtain 
for us the application at the appropriate time of 
Jesus merits and hers, acquired during their life on 
earth and especially on Calvary. We shall speak in 
this connection of Mary's power of intercession of 
the way in which she distributes graces or the mode 
of her influence on us, and finally of the universality 
of her mediation and of its definability 



Article I 

Mary's Power of Intercession 

Even during her life on earth, Mary appears in the 
gospels as distributing graces. Jesus sanctifies the 
precursor through her when she comes to visit her 
cousin Elisabeth. Through her He confirms the faith 
of His disciples at Cana by performing the miracle 
Tor which she asked. Through her He confirms John's 
faith on Calvary, saying " Son, behold thy mother " 
l'hrough her finally the Holy Ghost gave Himself to 
the Apostles, for we read in the Acts (Acts i, 14) that 
she prayed with them in the Cenacle while they 
prepared themselves for the apostolate and for the 
Uht and strength and graces of Pentecost. 



228 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



With still greater reason is Mary powerful in her 
intercession now that she has entered heaven and has 
been lifted up above the choirs of the angels. The 
christian sense of the faithful assures us that a 
mother in heaven knows the spiritual needs of the 
children she has left behind her on earth, and that 
she prays for their salvation. It is a universal practice 
in the Church for the faithful to recommend them- 
selves to the prayers of the saints in heaven. As St. 
Thomas says (1), when the saints were on earth, 
their charity led them to pray for their neighbour. 
With still greater reason do we say that in heaven 
they pray for their neighbour since when their 
charity is inflamed by the beatific vision it is greater 
than it was on earth: their charity in heaven is un- 
interrupted in its acts and proceeds from a fuller 
realisation of human needs and the value of life 
eternal. 

The Council of Trent defined that the saints in 
heaven pray for us and that it is useful to invoke 
them (Denz. 984). Their merits and their expiation 
have ceased, but not their prayer— no longer a prayer 
of tearful supplication but one now of intercession. 

St. Paul tells us that Our Blessed Lord does not 
cease to make intercession for us (2). He is the prin- 
cipal and necessary intercessor. But Jesus Himself 
wishes that we should have recourse to Mary so that 
our prayers may have greater value through being 
presented by her. 

As Mother of all men Mary knows the spiritual 
needs of all men, knows all that concerns their salva- 
tion. Because of her immense charity she prays for 
them. And since she is all-powerful with her Son 
because of the love by which they are united, she 

(1) Ha Ilae, q.85, a.H. 

(2) Rom. viii, 34; Hebr. vii, 25. 



MARY'S POWER OF INTERCESSION 



229 



obtains from Him all the graces for which she asks— 
that is to say, all the graces we receive. 

This power of Mary's intercession is proclaimed by 
the faithful each time they recite the Hail Mary. 

9 

Theology explains the belief of the faithful by 
pointing to three fundamental reasons for Mary's 
power of intercession. 

The first of these is that since Mary is Mother of 
men she knows all their spiritual needs. It is a 
principle admitted by all theologians that the happi- 
ness of the blessed in heaven would not be complete 
if they did not know what happens on earth to the 
extent to which it concerns them by reason of their 
office, their role, or their relations with men. Such 
knowledge is the object of a legitimate desire which 
must find its satisfaction in beatitude, and with all 
the more reason when the knowledge they desire is 
of men's spiritual needs and is therefore desired in 
charity: it is in charity that the saints desire men's 
salvation so that they may glorify God with them 
for all eternity and share thus in their happiness. 
Fathers and mothers, for example, know from heaven 
the needs of their children, especially those which 
bear on their salvation. The same may be said of the 
founders of religious institutes. With all the more 
reason may the same be said of Our Lady, who has 
the highest degree of glory after her Son : as Mother 
of all men she must know everything which bears 
directly or indirectly on the supernatural life which 
she has been commissioned to give us and to nourish 
in us. This universal knowledge, certain and de- 
tailed, of all that concerns our destiny — our thoughts, 
desires, the dangers in which we are, the graces we 
need, temporal affairs which have some connection 



230 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OCR INTERIOR LIFE 



with our salvation — is a prerogative which belongs 
to Mary because of her motherhood of God and her 
spiritual motherhood of men (3). 

Knowing our spiritual needs and even the temporal 
needs which are connected with our salvation Mary 
is obviously impelled by her great charity to intercede 
for us. If a mother but suspects that her child needs 
her help she flies to its side. There is no question 
here of Mary's acquiring new merits in heaven but 
simply of her obtaining that her merits — and her 
Son's — be applied to us at the appropriate moment. 

Is Mary's prayer omnipotent? Tradition has 
honoured Mary with the title, Omnipotentia supplex, 
omnipotence in the order of supplication (4). 

In support of the title, we may refer to the principle 
that the intercession of the saints is proportioned to 
their degree of glory in heaven, or of union with God 
(Cf. Ha Ilae, q.83, all). It follows then that Mary 
whose glory surpasses that of all the saints, must 
have all power in intercession. Even before the 8th 
century, this is the explicit teaching of St. Ephrem. 
In the 8th century, the most clear-cut statements are 
those of Andrew of Crete, of St. Germanus of Con- 
stantinople, and of St. John Damascene. Towards 
the end of the 11th century, St. Anselm and his 
disciple Eadmer affirm Mary's intercessory omni- 
potence, a doctrine explained by St. Bernard and 

(3) Cf. E. Dublanchy, Diet. Thiol. Cath., art. Marie, col. 
2412 : " Can it be said that even on earth Mary knew in detail 
all that concerned the salvation and sanctiflcation of all men? 
It would appear that no satisfactory proof can be given to 
support an affirmative answer to the question, especially in 
regard to universal knowledge extending to all the details 
concerning every individual. But Mary has this perfect 
knowledge in heaven where she exercises her universal inter- 
cession and mediation for all the graces which follow from 
the redemption." 

(4) For a list of extracts and references we refer the reader 
to Hugon, O.P., Marie pleine de grace, 5th edit.. 1926, pp. 
160-166; also to Merkelbach, Mariologia, pp. 345-371. 



MARY'S POWER OF INTERCESSION 



231 



transmitted to succeeding generations of theologians. 

Bossuet brings out the underlying principles very 
well in his sermon on the Compassion of Our Lady, 
when he recalls the two texts: "God so loved the 
world, as to give his only begotten Son " (John iii, 16) 
and "He that spared not even his own Son, but' de- 
livered him up for us all, how hath he not also, with 
him, given us all good things " (Rom. viii, 32). Mary 
in her turn has loved God and souls to the extent of 
delivering up her Son, Jesus, on Calvary. She is in 
consequence all-powerful with God the Father and 
with Jesus to obtain all that is necessary for the 
salvation of those who turn to her mediation. 

One paragraph of the sermon deserves to be 
quoted: "Intercede for us, O Blessed Virgin Mary: 
you have in your hands, if I may so speak, the key 
that opens the treasury of the divine blessings. That 
key is your Son: He closes and no one can open: He 
opens and no one can close : it is His innocent blood 
which makes us to be inundated with heavenly 
graces. And to whom will He give the right to that 
blood, if not to her from whom He drew all His blood 
. . . For the rest, you live in such perfect union of 
love with Him that it is impossible that your prayer 
should not be heard." It is enough, as St. Bernard 
says, if Mary speaks to the Heart of Jesus. 

The teaching of Tradition, thus formulated by 
Bossuet, has been proclaimed by Leo XIII in his first 
encyclical on the Rosary, September 1st, 1883, in 
which he calls Mary the dispenser of heavenly graces, 
coelestium administra gratiarum. In the encyclical 
Jucunda semper, September 8th, 1894, the same Pope 
makes his own the two statements of St. Bernard: 
that God in His great mercy has made Mary our 
Mediatrix, and that He has willed that all graces 
should come to us through her. The same teaching 



232 mary's universal mediation and our interior life 



will be found in the encyclical Ad diem ilium, Feb. 
2nd, 1904, where Mary is spoken of as " the dispenser 
of all the graces which have been acquired for us by 
the Blood of Jesus." Jesus is the source of these 
graces : Mary is, as it were, the aqueduct, or — to use 
another image— as it were the neck which unites the 
Head to the members and transmits the vital impulse 
to them: "Ipsa est collum capitis nostri, per quod 
omnia spiritualia dona corpori ejus mystico com- 
municantur." Benedict XV has consecrated this 
teaching by approving the Mass and the liturgical 
Office of Mary, Mediatrix of all graces, for the 
universal Church. 

As Fr. Merkelbach indicates (5), three points are to 
be noted. 

First of all, it is of faith that Mary prays for us, 
and even for each one of us, in her capacity as Mother 
of the Redeemer and of all men, and that her inter- 
cession is very useful for us. This follows from the 
general dogma of the intercession of the saints 
(Council of Trent: Session 25). In support of this 
assertion we may refer to the practice of the Church 
in praying, Sancta Maria, ora pro nobis: Holy Mary, 
pray for us. Legem credendi lex statuat supplicandi: 
dogma and prayer have one and the same law (Denz. 
139). 

In the second place, Tradition teaches us as certain 
that Mary's powerful intercession can obtain for all 
those who invoke her with the proper dispositions 
all the graces required for salvation (6) and no one is 

(5) Mariologia, pp. 345-349. 

(6) An obstacle to grace may arise through lack of proper 
dispositions or, if the prayer be for another, through that 
other's lack of dispositions. It should be noted that for the 
exercise of Mary's mediation of intercession it is not necessary 
that one pray explicitly to her. By the fact that one prays 
to God or to the saints, one prays Implicitly to Mary according 
to the present plan of our redemption. Besides, many graces 



MARY'S POWER OF INTERCESSION 



233 



saved without her intervention. Thus the Church 
repeats: Sentiant omnes tuum juvamen: Let all be 
cognizant of your assistance. 

In the third place, it is common and safe doctrine, 
taught by different Popes, by the liturgy, and by 
preachers throughout the world, that no grace is 
granted us without Mary's intervention. This is 
contained clearly in the Mass and Office of Mary, 
Mediatrix of all graces, and it would be at least rash 
to deny it. 

Historically, this doctrine will be found implicit in 
the doctrine of Mary's universal mediation up to the 
8th century. It becomes more explicit as we draw 
nearer to the 15th century, in the form of the affirma- 
tion that all God's gifts come to us through Mary as 
intermediary. From the 16th century onwards, the 
question has been examined under all its aspects. 
Even the graces of the sacraments are considered to 
fall under Mary's universal mediation in the sense 
that the dispositions which we must bring to the 
reception of the sacraments are obtained through 
her intercession (7). Besides, if Mary has merited de 
congruo all that Jesus has merited for us de 
condigno, it follows that she has merited the sacra- 
mental graces themselves. 

It is clear therefore that Mary's intercession is 
much more powerful and efficacious than that of all 
the other saints — even taken all together — for the 
other saints obtain nothing without her. Their 
mediation is included under her universal mediation, 
while hers is, in its turn, subordinated to that of 
Jesus. There is another point to be noted: it is that 

are given us without our praying for them at all, for example, 
the actual grace required to begin to pray. However, prayer 
offered explicitly to Mary with the proper dispositions has a 
greater guarantee of calling down God's grace. 
(7) Cf. Diet. Theol. Cath., art. Marie, col. 2403. 



234 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

Mary has merited all the graces which she asks for 
us, whereas the saints often ask for graces for others 
which they have not merited themselves. Their 
prayer could not then have the same efficacy as 
Mary's. 

Regarding the efficacy of Mary's prayer, a principle 
which applies to the prayer of Christ may well be re- 
called. The prayer of Christ is always heard when 
the thing prayed for is asked absolutely and in con- 
formity with the divine intentions which He knows 
so well (8); it is not so heard, however, when the 
thing prayed for is asked conditionally, as happened 
in the case of the prayer of the Garden of Olives. In 
the case of Mary's prayer, she obtains infallibly from 
her Son all that she asks absolutely and in conformity 
with the divine intentions: these intentions she 
knows, and her will is in complete accord with them. 

What has been said in this section is sufficient to 
show that Mary's omnipotence in intercession, resting 
as it does on the merits of the Saviour and on His 
love for His Mother, is far from derogating from His 
own universal mediation. On the contrary it is one 
of its brightest manifestations, and throws into 
clearer relief the marvellous way in which Jesus re- 
deemed and adorned her who was so intimately 
associated with Him in the redemption of men. 



Article II 

Mary and the Distribution of Grace 

Does Our Lady distribute grace only in the sense 
that she intercedes for each one of us and so obtains 



(8) Cf. Ilia q.21, a.4. 



MARY AND THE DISTRIBUTION OF GRACE 



235 



that the fruits of the merits of her Son be applied to 
each one of us at the appropriate moment, or does 
she transmit graces to us in the way in which the 
Sacred Humanity does? According to the teaching 
of St. Thomas and many other theologians, the Sacred 
Humanity is a physical instrumental cause of grace, 
an instrument always united to the divinity and 
higher than the sacraments, which are instruments 
separated from the divinity. 

St. Thomas has treated of this question in many 
places in so far as it refers to Christ, the Head of the 
Church (9). It is but reasonable to ask if something 
similar to what he says about the Head may be 
affirmed of her who is, according to the teaching of 
Tradition, as it were the neck of the Mystical Body 
which unites the Head to the members and transmits 
the vital impulse to them. 

© 

In this connection theologians commonly admit 
that Mary exercises moral causality by her past 
merits and satisfaction and by her present inter- 
cession. But very many stop there and do not admit 
that she exercises any physical instrumental 
causality (10). Other theologians admit physical 
instrumental causality in subordination to the Sacred 
Humanity. They rely in support of their thesis on 
the traditional doctrine of Mary as the neck of the 

(9) Ilia, q.8, a.2, ad 1; q.13, a.2: q.48, a.6; q.49, a.l; q.50, a.6; 
q.62, a.l and De Potentia, q.6, a.4. 

(10) This negative answer is found in Suarez, III, disp. 23, 
sect. I, no. 2. Contemporary theologians who adopt the same 
position are Scheeben. Terrien, Godts, Bainvel, Campana, de 
la Taille, Bittremieux, Friethoff, Grabmann, Van der Meersch, 
Merkelbach. 



236 mary's universal mediation and our interior life 



Mystical Body, uniting Head and members, and 
transmitting the vital influence to them (11). 



It is certain that St. Thomas taught explicitly that 
the Sacred Humanity and the sacraments of the New 
Law are physical instrumental causes of grace. God 
alone is its principal cause, since it is a participation 
in His inner life. But there is no similar statement 
of his about Our Lady. There are even theologians — 
with whom we do not agree — who hold that he ex- 
plicitly denied her any such causality (12). In his 
explanation of the Ave Maria, he attributes to Mary 
a fulness of grace which overflows on souls and 
sanctifies them, but he does not say explicitly that 
this overflowing is anything more than moral 
causality. 

However, since physical instrumental causality was 
not an impossibility for the Sacred Humanity nor for 
the sacraments — for example, for the words of the 
priest at the consecration or when giving absolution 
— in the opinion of St. Thomas and his commentators, 
neither is it an impossibility for Mary (13). St. 
Thomas even admits that a miracle-worker is some- 



(11) This Is the position adopted by Hugon, O.P., La 
causalite physique instrumental, 1907, pp. 194-205; de 
Commer, De munere Matris Dei in Ecclesia gerendo; Lepicier, 
Girerd, Fernandez, Lavaud, Bernard. 

(12) In Ilia, q.60, a.8. All that is stated here is that one 
cannot baptise in the name of Mary, as we do in the name of 
the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, since she is not operative in 
Baptism even though her intercession is of value to the 
baptised person to help him to preserve his baptismal grace. 

(13) Besides the arguments from Scripture and Tradition 
for the physical instrumental causality of the Sacred 
Humanity there is a theological argument: to act physically 
as well as morally is more perfect than to act only morally. 
But we must attribute what is more perfect to the Humanity 
of Christ, provided it is not incompatible with the redemptive 



MARY AND THE DISTRIBUTION OF GRACE 



237 



times instrumental cause of a miracle, for example, 
when it is worked through a blessing (14). Not only 
can he obtain the miracle by his prayer, he may even 
perform it as God's instrument. 

It is not possible therefore to be certain that Mary 
did not exercise a similar influence in regard to grace. 
We must also allow for the fact that God's master- 
pieces—among which we must include Mary— are 
richer, more beautiful, more brimful of life than we 
can find words to describe. 

But at the same time it must be admitted that it 
does not seem possible to prove with certainty that 
Mary did exercise physical causality. Theology will 
hardly advance beyond serious probability in this 
matter for the reason that it is very hard to see in 
the traditional texts quoted where precisely the literal 
sense ends and the metaphorical sense begins. Those 
who are in the habit of using metaphors whenever 
they can will not appreciate this difficulty. But any- 
one who is accustomed to using words in their exact 
and proper sense will be fully sensible of it. When 
Tradition tells us that Mary's position in the Mystical 
Body is comparable to that of the neck which unites 
the Head to the members and transmits the vital 
impulse to them, at the very least the metaphor it 
uses is an expressive one, but we cannot affirm with 
certainty that it is more than a metaphor. 

However, as Father Hugon points out, the compari- 
son does not seem to be given credit for all its force 
unless physical instrumental causality be admitted 

Incarnation. Hence we must attribute to the Humanity of 
Christ the physical instrumental causality of grace. This same 
argument is valid, within all due limits, if applied to Mary 
and establishes our thesis as probable. 

uS 1 ^ Cf - IIa IIae ' 5.178, de gratia miracvlorum, a.l, ad 1: 
Potest contingere quod mens miracula facientis moveatur 
ad faciendum aliquid, ad quod sequitur effectus miraculi quod 
Deus sua vlrtute faclt." 



238 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



(15). Fr. R. Bernard, O.P., is of the same opinion: 
" God and His Christ make use of her (Mary) in this 
sense, that they make all the graces which they 
destine for us pass through her ... By using her as 
intermediary, They temper Their action all the more 
with humanity, without in any way diminishing its 
divine efficacy. They make Mary live by the life we 
are to live by. She is first filled to overflowing with 
it. Grace is pre-formed in her and receives in her the 
imprint of a special beauty. All grace and all graces 
come to us thus canalized and distributed by her, 
impregnated with that special sweetness which she 
imparts to all she touches and all she does. 

" By her action Mary enters therefore into our lives 
as bearer of the divine. In the whole course of our 
lives, from the cradle and before it to the grave and 
beyond it, there is nothing of grace in which she had 
no part. She shapes us to the likeness of Jesus . . . 
She leaves her mark on everything and adds to the 
perfection of what passes through her hands. I have 
said that we are sustained by her prayer: we are 
similarly sustained by her action and, if one may say 
it, have our spiritual being in her hands. Every 
christian is a child of Mary, but a child is not worthy 
of the name unless it is formed by its mother " (16). 

By admitting that Mary not only obtains grace for 
us by her prayers but transmits it to us by her action, 
a fuller meaning is given to her titles of treasurer 
and dispensatrix of all graces. This same fuller 
meaning seems to be suggested by certain strong and 
beautiful expressions found in the Liturgy, especially 
in the Stabat, where the repetition of the imperative 

(15) La causalite instrumental en the~ologie, p.201. 

(16) he Mystere de Marie, 1933. p.462. 



MARY AND THE DISTRIBUTION OF GRACE 



239 



Fac implies that Mary in some way produces the 
grace of intimacy with Christ in us (17). 

Mary's influence on our souls remains, it is true, 
shrouded in mystery, but it appears probable that it 
is more than moral : she seems to enter into the pro- 
duction of grace as a free and knowing instrument, 
somewhat as a miracle-worker can perform a miracle 
by his contact and his blessing. Even in the natural 
order a smile, a look, the tone of the voice, communi- 
cate something of the life of the soul. 

9 

In addition to the argument drawn from the 
traditional formulae there are theological ones which 
have a certain weight. 

As Fr. Hugon says ( 18) : " Once it is granted that the 
angels and the saints are frequently physical 
secondary causes of miracles, it seems quite natural 
to postulate the same power for the Mother of God 
and in a higher degree." And if she is the physical 
instrumental cause of miracles which God alone 
produces as Principal Cause, what reason can there 
be for not admitting that she causes grace in the 
same manner? Fr. Hugon continues "Every pre- 
rogative which is possible in itself and which 
harmonises with the role and dignity of the Mother 
of God should be found in Mary . . . She receives 
under a secondary title everything that Jesus has 
under a full and primary title— merits, satisfaction, 
intercession. Why should this relation between 
Mother and Son not extend to the order of physical 

(17) Cf. the strophes quoted on p. 225. 

(18) La causalite instrumental en theologie, 1907, pp. 195 

sqq. 



240 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



causality? What necessitates an exception? (19). 
Would it not appear that the supernatural parallelism 
between Jesus and Mary should be continued to the 
very end, and that the Mother should be secondary 
instrument wherever the Son is first and conjoined 
instrument? ... It seems but natural that Mary's acts 
of which God makes continual use in the order of 
intercession should be elevated and transformed by 
His infinite fecundity and commissioned to com- 
municate the life of grace instrumentally to souls." 

Another argument may be drawn from the fact 
that the priest who absolves is instrumental cause of 
grace by reason of his union with the Redeemer. But 
Mary is no less closely united to the Redeemer since 
she is Mother of God and Co-Redemptrix. 

The influence which Jesus, Head of the Mystical 
Body, exercises is itself most mysterious since it is 
supernatural. No wonder then if that which Mary 
exercises over and above her intercession is also a 
mystery. We may note before concluding that Mary's 
influence seems to be exercised especially on our 
sensibility — which is sometimes so rebellious or so 
distracted— to calm it, to subordinate it to our higher 
faculties, and to make it easy for these latter to sub- 
mit to the movement of the Head when He transmits 
us the divine life (20). 

9> 

Though the manner of Mary's action upon us is 
hidden, the fact of her influence is in no way doubt- 
ful. It is beyond question that Mary is dispensatrix 

(19) To justify the exception it would appear that there 
should be some positive reason. 

(20) In this we see the application of St. Thomas's principle 
that the instrument disposes in preparation for the action of 
the principal agent. 



MARY AND THE DISTRIBUTION OF GRACE 



of all graces, at least by her intercession. It may be 
added with Pr. Merkelbach (21) that Mary does not 
intercede in the same way as the other saints: her 
prayer is not such as may possibly not be heard, but 
rather it is like the prayer of Christ, our Mediator and 
Saviour, Whose intercession is effective in fact as well 
as in right. The intercession of Christ, says St. 
Thomas (22), is the expression of His desire for our 
salvation which He acquired at the price of His 
precious blood. Since Mary was associated with the 
redemptive work of her Son she is associated with 
His intercession; she too expresses a desire which is 
always united to that of Jesus. In this sense she 
disposes of the graces which she asks for: her prayer 
is the efficacious cause of their being obtained, and 
she is united also to Christ's influence in transmitting 
them. 

For that reason the Church sings in the hymn of 
Matins of the Feast of Mary Mediatrix of all graces: 

Cuncta, quae nobis meruit Redemptor, 
Dona partitur genitrix Maria, 
Cujus ad votum sua fundit ultro 
Munera Natus (23). 

She bestows on us all the graces which her Son has 
merited for us and which she has merited with Him. 

9 

If, as it would appear, Mary transmits to us by 
physical instrumental causality all the graces which 
we receive, all the actual graces which are given us 

(21) Mariologia, p. 370. 
vi ^ 22 ^ Commentarium in E P- o-d Hebr., vii, 25 and ad Rvm., 

hoo^l^. 11 K th f, gi » f Kj /hlch the Saviour merited for us are 
oenents in answer to her prayer. 

o 



242 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



to be the air which the soul breathes unceasingly, it 
follows that we are at all times under her influence, 
subordinated to the influence of Jesus the Head of 
the Mystical Body; she transmits to us continuously 
the vital influence which comes from Him. 

But even if her action upon us is only the moral 
causality of intercession she is present, by an affective 
presence, in souls in the state of grace who pray to 
her just as a beloved object, even if physically distant, 
is present to the person who loves it. Mary being 
physically present in body and soul in heaven is 
physically distant from us on earth. But she is 
affectively present within the interior souls who love 
her (24). 

Mary's influence becomes increasingly all-em- 
bracing as souls advance in the interior life. This 
has been often noted by St. Grignon de Montfort. 
" The Holy Ghost," he says, "became fruitful on earth 
through Mary, His spouse. It was with her and of 
her that He produced His masterpiece, God-made- 
man, and that He produces daily till the end of the 
world the predestined members of the body of our 
adorable Head: that is why He is all the more active 
to produce Jesus Christ in a soul the more He finds 
there Mary, His dear and inseparable spouse. 

"This does not mean that Mary gave the Holy Ghost 
His fecundity ... It means that the Holy Ghost mani- 
fests His fecundity by making use of Mary, even 
though He does not need her, to produce Jesus Christ 

(24) Cf la Ilae, q28, a.l: "Duplex est unio amantls ad 
amatum. Una quidem secundum rem: puta cum amatum 
praesentialiter adest amanti. Alia vero secundum affectum 
Secundam autem unionem facit (amor) formaliter; quia 
ipse amor est talis unio, vel nexus." 



MARY AND THE DISTRIBUTION OF GRACE 



243 



and His members in her and through her: this is a 
mystery of grace unknown even to the most learned 
and spiritual of christians " (25). 

As Fr. Hugon remarks d propos of these words of 
St. Grignon de Montfort (26): "The exterior fecun- 
dity of the Divine Paraclete is the production of 
grace, not in the order of moral causality — for the 
Holy Ghost is not a meritorious or impetratory cause 
—but in the order of physical causality. To reduce 
this fecundity to act is to produce physically grace 
and the other works of holiness which are appro- 
priated to the Third Divine Person. From this it 
follows that the Holy Ghost produces grace physically 
in souls by Mary: she is the secondary physical 
instrument of the Holy Ghost. Such seems to us the 
import of these strong expressions of the saint : such 
the sublime doctrine which he says is a mystery of 
grace unknown even to the most learned and 
spiritual of christians." Mary's virginal motherhood 
reaches its completion in her transmission of the 
graces which she obtains by her intercession, just as 
the Incarnation is prolonged, in a certain sense, by 
the vivifying influence of Christ the Head upon Hi.<= 
members. 

St. Grignon de Montfort never expressed himself 
otherwise than as we have seen (27). Reference must 
also be made to the work " The Mystic Union with 
Mary " composed by a Flemish recluse, Mary of St. 
Teresa (1623-1677) who had herself experience of 
what she taught. Such writings show that Mary 
exercises a very profound influence on faithful souls 
to lead them to ever greater intimacy with Our 

(25) Treatise of True Devotion, ch. I, a.l. 

(26) Op. cit, p. 203. 

(27) Cf. ch 5, a.6; ch. 6, a.l; ch.7, a.5, a.6. Cf. also L'union 
^ v ,^l qu ?, a la Sainte Vierge, by Father Neubert, in La Vis 
Spirituelle, Jan. 1937. 



244 MART'S universal mediation and our interior life 



Blessed Lord (28). Those who enter on this way find 
themselves introduced far into the mystery of the 
communion of saints, and come gradually to share 
in the sentiments Mary had at the foot of the Cross, 
after Jesus' death, and later on at Pentecost when 
she prayed for the Apostles and obtained for them 
the graces of light and love and strength which they 
needed to carry the name of Jesus to the limits of the 
earth. And now that she has entered heaven the 
influence of Mary, universal Mediatrix, is still greater, 
more universal, and more effective. 



NOTE 

The Mode of presence of the Blessed Virgin in 
souls united to her. 

To make clear the doctrine on this point, it is necessary 
to explain briefly what theologians understand by virtual 
contact on one hand, and by affective presence on the other. 

Virtual or Dynamic Contact 

With regard to the presence of God In all things or of that 
of the angels in the bodies on which they act, a distinction 
Is generally made between virtual contact (contactus virtutis) 
and quantitative contact. Two bodies are present to each 
other by quantitative contact, i.e. by that of their own 
quantity or extension. A pure spirit, having no body, and 
consequently no quantity or extension, is present where it 
operates by virtual contact, by its power, the principle of its 
action. This is the dynamic contact of a spiritual force which 
takes possession of what it acts on. 

The Power of God is not distinct from His Essence, and 
so God is really and substantially present, by virtual contact, 
in everything He Himself produces immediately, or without 
the intermediary of an instrument, i.e. in what He creates 

(28) A French translation by L. van den Bossche of the 
Flemish original will be found in Les Cahiers de la Vieroe, 
May, 1936. 



MARY AND THE DISTRIBUTION OF GRACE 



245 



In the strict sense of the term ex nihilo and keeps im- 
mediately in existence. He Is thus present in Prime Matter, 
in souls and in angels which can only be produced by creation 
ex nihilo and cannot be brought about by the Intermediary 
of an instrument (cf. la, Q8, a. 1, 2, 3, 4; Q45, a. 5; Q104, a. 2). 

For the same reason theologians admit generally that an 
angel, which, strictly speaking, is not In a place inasmuch 
as It is a pure spirit, is really present where It acts, for It 
touches by virtual contact (contactus virtutis) the body which 
it moves locally (cf. Ia, Q52). An angel can also enlighten a 
human intelligence and act on it through the imagination, 
like a master who instructs 

The presence of the Soul of Jesus and that of the scul of 
the Blessed Virgin in persons united to them resembles that 
of the angels, but differs from it, however, under a certain 
respect. The difference comes from the fact that a human 
soul united to its body, like the Soul of Jesus and that of His 
Holy Mother, Is really present (definitive) where its body is 
and nowhere else. Now the Body of Jesus, since the Ascension, 
is in heaven alone according to its natural place, and the 
same must be said of Mary's body since the Assumption. And 
the soul, being of its nature united to its own body, acts on 
others only through it. In this It differs from an angel, which 
has no body. 

But just as God can make use of angels to produce instru- 
mental^ a properly divine effect such as a miracle, He can 
make use also of the Soul of Jesus, of His acts, and even of 
His Body, or again of the soul of Mary, of her acts and of 
her body. When God makes use of the humanity of the 
Saviour as a physical instrumental cause to produce grace 
in us, as St. Thomas admits (Ilia, Q43, a. 2; Q48, a. 6- Q62 
a. 4), we are under the physical influence of the Humanity 
of Jesus. However, It does not touch us. for It is in heaven 
In the same way. if someone speaks to us from a distance 
by means of a megaphone, this megaphone does not touch 
us immediately : there is only virtual contact and not quanti- 
tative contact of the Instrument and the subject on whlrh 
it acts— virtual contact similar to that of the sun which gives 
us light and warmth from afar. 



» 

If the Blessed Virgin is a physical instrumental cause of 
grace, subordinate to Christ's Humanity, we are also undef 



246 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



her physical influence, without her touching us, however, 
otherwise than by virtual contact. 

It must be noted, however, that the human soul, in so far 
as it is spiritual and transcends the body, is not as such in a 
place. From this point of view, all souls, in the measure in 
which they grow in the spiritual life and become detached 
from the senses, by bringing themselves spiritually nearer to 
God, bring themselves spiritually nearer to one another as 
well. Thus is explained the spiritual presence of Christ's Holy 
Soul and that of Mary in us, especially if we admit that they 
are both physical instrumental causes of the graces we re- 
ceive. 

Thus one can say that we are constantly under their in- 
fluence in the spiritual order, as in the corporal order our 
body is constantly under the influence of the sun which gives 
us light and warmth, and under the permanent influence of 
the air which we breathe at all times (1). 

In this spiritual presence of which we have just spoken 
there can be united the influence of instrumental causality 
called physical, which is here spiritual, and the presence cal- 
led affective, which we shall now explain and which for its 
part is not only probable but certain. 



(1) The instrumental power which produces grace Is of a 
spiritual and supernatural order. It can, however, be In a 
passing manner — as a vibration is — in a corporal action, for 
example of exterior adoration or blessing, or come through 
the glorious wounds of Christ's Body. It can be also in percep- 
tible words, as in those of sacramental absolution transmitted 
by the sound-medium which Is between the priest and the 
penitent. This instrumental power productive of grace can 
also be transmitted by the medium (air or ether) between 
us and the Body of Christ or that of His Holy Mother, present 
in heaven. 

But, as St. Thomas says (Ha Ilae, q.178, a.l, ad 1. and de 
Potentia Q6, a.4) God can also use as instrument a purely 
spiritual act, an interior prayer of the Saviour or of His 
Mother; in this case the Instrumental power productive of 
grace is transmitted without a corporal medium. How ? God, 
who is present everywhere, both in spirits and in bodies, 
which He keeps in existence, can make present where its 
work is needed this instrumental power of the spiritual order, 
which of itself is not in any place, but which is, like the 
spirits, in a supra-spatial zone of reality. The Thomlsts say 
that God brings it where it has to operate. God Himself can- 
not play the part of medium, for a medium, like air or ether, 
is a material cause set in motion whereas God can be only 
an efficient and a final cause. 



MARY AND THE DISTRIBUTION OF GRACE 



247 



Affective Presence 

Even if the Blessed Virgin were not the physical instru- 
mental cause of the graces we receive, she would be present 
in us by an ' affective presence ' as an object known and loved 
is present to the lover, and this in varying degrees of inti- 
macy according to the depth and strength of our love. 

Even a very imperfect soul is under the so-called physical 
Influence of the Blessed Virgin if she is the physical instru- 
mental cause of the graces received by this soul. But the 
deeper our love of Mary becomes, the more intimate does her 
affective presence in us become. It is necessary to insist on 
this, for the affective mode of presence is one which certainly 
exists, and St. Thomas has admirably explained it (la Ilae, 
Q28, a.l and 2) where he asks whether union is the effect of 
love and whether a mutual inherence results from it. 

He replies (a.l) : "Love, as the Areopaglte has said, Is- a 
unltive force. There are two unions possible to those who 
love : 1 — a real union, when they are really present to each 
other (as are two persons who are in the same place and see 
each other directly); 2— an affective union, (as that which 
exists between two persons physically distant). This latter 
proceeds from the knowledge (derived from actual remem- 
brance of the person loved) and the love of this person . . . 
Love suffices to constitute affective union and leads to the 
desire for real union." There is, then, an affective union re- 
sulting from love. In spite of whatever distance may separate 
the persons. If St. Monica and St. Augustine, far away from 
each other, were nevertheless spiritually united and in that 
way affectively present to each other in a more or less pro- 
found manner according to the degree or intensity of their 
affection, how much more is a soul that grows daily closer In 
intimacy with our heavenly Mother affectively united to her ? 

St. Thomas goes further : ibid., a.2, corp. et ad 1, he shows 
that a mutual spiritual inherence can be an effect of love in 
spite of the remoteness of the persons. And he distinguishes 
very well two aspects of this affective union: 1 — amatum est 
in amante, the person loved is in him who loves, as being 
imprinted on his affection through the delight he inspires 
him with ; 2 — and on the other hand, amans est in amato, the 
lover is in the person loved, inasmuch as he rejoices greatly 
and intimately at what makes for his happiness. 

The first mode is often the one more felt, and, with regard 
to God, we run the risk here of simulating such a union be- 
fore the time: moreover, even when it is really the fruit, of 



248 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



grace, it can have too strong an effect on the sensibility and 
thus expose one to spiritual greediness. 

The more disinterested and at the same time the stronger 
and more intimate love is, the more does the second aspect 
tend to prevail. Then the soul is more in God than God in 
it; and there is something similar to this with regard to the 
Humanity of Jesus and of the Blessed Virgin. 
" Finally, this strong and disinterested love produces, says 
St. Thomas (ibid., a.3), the ecstasy of love (with or without 
suspension of the use of the senses), a spiritual ecstasy 
through which the lover goes out of himself, so to speak, be- 
cause he wishes the good of his friend as his own and forgets 
himself (2). 

We see by this what can be the intimacy of this union of 
love and of this presence, not corporal, but affective. It is 
true, however, that this affective union tends to the real 
union which we shall enjoy in heaven in the immediate sight 
of the Saviour's Humanity and of the Blessed Virgin. Even 
in this life there is a sort of prelude to it in the physical in- 
fluence of the Humanity of Jesus and probably in that of 
the Blessed Virgin, whence we derive a higher degree of grace 
and a charity which takes deeper and deeper root in our will 
— cf. infra the section dealing with Mystical Union with Mary, 
pp. 308-314. 



(2) la Ilae, Q28, a.3: "Extasim secundum vim appetitivam 
facit amor directe, simpliciter amor amicitiae; amor autem 
concupiscentiae secundum quid ... In amore amicitiae 
affectus alicujus simpliciter exit extra se, quia vult amico 
bonum, et operatur bonum, quasi gerens curam et pro- 
videntiam ipsius propter amicum." 



THE UNIVERSALITY OF MARY'S MEDIATION 



249 



Article III 

The Universality of Mary's Mediation and its 
Definability 

In this article we shall consider the universality of 
Mary's mediation, the degree of certainty we have 
concerning it, and its precise meaning. 

As a matter of fact the universality of Mary's 
mediation follows so evidently from the principles we 
have established that the onus of proof lies altogether 
on our opponents (29). Mary Mother of the Redeemer 
and Co-Redemptrix has merited de congruo all that 
Jesus has merited for us and has made satisfaction 
in union with and in dependence on Him. Does it not 
follow that she can obtain in heaven the application 
of the fruits of these merits, and that she thereby 
obtains for us not only all graces in general but all 
graces in particular? 

This assertion is more than a pious opinion, how- 
ever probable. It is theologically certain in virtue of 
the principles on which it rests, it has been 
commonly accepted by theologians, it has been part 
of the Church's preaching and has been confirmed 
by the encyclicals of different Popes. To quote but 
one striking papal pronouncement, we find Pope Leo 
XIII teaching in the encyclical Octobri Mense on the 
Rosary, September 22nd, 1891 (Denz. 3033), "Nihil 
nobis nisi per Mariam, Deo sic volente, impertiri ": 
No grace is given to us except through Mary, such 
being the Divine Will. 

The universality of Mary's mediation is affirmed 
also in the prayers of the Church, which are an ex- 

(29) Among the opponents we may mention the Jansenists 
who wished to modify the line Bona cimcta posce of the Ave 
Maris Stella, since by it we ask Mary for all the graces which 
lead us to God. 



250 Mary's universal mediation and our interior life 



pression of her faith. Graces of every kind, temporal 
and spiritual — and among these latter all those which 
lead to God, from the grace of conversion to that of 
final perseverance — are asked through Mary. She is 
prayed also for the graces needed by apostolic 
workers, by martyrs in time of persecution, by con- 
fessors of the faith, by virgins that they may preserve 
their virginity intact, etc. The Litany of Loretto gives 
some idea of the many graces which the Church asks 
through her intercession. 

Thus through her are granted all the graces all 
men need, in their different conditions and stages of 
life. It has been so for twenty centuries: it will re- 
main so till the end of time. Mary obtains for us all 
we need for our journey towards eternity. 

Among all the different graces that which is the 
most peculiar to any particular wayfarer is the grace 
of the moment in which he finds himself. That too 
comes through Mary. We pray for it daily and many 
times each day when we say " Pray for us sinners, 
now and at the hour of our death." By the word 
"now" we ask for the grace required to fulfil the 
duty of the present moment, to practise this or that 
virtue asked of us here and now. Even if we do not 
ourselves realise what grace we need, Mary in heaven 
does, and it is through her intercession that we 
obtain it. The succession of graces of the moment, 
varying from one moment to the next, is like a 
spiritual atmosphere which we inhale and which re- 
news our souls as air does the blood. 

Mary's mediation is therefore truly universal : such 
is the teaching of Tradition. It extends to the whole 
work of our salvation, without being limited to graces 
of any particular kind. On this point, there is moral 
unanimity of the Fathers and Doctors of the Churc'.i, 



THE UNIVERSALITY OF MARY'S MEDIATION 



251 



and of the faithful whose belief is expressed in the 
liturgy. 

Definability of the Doctrine 

It would appear that the doctrine of Mary's uni- 
versal mediation is capable of being defined as a 
dogma of faith, for it is implicitly revealed in the 
different titles which Tradition gives Mary — that of 
Mother of God, most powerful in intercession with 
her Son, that of the new Eve intimately associated 
with the Redeemer, that of Mother of all men. Be- 
sides, it is a doctrine explicitly and formally affirmed 
by the morally unanimous consent of Fathers and 
Doctors of the Church, of preaching throughout the 
Church, and of the Liturgy. 

Leo XIII, after having stated that we receive 
nothing except through Mary, goes on to say that 
" as no one can come to the Father except by the Son, 
in much the same way (ita fere) no one can come to 
the Son except by Mary "(30). Pius X calls her " the 
dispensatrix of all the graces which Jesus acquired 
for us by His blood" (31). Benedict XV gave his 
approval to the same doctrine when he instituted the 
universal feast of Mary, Mediatrix of all graces (32). 

Mary's universal mediation appears then to be 
capable of definition as a dogma of faith: it is at least 
implicitly revealed and it is already universally pro- 
posed by the ordinary magisterium of the Church. 

What is the Precise Meaning of this Universality'? 

A number of preliminary remarks will be necessary 
in order to arrive at the precise meaning of Mary's 
universal mediation. 

(30) Denz. 3033. 

(31) Denz. 3033. 

(32) Denz. 3034. 



252 mary's universal mediation and our interior life 

In the first place, all the graces received by men 
from the Fall up to the Incarnation were granted in 
view of the foreseen merits of the Saviour — with 
which we must associate those of His Mother — but 
neither Jesus nor Mary distributed or transmitted 
them. This limitation was removed with the coming 
of the Saviour on earth in human flesh. As for Mary, 
it is especially since her Assumption into heaven that 
she knows the spiritual needs of all men and that she 
intercedes for them and distributes the graces they 
need. 

Since Mary distributes all that she has merited, it 
follows that she distributes the graces we receive in 
the sacraments. She does this at least by giving us 
the grace of being disposed for their reception, and 
sometimes even by sending us a priest without whose 
ministry we could not have received them (33). 

Mary's universal mediation should not be under- 
stood as if it meant that no grace is given to us 
without our having asked it explicitly of her; that 
would be to confuse our prayer to her with her prayer 
to God. Mary does in fact ask for graces without 
being invoked explicitly. Many graces are given to 
both children and adults even before they pray for 
them — especially the grace of beginning to pray. The 
Our Father can be said without any explicit invoca- 
tion of Mary; but she is invoked implicitly in it when 
it is said according to the order established by divine 
providence. 

(33) Cf. Diet. Thiol. Cath., art. Marie (E. Dublanchy). coi. 
2403 : The doctrine of the universal mediation of Our Lady " is 
true of all the supernatural graces which proceed from the 
Redemption. This conclusion, which is without restriction, 
applies to the graces of the sacraments, in this sense that the 
dispositions which one should bring to their reception, and on 
which the infusion of grace depends, are obtained through 
Mary's intercession." 



THE UNIVERSALITY OF MARY'S MEDIATION 



253 



It should not be thought either that Mary was 
Mediatrix for herself. She obtained her fulness of 
grace through the mediation of her Son. 

It would, however, be an error by defect to say that 
Mary merited nearly all graces, or morally all graces 
—say, something like eight or nine tenths of them. All 
graces without exception come by her mediation. 
Such is the general law established by divine provi- 
dence, and there is no known indication of any 
exceptions (34). 

A point which distinguishes Mary's mediation from 
that of the saints is that she is mediatrix de jure and 
not simply de facto for all men, since she is the 
mother of all. This makes her intercession all- 
powerful. Her prayers are more efficacious than 
those of all the saints united. The saints can do 
nothing without her intercession for the reason that 
it is universal (35). 

Mary's universal mediation extends to the souls in 
Purgatory. " It is certain that the Mother of Mercy 
knows the needs of these souls . . . She can bring her 
satisfaction to the support of her prayers . . . she did 
not need it for herself but has given it all into the 
hands of the Church who distributes it to souls in the 
form of indulgences . . . Thus when the satisfaction 
of Mary is applied to the poor debtors of Purgatory, 
they have a kind of right to deliverance since they 
pay their debt with what is their own . . . She obtains 
also that her children on earth pray for her clients 
in Purgatory, offer good works for their intention, 

(34) Cf. Merkelbach, Mariologia, p. 375. 

(35) This is what St. Anselm taught, Or. 46: 

Te tacentei nullus (sanctus) orabit, nvilus invocabit, 
Te orante, omnes orabunt, omnes invocabunt. 



254 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



and have the sacrifice of redemption offered for them 
. . . She can obtain also that prayers destined for 
souls who do not need them or who are not capable 
of benefitting by them should be made available for 
the children of her special love " (36). 

In the same spirit a Doctor of the Church, St. Peter 
Damien, assures us that on every Feast of the 
Assumption many thousands of the souls captive in 
Purgatory are delivered (37). St. Alphonsus de 
Liguori adds, quoting Denis the Carthusian, that such 
liberations take place most particularly on the Feasts 
of Christmas and the Resurrection. Though these 
testimonies do not impose themselves on our faith 
for acceptance, they point to and, in their own way, 
explain Mary's mediation. 



Some Difficulties 

The objection has been raised: the mother of a 
king has not the right to dispose of his treasures; 
neither then has Mary the right to dispose of the 
graces which Jesus has merited. 

There is no parity between the two cases (38). The 
mother of a king is simply the mother of a child who 
subsequently became king and, more usually than not, 
she has not co-operated closely with him in his 
government. But Mary is Mother of God the 
Redeemer, Universal King, by the simple fact of her 

(36) Hugon, O.P., Marie, pleine de grace, edit. 5, 1926, p. 201. 

(37) Ep. 52 and Opusc. XXIV: Disp. de variis appant. et 
miraculis. 

(38) Cf. Merkelbach, Mariologta, p. 377. 



THE UNIVERSALITY OF MARY'S MEDIATION 



255 



divine maternity. She has given Him His human 
nature and she has been intimately associated with 
Him in His redemptive sufferings and in His merits. 
She shares therefore in His spiritual royalty and has 
the right, in subordination to Him, to dispose of the 
graces He — and she — acquired. 

Another objection is that Mary's universal media- 
tion is no more than becoming or appropriate, and 
therefore cannot be affirmed with certainty. 

We may answer that the becomingness or appro- 
priateness in question is more than ordinary. It is 
based on Mary's divine maternity, on her spiritual 
motherhood of men, on her union with the Redeemer, 
and is so connected with them that its opposite would 
be unbecoming. It is connatural to the spiritual 
mother of all men to watch over them and to distri- 
bute to them the fruits of the Redemption. And — 
what is still more conclusive — Tradition shows that 
God has in fact disposed the scheme of our 
Redemption in accordance with this becomingness. 
This is the teaching of the Fathers of the Church, 
of the Doctors of the Middle ages, and of later 
theologians, who all in their own way have thrown 
the universality of Mary's mediation into clearer 
relief. 

Conclusion. 

There is therefore no serious difficulty against de- 
fining Mary's universal mediation as a dogma of 
faith, provided it is understood as we have indicated : 
as a mediation subordinate to that of Jesus and 
depending on His merits; as a mediation which is not 
considered to add any necessary complement to 
Jesus' merits, the value of which is infinite and super- 
abundant, but which shows forth the influence and 



258 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND ODR INTERIOR LIFE 



fruitfulness of those same merits in a soul fully con- 
formed to Him. As a matter of fact, the difficulties 
which are raised against Mary's universal mediation 
are much less serious than those raised against the 
Immaculate Conception in the 13th century. The 
Assumption is usually looked on as capable of 
definition; Mary's universal mediation seems to be 
even more certain, if we consider the principles which 
underlie it: the divine maternity, the motherhood of 
men, and the venerable tradition which contrasts 
Mary and Eve. Since this is so, and since the ordinary 
magistertum of the Church makes Mary's universal 
mediation to be theologically certain, we can only 
hope and pray that it be one day defined so as to in- 
crease devotion to her who is the watchful and loving 
Mother of all men. 

Mary's mediation in no way obscures that of Jesus. 
Her mediation is but a share in His : her merits have 
been acquired under His influence, and it is He Who 
confers on her the dignity of being a cause in the 
order of salvation and sanctification. History shows, 
too, that devotion to Mary has been lost by those 
nations precisely which have lost their devotion to 
Jesus, whereas those which have been the first to 
honour Mary have also been the first in their faith 
in the redemptive Incarnation. When Dr. Pusey ob- 
jected to Fr. Faber's statement: "Jesus is obscured 
because Mary is kept in the background," Newman 
answered that its truth " exemplified in history might 
be abundantly illustrated . . . from the lives and 
writings of holy men in modern times " (39). As 
examples he quoted St. Alphonsus de Liguori and St. 
Paul of the Cross, in whom ardent love of Jesus was 
inseparable from great devotion to Mary. 

(39) Difficulties felt by Anglicans in Catholic Teaching, 4th 
edit., p. 440. 



THE UNIVERSALITY OF MARY'S MEDIATION 



257 



True cult of Mary, like her action upon us, leads 
surely to intimacy with Jesus. Far from diminishing 
our intimacy with Jesus it increases it, just as the 
action of the Holy Soul of Jesus increases our union 
with the Blessed Trinity. 

The universality of Mary's mediation will become 
more evident when we consider in the next chapter 
that she is Mother of Mercy. 



I! 



CHAPTER IV 



Mother of Mercy 



We shall consider this title first in itself and then 
in its principal manifestations which are, as it were, 
that radiance of the revealed doctrine concerning 
Mary which makes it accessible to all minds. 



Article I 

Greatness and Power of this Maternity 

The title of Mother of Mercy is one of Mary's 
greatest. Mercy is not the same thing as mere 
emotional pity. Mercy is in the will, pity is but a 
good inclination of the sensibility. Pity, which 
does not exist in God Who is a pure spirit, leads us 
to suffer in unison with our neighbour as if we felt 
his suffering in ourselves. It is a good inclination 
but usually a timid one, being accompanied by fear 
of harm to ourselves and often helpless to render 
effective aid. 

Mercy, on the contrary, is a virtue of the will, and, 
as St. Thomas so well notes (1), whereas pity is 
found most of all in feeble and timid beings who 
feel themselves threatened by the evil that has 
befallen their neighbour, mercy is the virtue of the 

(1) la, q.21, a.3; Ha Ilae, q.30, a.4. 



GREATNESS AND POWER OF THIS MATERNITY 



259 



powerful and the good, who are capable of giving 
real assistance. That is why it is found in God 
especially: as one of the prayers of the Missal says 

(2) , it is one of the greatest manifestations of His 
power and goodness. St. Augustine remarked that it 
was more glorious for God to obtain good out of evil 
than to create out of nothing: it is greater to con- 
vert a sinner by giving him grace than to make a 
whole universe, heaven and earth, out of nothing 

(3) . 

9 

As Mother of Mercy, Mary reminds us that if God 
is Being, Truth and Wisdom, He is also Goodness and 
Love, and that His infinite Mercy, which is the 
radiation of His Goodness, flows from His love 
and anticipates His vindicatory Justice which pro- 
claims the inalienable right that the Supreme Good 
has to be loved above every other object: "Mercy 
exalteth itself above justice " (James ii, 13). She 
teaches us, though, that if mercy is not justice it is 
not opposed to it as injustice is, but unites itself to 
it and goes beyond it: most of all in pardoning, for 
to pardon is to go beyond what is demanded by justice 
in forgiving an offence (4). 

Every work of divine justice presupposes a work 
of mercy or of gratuitous goodness (5). If God can be 
said to owe anything to a creature it is because of 
some preceding gratuitous gift: if He owes a recom- 
pense to our merits, it is because He has first of all 
given the grace to merit, and if He punishes, it is 
after having given us the assistance which made 

(2) Deus qui maxime parcendo et miserando, potentlam 
tuam manifestas. 

(3) Cf. Ia Ilae, q.113. a.9. 

(4) Ia, q.21, a.3, ad 2. 

(5) fb. a.4: "Opus dlvlnae justitiae semper praesupponit 
opus misericordiae, et in eo fundatur." 



260 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



the accomplishment of His precepts really possible, 
for He never commands the impossible. 

Mary reminds us too that God often gives us His 
mercy more than we need, more than He is obliged 
in justice to Himself to give; that He gives us more 
than we merit— the grace of Holy Communion, for 
example, which is not merited. She tells us that 
mercy is wedded to justice in the trials of this life. 
Trials are a medicine to heal us, to make us right 
again, to bring us to the good. She tells us finally 
that mercy often makes good the inequality of 
natural conditions among men by a correspondingly 
more generous distribution of graces. This is the 
lesson of the different beatitudes— of the poor, the 
meek, those that weep, those that hunger and thirst 
after justice, those that are merciful, those that are 
pure of heart, those that are peacemakers, those 
that suffer persecution for justice. 



Article II 

Principal Manifestation of Justice 

Mary manifests herself as Mother of Mercy by 
being " Health of the sick, Refuge of sinners, Com- 
forter of the afflicted, Help of christians." The 
gradation of titles here is very beautiful. It shows 
that Mary is merciful to those who are sick of body 
in order to benefit their souls, and that afterwards 
she consoles them in their afflictions and streng- 
thens them in the midst of all the difficulties they 
have to overcome. Among creatures no one is 



PRINCIPAL MANIFESTATIONS OF JUSTICE 



261 



higher than Mary, and yet no one is more approach- 
able, more helpful, and more gentle (6). 

Health of the Sick 

Mary is Health of the Sick by the many providen- 
tial or miraculous cures which have been obtained 
through her intercession in christian sanctuaries up 
to our own days. So many have these cures been 
that it may be said that Mary is a fathomless ocean 
of miraculous healing. But it is to help the infir- 
mity of the soul that she cures the body. Her most 
important cures are those of the four spiritual 
wounds which we have suffered as a result of origi- 
nal sin and our personal sins— the wounds of concu- 
piscence, of weakness, of ignorance, and of malice. 

She heals concupiscence — a wound of our sensi- 
bility—by diminishing the ardour of our passions 
and by breaking our sinful habits. She helps the 
sinner to begin to will what is right with sufficient 
firmness to enable him to reject evil desires as well 
as the appeal of honours and riches. In this way 
she cures the concupiscence of the flesh and that of 
the eyes. 

She heals the wound of weakness too, our feeble 
pursuit of the good, our spiritual sloth. She makes 
the will constant and firm in its practice of virtue 
and helps it to despise the attractions of this world 
by throwing itself into the arms of God. She 
strengthens those who falter and lifts up those who 
have fallen. 

T „itL '■^IL 1 ^ 111 * 8 , are developed by the Polish Dominican, 
™fBS- of * M16 ? h ?^ \ n hls Collationes in Litanias B. Marine 
Virgmis, translated into French by A. Ricard under the title 
Sit' ^ n ? es Z ur les Monies de la TreS Sainte Vierge. 3rd 
edit Paris, 1870. We shall draw much of our inspiration for 
the following pages from this work. 



262 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

She heals the wound of ignorance by lighting up 
the darkness of our minds and providing us with 
the means to escape from error. She calls to our 
minds the simple and profound truths of the Our 
Father, thereby lifting our minds up to God. St. 
Albert the Great, to whom she gave the light to 
persevere in his vocation and to see through the 
wiles of Satan, said frequently that she preserves us 
from losing Tightness and firmness of judgement, 
that she helps us not to grow weary in the pursuit 
of truth, and that she leads us eventually to a relish 
of the things of God. He himself speaks of her in 
his Mariale with a spontaneity, an admiration, a 
freshness, and a fluency which are rarely found in 
the works of great students. 

She heals us finally of the wound of malice, by 
urging our wills Godwards, sometimes by gentle ad- 
vice, sometimes by stern reproaches. Her sweetness 
checks anger, her humility lowers pride and re- 
strains the temptations of the evil one. In a word, 
she heals us of the wounds which we bear as a result 
of original sin and which our" personal sins have 
made all the more dangerous. 

Sometimes this healing power of hers works in a 
miraculous manner by producing its effects instan- 
taneously. An example is the conversion of the 
young Alphonse Ratisbonne, at the time a Jew and 
far removed from the faith, who visited the Church 
of Sant' Andrea delle Frate in Rome through curi- 
osity. Mary appeared to him there, as she is 
represented on the miraculous medal, with rays of 
light issuing from her hands. She indicated gently to 
him to kneel. He obeyed, and while on his knees lost 
the use of his senses. When he returned to himself he 
expressed an intense desire for baptism. He was 
baptised and later, with his brother who had been 



PRINCIPAL MANIFESTATIONS OF JUSTICE 263 

converted before him, founded the congregation of 
the Fathers of Sion and that of the Religious of Sion, 
to pray, suffer, and work for the conversion of the 
Jews, saying daily at Holy Mass "Father forgive 
them, for they know not what they do." 

Refuge of Sinners 

Mary is Refuge of Sinners precisely because she is 
so holy. Detesting sin, which does so much harm to 
souls, she welcomes sinners and wishes to bring them 
to repentance. She frees them from the bonds of 
sinful habits by the power of her intercession; she 
obtains their reconciliation with God by the merits 
of her Son, and reminds the sinner too of the same 
merits. Once converted to penance, she protects 
them from Satan, against everything which could 
lead to fresh falls. She helps them to learn of the 
sweetness of penance. 

To her, after Jesus, all sinners now in heaven owe 
their salvation. She has converted them in count- 
less numbers, especially in places of pilgrimage— at 
Lourdes where she issued the invitation " Pray and 
do penance," and more recently at Fatima where 
the number of conversions since 1917 is known to 
God alone. There are many condemned criminals 
who owe to her their conversion at the last moment. 
She has inspired the foundation of religious orders 
consecrated to prayer, to penance, and to the apos- 
tolate of the conversion of sinners— those of St. 
Dominic and of St. Francis, the Redemptorists, the 
Passionists, and so many others. 

What sinners are there whom she does not pro- 
tect? Those only who despise God's mercy and call 
down His malediction on themselves. She is not the 
refuge of those who are obstinate in evil— in bias- 



264 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

phemy, perjury, impurity, avarice, pride of the spirit. 
But even to them she sends from time to time, as 
Mother of Mercy, graces for the mind and the will, 
and if they accept them they will be led from grace 
to grace and finally to the grace of conversion. To 
such she has suggested by the lips of a dying mother 
that they should say at least one Hail Mary each day, 
and often it has happened that though they made 
no other effort than that to change their lives, the 
feeble spark of good-will it contained was enough to 
light them the way to a worthy and penitent recep- 
tion of the Last Sacraments. They have been 
labourers of the last hour, called and saved by Mary 
(7). For almost two thousand years Mary has been 
the Refuge of Sinners. 

Consoler of the Afflicted 

Mary was Consoler of the Afflicted even during her 
lifetime on earth: she consoled Jesus by her pre- 
sence en Calvary; she consoled the apostles in the 
difficulties' they encountered in the conversion of 
the pagan world and obtained for them a spirit of 
strength and holy joy in their sufferings. She must 
have helped St. Stephen by her prayers when he 
was being stoned to death. She obtained for many 
the grace to bear persecution patiently and without 
giving way to cowardly fears. Though she saw the 
dangers which threatened the infant Church, she 
did not waver; her face was ever calm, for her soul 
was tranquil and confident. Sadness never took 
possession of her heart. What we know of the in- 
tensity of her love of God assures us that she re- 
mained joyous in affliction, that she did not com- 

(7) This was the case in France of the immoral writer 
Armand Sllvestre. 



PRINCIPAL MANIFESTATIONS OF JUSTICE 



265 



plain of poverty or privations, that insults had no 
power to alter her meekness. Her example alone 
was enough to hearten many a despairing soul. 

She has given to many saints the grace to be 
themselves consolers of the afflicted. Such were 
St. Genevieve, St. Elizabeth, St. Catherine of Siena, 
St. Germaine de Pibrac. 

The Holy Ghost is called the Consoler most of all 
because He makes us shed tears of contrition, there- 
by to wash away our sins and to restore to us the 
joy of God's friendship. For the same reason the 
Blessed Virgin is the consoler of the afflicted when 
she prompts them to bewail their sins from a con- 
trite heart. 

Mary is particularly attentive to our inner or 
secret poverty: she knows how little are the 
resources of our hearts, and she comes to their 
assistance. She knows all the needs of soul and 
body: she has consoled christians in persecution, 
she has delivered the possessed, she has assisted and 
strengthened the dying by calling to their minds the 
infinite merits of her Son. She lessens the rigours 
of purgatory, and obtains for those who suffer there 
that the faithful pray and have Masses offered on 
their behalf. 

In a sense, Mary's power as Consoler of the afflic- 
ted is felt even in the terrible regions of hell. For 
St. Thomas tells us that the damned suffer less than 
they deserve (8) since the divine mercy is found even 
in the strictest exercise of divine justice. What- 
ever less there is of the pain of hell than there might 
be is due to the merits of Jesusi and Mary. St. 
Odilon of Cluny says in his sermon on the Assump- 
tion that the Feast of the Assumption brings some 
slight alleviation of pain to hell's torments. 

(8) la, q.21. a.4, ad I. 



266 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

Mary has been consoler of the afflicted throughout 
the ages in the most varied ways, because of her 
great knowledge of the many trials through which 
men pass. 

Help of Christians 

Mary is Help of christians. Help is an effect of 
love, and Mary has now consummated fulness of 
love. She loves the souls redeemed by Jesus' blood. 
She helps them in their difficulties and assists them 
in the practice of the virtues. 

The thought of Mary, Help of christians, inspired 
St. Bernard in the well-known passage from his 
second homily on the Missus est: "If the tempest 
of temptation rages, if the torrent of tribulation 
carries you away, look at the star, look at Mary. If 
the waves of pride and ambition, of slander and 
jealousy, buffet you and almost engulf you, look at 
the star, look at Mary. If anger or avarice or passion 
tosses the frail bark of your soul and threatens to 
wreck it, look once more at Mary. Let her memory be 
ever in your heart and her name always on your lips 
. . . But remember that to obtain the benefit of her 
prayer you must walk in her footsteps." 

She has been the refuge of whole peoples as well 
as of individuals. Baronius tells us that Narses, 
general of the armies of the Emperor Justinian, de- 
livered Italy by her help in 553 from bondage to 
Totila the Goth. He tells us also that in 718 the 
city of Constantinople was rescued from the Sara- 
cens, who had been put to flight on many similar 
occasions already with Mary's aid. In the 13th 
century, Simon, Count of Montfort, defeated a 
powerful Albigensian army near Toulouse while St. 
Dominic invoked the Mother of God. In 1513 the 



PRINCIPAL MANIFESTATIONS OF JUSTICE 



267 



city of Dijon was delivered miraculously through 
her. On the 7th of October, 1571, a Turkish fleet, 
much more numerous and powerful than that of 
the christians, was defeated at Lepanto, at the en- 
trance of the Gulf of Corinth, through the help of 
Mary invoked in the Rosary. Finally, Mary's title 
of Our Lady of Victories reminds us how often her 
intervention on the battlefield has been decisive in 
favour of oppressed christian peoples. 

g 

The four invocations of the Litany of Loreto, 
Health of the Sick, Refuge of Sinners, Consoler of 
the Afflicted, Help of Christians, recall unceasingly 
to the faithful how truly Mary is Mother of divine 
grace and Mother of mercy. The Church sings that 
she is our hope: Hail, Holy Queen, Mother of mercy! 
Hail, our life, our sweetness, and our hope! She is 
our hope in that she has merited, with her Son, all 
that we need of help from God, and in that she 
transmits it to us now by her intercession. She is 
therefore the living expression and the instrument 
of God's helping Mercy, which is the formal motive 
of our hope. Confidence, or firm hope, is certain in 
its tendency to salvation (9), and its certainty in- 
creases with our growth in grace. This certainty de- 
rives from our faith in the goodness of God Omni- 
potent and in His fidelity to His promises. Thence 
comes that almost constant sense of His watchful 
Paternity which we find in the saints. Mary's in- 
fluence leads us gradually to this perfect confidence 
and makes its motive ever more clear. 

(9) Ila Ilae, q. 18, a.4: "Spes certitudinaliter tendlt ad 
suam finem, quasi participans certitudinem a flde." 



268 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



Mary is even called Mother of holy joy and Cause 
of our Joy, for she obtains for generous souls the 
hidden treasure of spiritual joy in the midst of 
suffering. She obtains for them from time to time 
the grace to carry their cross with joy after the Lord 
Jesus. She initiates them into love of the cross. 
And even though they do not experience that joy 
uninterruptedly themselves, she helps them to 
communicate it to others. 



In La Vie Spirituelle, April, 1941, p. 281, Fr. M. J. Nicolas, 
O.P., has written of a holy religious, Fr. Vayssiere, who died 
as Provincial of the Dominicans at Toulouse: "The grace of 
intimacy with Mary that he received, he owed first of all to 
the state of littleness to which he had been reduced and to 
which he had consented. But he owed it as well to his 
Rosary. During the long days of solitude at Sainte-Baume, 
he had acquired the habit of saying several Rosaries in the 
day, sometimes as many as six. He often said the whole of 
it kneeling. And it was not a mechanical and superficial 
recitation: his whole soul went into it, he delighted in it 
he devoured it, he was persuaded that he found in it all that 
one could seek for in prayer. 'Recite each decade,' he used 
to say, 'less reflecting on the mystery than communicating 
through the heart in its grace, and in the spirit of Jesus and 
Mary as the mystery presents it to us. The Rosary is the 
evening Communion (elsewhere he calls it the Communion of 
the whole day) and it translates into light and fruitful resolu- 
tion the morning Communion. It is not merely a series of 
Ave Marias piously recited: it is Jesus living again in the soul 
through Mary's maternal action.' Thus he lived in the 
perpetually moving cycle of his Rosary, as if ' surrounded ' by 
Christ and by Mary, communicating, as he said, in each of 
their states, in each aspect of their grace, entering thus into 
and remaining in the depth of God's Heart: 'The Rosary is 
a chain of love from Mary to the Trinity.' One can under- 
stand what a contemplation it had become for him, what a 
way to pure union with God, what a need, like to that of 
Communion." 



CHAPTER V 



Mary's Universal Queenship 



In the language of the Church, both in the Liturgy 
and in her universal preaching, Mary is not only 
Mother and Mediatrix but Queen of all men and even 
of thei angels and the whole universe. In what 
sense is she a queen? In a true or in a merely meta- 
phorical sense? 

It should be recalled first that God alone has uni- 
versal kingship over all things through His Essence: 
He governs all things and leads them to their end. 
Jesus and Mary share in this Divine Kingship. Even 
as man, Jesus shares in it for three reasons: be- 
cause of His Divine Personality (1), because of His 
fulness of grace which overflows on men and angels, 
and because of His victory over sin, Satan and death 
(2). He is King of all men and of all creatures in- 

(1) Cf. Pius XI, encyc. Quas primas, Dec. 11th, 1925, (Denz. 
2194): Eius principatus ilia nititur unione admlrabili, quam 
hypostaticam appellant. Unde consequitur, non modo ut 
Christus ab angelis et hominibus Deus sit adorandus, sed etiam 
ut eius imperio Hominis angeli e t homines pareant et subjecti 
sint: nempe ut vel solo hypostaticae unionis nomine Christus 
potestem in universas creaturas obtineat." Because of its 
personal union with the Word the Humanity of Christ is en- 
titled to adoration and participation in God's universal 
kingship over all creatures. Christ as Man has been predes- 
tined to be Son of God by nature, not by adoption, whereas 
angels and men are only adoptive sons. 

(2) Since He accepted the humiliations of His Passion in 
love "God also hath exalted Him, and given Him, a name 
which is above all names: That in the name of Jesus every 
knee should bow. of those that are in heaven, on earth, and 
under the earth " (Phil, ii, 9-10). 



270 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

eluding the angels, who are " His angels." Thus He 
says (Mk. xiii, 26) : " And then they shall see the Son 
of man coming in the clouds, with great power and 
glory. And then shall He send his angels . . ." For 
Jesus is Son of God by nature, whereas the angels 
are but God's servants and adopted sons. Jesus has 
said too of Himself : "All power is given to me in 
heaven and on earth " (Mt. xxviii, 18), and we read 
in the Apocalypse that He is " King of Kings and 
Lord of Lords " (Apoc. xix, 16). 

Article I 

Her Queenship in General 

Can it be said of Mary, since her Assumption espe- 
cially, and her crowning in heaven, that she shares 
in God's universal Kingship in the sense that she is 
Queen of all creatures in subordination to Christ (3). 

She could certainly be called a queen in the wide 
sense of the term by reason of her spiritual qualities 
and her fulness of grace, of glory and of charity 
which raise her above all other creatures. It is 
quite customary to use the words king and queen to 
designate persons of such eminence. Her mother- 
hood of Christ the King would also entitle her to 
be called a queen— still in a wide sense of the term 
at least. 

But would it not appear that she is a queen in the 
literal sense of the term by the fact of having re- 
ceived royal authority and power? Has she not, in 
dependance on Jesus and through Him, not only a 

(3) Cf. De Gruyter, De B. Maria Regina, Buscoduci, 1934: 
Garenaux, La Royaute de Marie, Paris, 1935; M. J. Nicholas, La 
Vierge Reine, in the Revue Thomiste, 1939; Merkelbach. Mario- 
logia, 1939, p. 382. 



HER QUEENSHIP IN GENERAL 



271 



primacy of honour in regard to the angels and 
saints, but a real power to command both angels and 
men? This is, in fact, what emerges from an ex- 
amination of Tradition as expressed in the preach- 
ing of the universal Church, the Fathers, the state- 
ments of different Popes, the Liturgy. There are 
theological arguments besides in favour of the affir- 
mative answer. 

The Fathers of both East and West referred fre- 
quently to Mary under such titles as Domina, 
Regina, Regina nostrae salutis. It is sufficient to 
mention a few among many: in the East SS. Ephrem, 
Germanus of Constantinople, Andrew of Crete, John 
Damascene; in the West St. Peter Crysologus, the 
Venerable Bede, St. Anselm, St. Peter Damien, St. 
Bernard. The same titles occur also in the works 
of the theologians: in St. Albert the Great (4), St. 
Bona venture, St. Thomas (5), Gerson, St. Bernadine 
of Siena, Denis the Carthusian, St. Peter Canisius, 
Suarez, St. Grignon de Montfort, St. Alphonsus. 
Different Sovereign Pontiffs have often used the 
same expressions (6). 

(4) Mariale, q.43. 2: "Virgo assumpta est in salutis auxilium 
et regni consortium . . . habet coronam regni triumphantis et 
militantis Ecclesiae. unde ... est regina et domina angelorum 

. . imperalrix totius mundi . . . ; in ipsa est plenitudo potes- 
tatis coelestis perpetuo ex auctoritate ordinaria . . . ; legitima 
dominandi potestas ad ligandum et solvendum per imperiunr 
totam habet B. Virgo potestatem in coelo, in purgatorio et in 
inferno . . . B. Virgo vere et jur e et proprie est domina omnium 
quae sunt in misericordia Dei, ergo proprie est regina miseri- 
cordiae . . . ipsa enim ejusdem regni regina. est cujus ipse est 
rex." Cf. Ibid. qq. 158. 162. 165. 

(5) In expos. Salut. Angelicae. 

(6) In his letter to St. Germanus of Constantinople read at 
the 2nd Council of Nicaea (787), Pope Gregory II terms Mary 
Domina Omnium, and the council itself approves of statues 
erected in Mary's honour. Leo XIII frequently spoke of Mary 
as Regina and Domina universorum in his encyclicals. Simi- 
larly Pius X in the encyclical Ad diem ilium: "Maria adstat 
regina a dextris ejus." 



272 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



The Roman and Oriental liturgies proclaim Mary 
Queen of the heavens, Queen of angels, Queen of 
the world, Queen of all the saints. Among the 
mysteries of the Rosary commonly recited in the 
Church since the 13th century the last of all is that 
of the crowning of Our Lady in heaven — a scene 
represented in one of Fra Angelico's most beautiful 
frescoes. 

The arguments adduced by theologians to prove 
that Mary has universal Queenship in the proper, 
non-metaphorical sense of the term, are conclusive. 
They may all be reduced to the following three. 

Jesus Christ is King of the universe, even as man, 
in virtue of His Divine Personality. But Mary as 
Mother of God made man belongs to the hypostatic 
order and shares in the dignity of her Son, for His 
Person is the term of her divine motherhood. Hence 
she shares connaturally, as Mother of God, in His 
universal Kingship (7). Our Blessed Lord owes it to 
Himself to recognise His Mother's title in gratitude. 

A second argument is that Jesus is King of the 
universe by His fulness of grace and by the victory 
which He won over Satan and sin by His humility 
and His obedience unto death, "For which cause 
God hath exalted Him . . ." But Mary was asso- 
ciated with His victory over Satan, sin, and death by 
her union with Him in His humiliations and suffer- 
ings. She is therefore really associated with Him in 
His Kingship. 

The same conclusion may be arrived at by con- 
sidering the close relationship in which Mary stands 
to God the Father, of Whom she is the first adoptive 
daughter and the highest in grace, and God the Holy 

(7) Cf . Merkelbach, op. cit., p. 385. 



HER QUEENSHIP IN GENERAL 



273 



Ghost through Whose operation the Word took 
flesh in her womb. 

It has been objected that the mother of a king, the 
queen-mother, is not by that simple fact queen in 
the strict sense of the term: she has nothing of 
royal power. Neither then has Mary. We have 
answered this objection already. There is no 
parity between the two cases. A queen-mother is 
simply the mother of a child who later became king. 
But Mary is the mother of Him Who from the in- 
stant of His conception is King of the universe by 
His hypostatic union and His fulness of grace. Be- 
sides Mary was associated closely with the victory 
by which He obtained universal kingship as a right 
of conquest, even though He possessed it already as 
Son of God. Mary is therefore associated with His 
Kingship in a true, even if in a subordinate manner. 

| 

Many consequences follow from this truth. As- 
universal King Jesus has power to establish and 
promulgate the New Law, to propose revealed doc- 
trine, to judge the living and the dead, to give souls 
sanctifying grace and all the virtues (8) Mary 
shares in this universal kingship especially 
by dispensing in an interior and hidden manner 
the graces which she merited in dependence 
on Jesus. She participates in it exteriorly also by 
the fact that she gave on earth the example of all 
the virtues, that she helped to enlighten the 
Apostles, and that she continues to enlighten us 
when, for example, she manifests herself exteriorly 

(8) Cf. Encye Quas primas (Denz. 2194) and la Ilae a lOfi 
the flctMS f^l e m T° re ^ ing of minds - hearts and wills by 

s 



274 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



in sanctuaries such as those of Lourdes, La Salette, 
and' Fatima. Theologians note that she does not 
seem to share in any special way in the royal judi- 
cial power of inflicting punishment for sin, for Tra- 
dition calls her not the Mother of justice but the 
Mother of mercy : a title which is hers in virtue of 
her mediation of all graces (9). Jesus seems to have 
kept to Himself the reign of justice (10) as is be- 
coming Him Who is the " judge of the living and 
the dead" (11). 

Mary has a radical right to universal queenship 
by the fact of her divine motherhood, but the divine 
plan was that she should merit it also by her union 
with her suffering Son, and that she should not 
exercise it fully before being crowned queen of all 
creation in heaven. Her royalty is spiritual and super- 
natural rather than temporal and natural, though it 
extends in a secondary way to temporal affairs 
considered in their relation to salvation and 
sanctification. 

We have seen how Mary exercises her queenship 
on earth. She exercises it in heaven also. The 
essential glory of the blessed depends on Jesus' 
merits and hers. She contributes to their accidental 
glory— as well as to that of the angels— by the light 
she communicates to them, and by the joy they have 
in her presence and in the realisation of what she 
does for souls. To both the angels and the saints 
she manifests Christ's plan for the extension of His 
Kingdom. 

Mary's queenship extends to purgatory, for she 
prompts the faithful on earth to pray for the souls 

SoWohn H% q 2T 3 : ..• the Father . . hath given all 



SPECIAL ASPECTS OF MARY'S QUEENSHIP 



275 



detained there and to have Masses offered for them. 
She herself offers their prayers to God, thereby in- 
creasing their value. She applies the fruits of the 
merits of Jesus and of herself to the Holy Souls in 
Jesus' name. 

Her queenship extends to the demons too who are 
obliged to recognise her power, for she can make 
their temptation cease, can save souls from their 
snares, and can repulse their attacks. " The demons 
suffer more " says St. Grignon de Montfort " from 
being conquered by the humility of Mary than by the 
Omnipotence of God." Her reign of mercy extends 
to hell itself, as we have seen, in the sense that the 
lost souls are punished less than they deserve (12), 
and that on certain days— including possibly the 
Assumption— their sufferings become less fearful. 

Thus Mary's queenship is truly universal. There 
is no region to which it does not extend in some way. 



Article II 

Special Aspects of Mary's Queenship 

Mary's universal queenship comes home to us in a 
more concrete form if we consider its different as- 
pects as presented in the Litany of Loreto: Queen of 
angels, of patriarchs, of prophets, of martyrs, of con- 
fessors, of virgins, of all the saints, of peace. 

(12) la ,0,21, a.4, ad 1: "In damnatione reproborum apparet 
misericordia non quidem totaliter relaxans sed aliqualiter 
allevians. dum (Deus) punit extra condignum." This interven- 
tion of Divine Mercy is not independent of the merits of Jesus 
and Mary. 



276 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



Queen of Angels 

Mary is Queen of the angels since her mission is 
higher than theirs. They are but servants, whereas 
she is the Mother of God. She is as much above 
them as the word mother " surpasses the word 
" servant." She alone with the Father can say to 
Jesus: " Thou art my Son, I have begotten thee." 

She is higher than the angels also by her fulness of 
grace and glory, which surpasses that of all the 
angels united. She is purer than they, for she has 
received purity for others as well as for herself. She 
was more perfect than they and more prompt in her 
obedience to God's commandments and in following 
His counsels. By her co-operation in the redemp- 
tion she merited de congruo for the angels them- 
selves the accidental graces by whfch they help us 
to save our souls and the joy which they experience 
in doing so. 

As Justin of Miechow well remarks (13), if the 
angels have served Our Lord how much more did not 
Mary serve Him, she who conceived and bore Him, 
who cared for Him, who carried Him into Egypt to 
escape Herod's anger? 

She surpasses the angels in this also, that they 
have each care of one soul or one community, but 
she is the guardian of all men and of each in par- 
ticular. She is, more than they, the messenger of 
God who brought us not a created word but the Un- 
created Word. 

Archangels are appointed to protect this or that 
city: Mary protects all cities and all churches- in 
them. Principalities are the custodians of provinces: 
Mary has the whole Church under her protection. 

(13) CMationes; circa invocationem : Regina angelorum. 



SPECIAL ASPECTS OF MARY'S QUEENSHIP 



277 



Powers repel demons: Mary has crushed the ser- 
pent's head; she is terrible to the demons by the 
depth of her humility and the ardour of her charity. 
Virtues perform miracles as God's instruments: but 
the greatest miracle was to conceive the Incarnate 
Word for our salvation. Dominations command the 
lower angels: Mary commands all the heavenly 
choirs. The Thrones are those angels in whom God 
dwells in a specially intimate way: Mary, who gave 
birth to Jesus, is the Seat of Wisdom, and the Blessed 
Trinity reside in her more familiarly than in the 
highest angel— that is to say, in a way proportionate 
to her consummated grace. 

She surpasses even the Cherubim and Seraphim. 
The Cherubim shine with the splendour of their 
knowledge: but Mary has penetrated deeper than 
they into the divine mysteries since she has the light 
of glory in a degree far above theirs. She has car- 
ried in her womb Him in Whom are hidden all the 
treasures of wisdom and knowledge. She lived with 
Him for thirty years on earth, and in heaven she is 
nearest of all to Him. 

The Seraphim burn with the flame of love: but 
more ardent still is the living flame of Mary's charity. 
She loves God more than all creatures together, for 
she loves Him not only as Creator and Father but as 
her Infant and her treasured Son. 

She is therefore the Queen of Angels. They serve 
her faithfully, surround her with veneration, marvel 
at her tender solicitude for each one of us and for 
glory of God and the salvation of souls are the ob- 
the whole Church. Her charity, her zeal for the 
jects of their intense admiration. 

Such is the substance of Justin of Miechow's 
treatise on Mary, Queen of Angels. 



278 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



Queen of Patriarchs 

The superiority of Mary to Adam in the state of 
innocence is clear from all that has been said thus, 
far. She was higher, in grace than he, and had as 
well the principal effects of original justice: subordi- 
nation of the sensibility to the higher faculties, and 
subordination of these latter to God. Mary's charity 
was greater from the first instant of her conception 
than that of Adam in the state of innocence, and she 
had in addition the special grace of freedom from all 
sin however slight, even though she was conceived in 
passible and mortal flesh. 

Her intimacy with God was much closer than that 
of Abel, Noah, Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, or Joseph. 
Abraham's most heroic act was that of preparing 
himself to immolate his son Isaac, the son of the 
promise. It was far more for Mary to offer Jesus 
Who was dearer to her than her own life: nor did 
an angel come to arrest Jesus' immolation as one did 
in the case of Isaac. 

Her title of Mother of God, her charity and the 
heroicity of all her virtues make Mary shine as a 
star without compare among the patriarchs. 

Queen of Prophets 

Prophecy in the strict sense of the term is the gift 
of knowing with certainty and predicting the future 
under divine inspiration. It was given to many in 
Old Testament times. In the New Testament St. 
John and St. Paul were both prophets and apostles. 
Sacred Scripture tells us of certain holy women also 
who received the gift of prophecy: Mary the sister 
of Moses, Deborah, Anne, mother of Samuel, Elisa- 
beth, mother of John the Baptist. 



SPECIAL ASPECTS OF MARY'S QUEEN SHIP 



279 



Mary is Queen of prophets. She foretold the 
future in the Magnificat when she sang : " Behold 
from henceforth all nations shall call me blessed." Of 
her the prophets spoke when they announced the 
mystery of the Incarnation. She bore in her womb 
Him of Whom the prophets spoke, and she heard 
from His own lips the mysteries of the kingdom of 
God. 

She had the gift of prophecy in the highest degree 
after Our Blessed Lord, and at the same time she had 
perfect understanding of the fulness of the revela- 
tion which He communicated to the world. 

Queen of Apostles 

In what sense is Mary Queen of the twelve 
apostles? 

Her dignity as Mother of God surpasses theirs. The 
apostolate is a form of ministry (14). But accord- 
ing to the phrase of St. Albert which we have quoted 
already, Mary is not simply God's minister since as 
Mother of the Saviour she is still more closely asso- 
ciated with Him. After the Ascension the Apostles 
had need of direction, of counsel, and no one was 
better equipped than Mary to give it to them. She 
consoled them in their grief at the departure of Our 
Lord when they felt lonely and helpless in face of the 
task of the evangelisation of the pagan world. Jesus 
had left them His mother to help them. She was 
for them, it has been said, a second paraclete, a 
visible paraclete, a mediatrix; she was their guiding 
star in the midst of the tempest of persecution that 
raged about them. She was truly a mother to them. 
None of them ever left her side without having been 

(14) " Let a man so account of us as the ministers of Christ " 
(I Cor. iv, I). 



280 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



enlightened and consoled, without having been 
strengthened. By her example in suffering calum- 
nies, by her experience of the things of God she sus- 
tained them in times of trial and perseution. 

There was no one who could talk as she did of the 
virginal conception of Christ, of His birth, His in- 
fancy, His hidden life, of what took place in His soul 
on the Cross. This is what prompted St. Ambrose 
to say: " It is not strange that St. John should have 
spoken better of the mystery of the Incarnation than 
the others did; he lived at the source of heavenly 
secrets " (15). He lived in Mary's company what he 
speaks of in the fourth gospel (16). 

Queen of Martyrs 

The title of Queen of Martyrs has been applied to 
Mary by SS. Ephrem, Jerome, Ildephonsus, Anselm 
and Bernard. The implied allusion is to her martyr- 
dom of heart of which Simeon spoke: " Thy own soul 
a sword shall pierce." 

Mary's grief was proportionate to her love for her 
Son. She suffered when He was called a seducer, a 
violator of the Law, one possessed by a devil; she 
suffered inexpressibly when Barabbas was preferred 
to Him, when He was nailed to the Cross, when He 
was tortured by the crown of thorns, when He was 
parched with thirst; she shared in all the anguish of 
His priestly and victim soul. She felt as it were all 
the blows Jesus received in His scourging- and cruci- 
fixion, for her love made her one with Him. As 
Bossuet exclaims: " One cross was enough to make 
martyrs of Him and her." They offered but one 

( 15) De Institutinne Virginis, c. ix. 

(16) These remarks are a summary of the corresponding 
section of Justin de Mlechow's work. 



SPECIAL ASPECTS OF MARY'S QUEENSHIP 



281 



sacrifice, and since, she, for her part, loved Jesus 
more than herself, she suffered more than if she her- 
self had been the victim. All this she endured so as 
to confess her faith in the mystery of the redemptive 
Incarnation, and in her the faith of the Church was 
strong at that moment, stronger and more ardent 
than in all the other martyrs. 

We should remember that Mary's sufferings had 
the same cause as her Son's — the accumulated sins 
of men and their ingratitude which made the suffer- 
ings to be partly of no avail. We must remember 
too that she suffered from the time of the concep- 
tion of the Saviour, still more after Simeon's 
prophecy, still more as she saw the opposition to 
Jesus mounting, and most of all at the foot of the 
Cross. But even then, even when her soul was inun- 
dated with grief, her zeal for the glory of God and 
for the salvation of souls caused hen a holy joy at 
the sight of her Son consummating His redemptive 
work by the most perfect of holocausts. 

Lastly, she has helped the martyrs in their tor- 
ments. She is Our Lady of a happy death because 
of her care for the dying who call on her. Much 
more does she help those who die to profess their 
faith in the Redeemer. 

Queen of Confessors 
Mary and Priests 

She is Queen of all who confess their faith in Jesus 
for she herself confessed the same faith more than 
any other creature. 

But we shall speak principally in this section of 
what she is to the priests of Our Blessed Lord. To 
represent Jesus truly, the priest who brings Him 
down on the altar and offers Him sacramentally in 



282 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

Holy Mass should unite himself more and more to 
His sentiments, to the oblation which is always liv- 
ing in the Heart of Jesus "always living to make 
intercession for us." In addition, he should, through 
the different sacraments, distribute the grace which 
is the fruit of the merits of Jesus and Mary. 

Because of the work to which they are called, Mary 
is specially zealous for the sanctification of priests. 
She sees that they share in the priesthood of her Son 
and she watches over their souls that the grace of 
their ordination may bear fruit in them, that they 
become living images of the Saviour. She protects 
them against the dangers which surround them and 
lifts them up if they happen to stumble. She loves 
them as sons of predilection, just as she loved St. 
John who was committed to her on Calvary. She 
attracts their heart to herself to raise it up and to 
lead them to greater intimacy with Jesus, so that one 
day they may be able to say in all truth : " I live, now 
not I, but Christ liveth in me." 

Mary helps priests in a special way at the altar so 
that they may become more fully conscious of their 
union with the Principal Offerer. She is spiritually 
present at that sacramental oblation which perpe- 
tuates the substance of the sacrifice of the Cross, 
and she distributes to the priest the actual graces he 
needs to minister with recollection and in a spirit of 
self-donation. In that way she helps the priest to 
share in Jesus' victimhood as well as in His priest- 
hood. AH this means to form priests to the image 
of the Heart of Jesus. 

With Jesus she arouses priestly vocations and cul- 
tivates them. She knows that where there are no 
priests there is no Baptism, no Confession, no Mass, 
no christian Marriage, no Extreme Unction, no 



SPECIAL ASPECTS OF MARY'S QUEENSHIP 



283 



christian life: without the priest the world returns 
to paganism. 

Our Lord Who has willed to have need of Mary in 
the work of salvation has willed also to have need of 
priests, and Mary forms them in holiness. We can 
see her action clearly in some of the saints who were 
priests — St. John the Evangelist, St. Bernard, St. 
Dominic, the Apostle of the Rosary, St. Bernardine of 
Siena, St. Grignon de Montfort, St. Alphonsus. 

Queen of Virgins 
Mary and Consecrated Souls 

Mary is Queen of Virgins since she had the virtue 
of virginity in the most eminent degree and pre- 
served it in the conception, birth, and after the 
birth of the Saviour. She teaches souls the value of 
virginity. It is a true virtue, a spiritual force, some- 
thing more than a mere good inclination of the sensi- 
bility. She teaches them that virginity consecrated 
to God is higher than simple chastity since it 
promises integrity of the body and purity of the 
heart for the whole of life — a consideration which led 
St. Thomas to say that virginity stands in much the 
same relation to chastity as munificence does to 
simple liberality, since it is a perfect gift of self, and 
sign of a perfect generosity. 

Mary safeguards virgins from danger, she supports 
them in their difficulties and leads them, if they are 
faithful, to great intimacy with her Son. 

What is her role in regard to consecrated souls? 
The Church calls such souls " Spouses of Christ." It 
follows that Our Lady is their perfect model. Pol- 
lowing her example they should live a life of prayer 
and of reparation in union with Our Blessed Lord. 
They should become also consolers of the afflicted, 



284 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

remembering that the consolation which they afford 
in a supernatural spirit to the suffering members of 
Christ is afforded to Himself and makes amends for 
the ingratitude, coldness, and even hatred of so 
many. Thus, these souls are called to reproduce the 
virtues of Mary and to continue in some measure her 
work for Our Blessed Lord and for souls. 

If consecrated souls but know and follow Mary's 
guidance they find through her a wonderful com- 
pensation for the privations their lives impose on 
them, and which, though all accepted in advance, are 
felt most keenly only as they come one by one, day 
after day. Through Mary they can aspire to a cer- 
tain spiritual motherhood, which is an image of her 
own, in regard to all— the poor, the afflicted, sinners 
—who are in need of spiritual care. Our Blessed 
Lord alluded to that spiritual motherhood when He 
said: " I was hungry, and you gave me to eat; I was 
thirsty, and you gave me to drink; I was a stranger, 
and you took me in: Naked, and you covered me: 
sick, and you visited me: I was in prison and you 
came to me " (Mt. xxv, 35-36). 

Spiritual motherhood in the life of contemplation 
and reparation may be practised also by the aposto- 
late of prayer and suffering which makes fruitful the 
exterior apostolate for the conversion of sinners and 
the extension of the reign of Christ. A hidden, in- 
terior apostolate can be one of great sufferings; but 
Our Lady will show how to bear them and she will 
afford some glimpse of their effects in souls. 

Another work of Mary's is to help christian 
mothers to bring up their children to a life 
of faith, confidence in God, and love. She helps 
them also to win back their erring children, as St. 
Monica did St. Augustine. 

Thus, we see the universality of Mary's Queenship. 



SPECIAL ASPECTS OF MARY'S QUEENSHIP 



285 



She is Queen of all the saints by virtue of her unique 
mission in God's providential plan, and her fulness 
of grace and glory. She is Queen of all the saints, 
the unknown as well as the known, the uncanonised 
as well as the canonised, the Queen of all those who 
strive after holiness on earth, whose trials and joys 
are so well known to her, and the crown of whose 
merits she foresees even now. 



CHAPTER VI 



True Devotion to Our Lady 



In this chapter we shall speak of: 1st— the cult of 
hyperdulia which is due to the Mother of God; 2nd — 
the usual forms of Marian devotion, especially the 
Rosary as a school of contemplation; 3rd — Conse- 
cration to Our Lady as explained by St. Grignon de 
Montfort; 4th— Intimate and mystical union with 
Mary. 



Article I 

The Cult of Hyperdulia and the Benefits 
It Confers (1) 

Cult in general means honour paid in a spirit of 
submission and dependence to a superior because of 
his excellence (2). Whether it be merely interior, or 
exterior as well, cult differs according to the position 
or excellence of the person to whom it is paid. Since 
the excellence of God is infinite, He being First 
Principle and Supreme Master of all things, the cult 
to which He has a right is supreme. It is known as 
latria and to pay it is an exercise of the virtue of 

(1) Merkelbach, Mariologia, pp. 392-413. E. Dublanchy, 
Diet. Thiol. Cath. art. Marie, col. 2439-2474. 

(2) Ha Ilae, q.81. a.l, ad 4 and a.4; q.92, a.2. Cult is some- 
thing more than honour: it is honour paid by an inferior to a 
sunerior. God honours the saints but He does not offer them 
cult. 



THE CULT OF HYPERDULIA 



287 



religion. This same cult is due to the Sacred 
Humanity of Our Blessed Lord considered as belong- 
ing to the uncreated Person of the Word, and in a 
relative manner it is due to crucifixes and to pictures 
and statues which represent Him. 

Created persons who have a certain excellence are 
entitled to the cult called dulia: a cult of respect. 
Thus, in the natural order respect is due to parents, 
kings, teachers; in the supernatural order it is due to 
the saints, the heroicity of whose virtues has been 
recognised. The latter cult paid to God's servants 
honours God Himself Who is revealed to the world 
in the saints and draws us by them to Himself (3). 

It is commonly taught in the Church that the 
Blessed Virgin is entitled to a cult of hyperdulia, or 
supreme dulia, because of her eminent dignity as 
Mother of God (4). 

Nature and Foundation of the Cult of Mary 

There have been two opposed false tendencies in 
regard to the cult of Mary. According to the testi- 
mony of St. Epiphanius (Haer., 78-79) the Collyridians 
wished to pay her divine cult and to offer sacrifice to 
her. This error might be termed Mariolatry. It was 

(3) Ila Ilae, q.103, a.4. 

(4) According to J. B. de Rossi, Roma sotteranea Christiana, 
Rome, 1911, t. Ill, pp. 65 sqq, and 252, and Marucchi, Elements 
d archeologie chretienne, 2nd edit.. 1911, p. 211 sqq. the first 
representations of the Blessed Virgin holding the child Jesus 
in her arms which are found in the Roman catacombs date 
back to the 2nd, 3rd, and 4th centuries. The institution of 
special feasts in Mary's honour appears to be traceable to the 
4th century, from which time St. Epiphanius (Haer., 79) speaks 
of her cult while condemning the error of the Collyridians 
who transformed it into adoration. St. Gregory of Nazianzen 
mentions her cult also (Orat. XXIV. xi) as well as St. Ambrose 
(De instit. virginis. XXX, 83). There ar e II prayers to her 
attributed to St. Ephrem (d.378) in Assemani's edition of his 
works. The cult of Mary became general in both East and 
West in subsequent times. 



288 MARY S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



of brief duration. Opposed to it is the Protestant 
contention that the cult offered to Mary by Catholics 
is a form of superstition. 

To answer this charge, we must insist that the cult 
of latria or adoration can be and is offered to God 
alone. If we adore the Sacred Humanity, it is because 
of Its personal union with the Word; if we offer rela- 
tive cult of adoration to the crucifix, it is because it 
represents Our Saviour (5), for it is quite clear that 
the crucifix and other representations of Our Saviour 
have no other excellence than that of representing 
Him. Were relative adoration to be offered to Our 
Lady because of her connection with the Word made 
flesh, it might easily be mistaken for adoration 
offered to her because of her own intrinsic excellence, 
and would therefore be an occasion of grave error 
and of idolatry, as St. Thomas remarks (6). 

The cult due to Our Lady is therefore one of dulia. 
This statement is of faith, because of the teaching 
of the universal magisterium of the Church; hence 
the condemnation of the opposed propositions of 
Molinos (7). 

It is common and certain doctrine that Mary is 
entitled to a special kind of dulia known as hyper- 
dulia, which is due to her considered as Mother of 
God. This doctrine is traditional. It is found quite 
explicitly in the works of St. Modestus in the 7th 
century, of St. John Damascene in the 8th, and later 
in the works of St. Thomas (8), St. Bonaventure (9), 

(5) Ilia, q.25, a.3 and a.5. 

(6) 7b. a.3, ad 3. 

(7) Denz. 1255 sqq., 1316. 

(8) Ha Ilae, q.103, a.4. ad 2; Ilia, q.25, a.5. 

(9) In /// Sent., d.9, a.l, q.3. 



THE CULT OF HYPERDULIA 



289 



Scotus (10), Suarez (11) and almost all catholic 
theologians (12). 

The cult of hyperdulia is due to Mary formally be- 
cause she is Mother of God since the dignity of her 
divine motherhood belongs by its term to the 
hypostatic order and is therefore very much higher 
than that which follows upon her degree of grace and 
glory. If Mary had received only the fulness of grace 
and glory without having been made the Mother of 
God, if, in other words she were higher than the 
other saints only through her degree of consummated 
glory, a special cult of hyperdulia would not be due 
to her (13). 

It is the more common and more probable opinion 
that hyperdulia differs from dulia not in degree only 
but in kind, just as the divine maternity belongs by 
its term to the hypostatic order, which is specifically 
distinct from that of grace and glory (14). 

The cult of hyperdulia is offered to Mary since she 
is Mother of God, Mother of the Saviour. But we 
should remember that for the same reason she is 
Mother of men, universal Mediatrix and Co- 
Redemptrix. 

What are the Fruits of this CuW? 

By rendering Mary the cult of hyperdulia we move 
her to look down on us with still greater love, and 
for our part are drawn to imitate her virtues. The 

(10) In /// Sent., *.9. q. un 

(11) In Illam, disp. XXII, sect. II. n.4. 

?*\& ct - ™ol. Cath., art. Marie, cols. 2449-2453. 
nt iZl ^ n - hls patter Vasquez differs from the great majority 
of theologians by holding that the cult of hyperdulia is due to 
Mary principally because of her eminent holiness. This view 
hL i S iL^t Con , S - e ?. uen ^ of ^ holdIn g that sanctifying grace 

/i£ 6 J£? [t 7 h i gher than that of the divine maternity. 
405 opinion of Fr. Merkelbach, op. cit, pp. 402. 



I 



290 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



cult of hyperdulia leads effectively to salvation, for 
Mary can obtain the grace of final perseverance for 
all those who pray faithfully to her for it. For this 
reason true devotion to Our Lady is commonly looked 
on as one of the signs of predestination: though it 
does not give absolute and infallible certainty of sal- 
vation — a possibility ruled out by the authority of 
the Council of Trent (Denz. 805) — it gives rise to a 
firm hope. This firm hope rests on Mary's great 
power of intercession and her special love for those 
who invoke her (15). In this sense St. Alphonsus 
asserts (The Glories of Mary, Part I, ch. viii) that it is 
morally impossible that they should be lost who have 
the desire to amend their lives and who honour the 
Mother of God faithfully and commit themselves to 
her protection. Those who have no serious desire to 
amend their lives cannot, of course, look on the fact 
that they keep up a certain appearance of devotion 
to Our Lady as a probable sign of predestination. But 
a sinner who tries to give up sin and turns to Mary 
for assistance will find that she will not fail him. This 
is the opinion of St. Alphonsus (lb., ch. I, 4) and of 
most modern theologians (16). 

The cult offered to Mary in the Church confirms in 
a general way the foundations of our faith since it 
derives from the Redemptive Incarnation. Thereby 
it destroys heresies : " Cunctas haereses interemisti 
in universo mundo." The same cult leads to holiness 
by suggesting the imitation of Mary's virtues, and it 
glorifies the Son by honouring the Mother. 

Objections 

The objection raised by some Protestants, that cult 
offered to Mary is derogatory to the divine cult, can 

(15) Diet, thiol, cath.. art. Marie, col. 2458. 

(16) Cf. Terrien, op. cit, t.IV, pp. 291 sqq. 



THE CULT OF HYPERDULIA 



291 



be answered without much difficulty. The Catholic 
Church teaches that the cult of latria or adoration 
is offered to God alone and that the cult of Mary, far 
from taking from the cult of the Godhead, promotes 
it by recognising God as the Author of all the gifts 
with which Mary is endowed. The honour paid to 
the Mother redounds to the glory of the Son, and 
Mary the Mediatrix of all graces helps us to know 
better God, the Author of all graces. Experience has 
shown that faith in the divinity of Christ has best 
been preserved in those countries which are marked 
by devotion to Mary. All the saints were devout to 
both Jesus and Mary. 

Since the cult of Mary is more sense-perceptible, 
there are some who perform its acts with more in- 
tensity than those pertaining to the cult of the God- 
head. But even for such persons the cult of the 
Godhead is higher in kind, for they love God above 
all things with a love of preference (amour d'estime), 
and this love in its turn becomes more intense accor- 
ding as they advance in holiness and live a life more 
detached from the senses. 

Confidence in Mary increases our confidence in 
God. The confidence that pilgrims had in the Cure 
of Ars, for example, increased their confidence that 
God would help them through his instrumentality. 

It would be a real lack of humility, as St. Grignon 
de Montfort says, to pass over the mediators whom 
God has given us because of our weakness. Far from 
lessening our intimacy with God, they prepare us for 
its increase. Just as Jesus does nothing in souls ex- 
cept in order to lead them to His Father, so also Mary 
works on minds and hearts solely in order to lead 
them nearer to her Son. God has willed to make 
continual use of Mary for the sanctification of souls. 



292 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



Article II 



The Rosary: A School of Contemplation 



From among the many customary devotions to Our 
Lady, such as the Angelus, the Office of the Blessed 
Virgin, the Rosary, we shall speak especially of the 
last in so far as it prepares us for and leads us up to 
contemplation of the great mysteries of salvation. 
After Holy Mass it is one of the most beautiful and 
efficacious forms of prayer, on condition of under- 
standing it and living it. 

It sometimes happens that its recitation — reduced 
to that of five mysteries — becomes a matter of 
routine. The mind, not being really gripped by the 
things of God, finds itself a prey to distractions. 
Sometimes the prayer is said hurriedly and soul- 
lessly. Sometimes it is said for the purpose of 
obtaining temporal favours, desired out of all relation 
to spiritual gain. When a person says the Rosary in 
such a way, he may well ask himself in what way his 
prayer is like that of which Pope Leo XIII spoke in his 
encyclicals on the Rosary, and about which Pius XI 
wrote one of his last apostolic letters. 

It is true that to pray well it is sufficient to think 
in a general way of God and of the graces for which 
one asks. But to make the most out of our five 
mysteries, we should remember that they constitute 
but a third of the whole Rosary, and that they should 
be accompanied by meditation — which can be very 
simple — on the Joyful, Sorrowful and Glorious 
Mysteries, which recall the whole life of Jesus and 
Mary and their glory in heaven. 



THE ROSARY: A SCHOOL OF CONTEMPLATION 



293 



The Three Great Mysteries of Salvation 

The fifteen mysteries of the Rosary thus divided 
into three groups are but different aspects of the three 
great mysteries of our salvation : the Incarnation, the 
Redemption, Eternal Life. 

The mystery of the Incarnation is recalled by the 
joys of the Annunciation, the Visitation, the Birth of 
the Saviour, His Presentation in the Temple and His 
finding among the doctors. The mystery of the 
Redemption is recalled by the different stages of the 
Passion : the Agony in the garden, the Scourging, the 
Crowning with thorns, the Carrying of the Cross, the 
Crucifixion. The mystery of eternal life is recalled 
by the Resurrection, the Ascension, Pentecost, the 
Assumption of Our Lady and her crowning as Queen 
of heaven. 

Thus, the Rosary is a Credo: not an abstract one, 
but one concretised in the life of Jesus Who came 
down to us from the Father and Who ascended to 
bring us back with Himself to the Father. It is the 
whole of christian dogma in all its splendour and 
elevation, brought to us that we may fill our minds 
with it, that we may relish it and nourish our souls 
with it. 

This makes the Rosary a true school of contempla- 
tion. It raises us gradually above vocal prayer and 
even above reasoned out or discursive meditation. 
Early theologians have compared the movement of 
the soul in contemplation to the spiral in which cer- 
tain birds — the swallow, for example — move when 
they wish to attain to a great height (17). The joyful 
mysteries lead to the Passion, and the Passion to the 

(17) Cf. Ila Ilae, q.180, a.6. The spiral movement lifts itself 
up to God progressively by the consideration of the different 
mysteries of salvation, all of which lead to Him. 



294 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



door of heaven. The Rosary well understood is, 
therefore, a very elevated form of prayer which 
makes the whole of dogma accessible to all. 

© 

The Rosary is also a very practical form of prayer 
for it recalls all christian morality and spirituality by 
presenting them from the sublime point of view of 
their realisation in Jesus and Mary. The mysteries 
of the Rosary should be reproduced in our lives. Each 
of them is a lesson in some virtue — particularly in the 
virtues of humility, trust, patience and charity. 

There are three stages in our progress towards God. 
The first is to have knowledge of the final end, 
whence comes the desire of salvation and the joy to 
which that desire gives rise. This stage is symbolised 
in the joyful mysteries which contain the good news 
of the Incarnation of the Son of God Who opens to 
us the way of salvation. The next stage is to adopt 
the means — often painful to nature — to be delivered 
from sin and to merit heaven. This is the stage of 
the sorrowful mysteries. The final stage is that of 
rest in the possession of eternal life. It is the stage 
of heaven, of which the glorious mysteries allow us 
some anticipated glimpse. 

The Rosary is therefore most practical. It takes 
us from the midst of our too human interests and 
joys and makes us think of those which centre on the 
coming of the Saviour. It takes us from our meaning- 
less fears, from the sufferings we bear so badly, and 
reminds us of how much Jesus has suffered for love 
of us and teaches us to follow Him by bearing the 
cross which divine providence has sent us to purify 
us. It takes us finally from our earthly hopes and 
ambitions and makes us think of the true object of 



THE ROSARY: A SCHOOL OF CONTEMPLATION 



295 



christian hope— eternal life and the graces necessary 
to arrive there. 

The Rosary is more than a prayer of petition. It is 
a prayer of adoration inspired by the thought of the 
Incarnate God, a prayer of reparation in memory of 
the Passion of Our Saviour, a prayer of thanksgiving 
that the glorious mysteries continue to reproduce 
themselves in the uninterrupted entry of the elect 
into glory. 

The Rosary and Contemplative Prayer 

A more simple and still more elevated way of re- 
citing the Rosary is, while saying it, to keep the eyes 
of faith fixed on the living Jesus Who is always mak- 
ing intercession for us and Who is acting upon us in 
accordance with the mysteries of His childhood, or 
His Passion, or His glory. He comes to us to make us 
like Himself. Let us fix our gaze on Jesus Who is 
looking at us. His look is more than kind and under- 
standing : it is the look of God, a look which purifies, 
which sanctifies, which gives peace. It is the look of 
our Judge and still more the look of our Saviour, our 
Friend, the Spouse of our souls. A Rosary said in this 
way, in solitude and silence, is a most fruitful inter- 
course with Jesus. It is a conversation with Mary too 
which leads to intimacy with her Son. 

We sometimes read in the lives of the saints that 
Our Blessed Lord reproduced in them first His 
childhood, then His hidden life, then His apostolic 
life, and finally His Passion, before allowing them to 
share in His glory. He comes to us in a similar way 
in the Rosary and, well said, it is a prayer which 
gradually takes the form of an intimate conversation 
with Jesus and Mary. It is easy to see how saintly 
souls have found in it a school of contemplation. 



296 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

It has sometimes been objected that one cannot re- 
flect on the words and the mysteries at the same time. 
An answer that is often given is that it is not neces- 
sary to reflect on the words if one is meditating on or 
looking spiritually at one of the mysteries. The words 
are a kind of melody which soothes the ear and 
isolates us from the noise of the world around us, the 
Angers being occupied meanwhile in allowing one 
bead after another to slip through. Thus, the 
imagination is kept tranquil and the mind and the 
will are set free to be united to God. 

It has also been objected that the monotony of the 
many repetitions in the Rosary leads necessarily to 
routine. This objection is valid only if the Rosary is 
said badly. If well said, it familiarises us with the 
different mysteries of salvation and recalls what these 
mysteries should produce in our joys, our sorrows, 
and our hopes. Any prayer can become a matter of 
routine — even the Ordinary of the Mass. The reason 
is not that the prayers are imperfect, but that we do 
not say them as we should— with faith, confidence 
and love. 

@ 

The Spirit of the Rosary as St. Dominic Conceived It 

To understand the Rosary better it is well to recall 
how St. Dominic conceived it under the inspiration 
of Our Lady at a time when southern France was 
ravaged by the Albigensian heresy — a heresy which 
denied the infinite goodness and omnipotence of God 
by admitting a principle of evil which was often vic- 
torious. Not only did Albigensianism attack christian 
morality, but it was opposed to dogma as well — to the 
great mysteries of creation, the redemptive incarna- 



CONSECRATION TO MARY 



297 



tion, the descent of the Holy Ghost, the eternal life 
to which we are called. 

It was at that moment that Our Blessed Lady made 
known to St. Dominic a kind of preaching till then 
unknown, which she said would be one of the most 
powerful weapons against future errors and in future 
difficulties. Under her inspiration, St. Dominic went 
into the villages of the heretics, gathered the people, 
and preached to them the mysteries of salvation — 
the Incarnation, the Redemption, Eternal Life. As 
Mary had taught him to do, he distinguished the 
different kinds of mysteries, and after each short 
instruction he had ten Hail Marys recited — somewhat 
as might happen even to-day at a Holy Hour. And 
what the word of the preacher was unable to do, the 
sweet prayer of the Hail Mary did for hearts. As 
Mary had promised, it proved to be a most fruitful 
form of preaching (18). 

If we live by the prayer of which St. Dominic's 
preaching is the example our joys, our sorrows, and 
our hopes will be purified, elevated and spiritualised. 
We shall see that Jesus, Our Saviour and Our Model, 
wishes to make us like Himself, first communicating 
to us something of His infant and hidden life, then 
something of His sorrows, and finally making us 
partakers of His glorious life for all eternity. 

Article III 

Consecration to Mary 

In his Treatise of True Devotion to the Blessed 
Virgin, St. Grignon de Montfort has distinguished a 

(18) The first fruit of the Rosary was the victory of Simon 
of Montfcrt over the Albigensians. obtained while St. Dominic 
implored Mary's help in prayer. 



298 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



number of different degrees of true devotion to the 
Mother of God. He speaks only briefly of the forms 
of false devotion — that which is altogether exterior, 
or presumptuous, or inconstant, or hypocritical, or 
self-interested — since his main concern is true 
devotion. 

Like the other christian virtues, true devotion 
grows in us with charity, advancing from the stage 
of the beginner to that of the more proficient, and 
continuing up to the stage of the perfect. The first 
. degree or stage is to pray devoutly to Mary from time 
to time, for example, by saying the Angelas when the 
bell rings. The second degree is one of more 
perfect sentiments of veneration, confidence and 
love; it may manifest itself by the daily recitation of 
the Rosary— five decades or all fifteen. In the third 
degree, the soul gives itself fully to Our Lady by an 
act of consecration so as to belong altogether to Jesus 
through her (19). 

What does this Consecration mean"? 

This act of consecration consists in promising Mary 
to have constant filial recourse to her and to live in 
habitual dependence on her, so as to attain to more 
intimate union with Our Blessed Lord and through 
Him with the Blessed Trinity present in our souls. 
The reason for making it lies, St. Grignon de Mont- 
fort says, in the fact that God has willed to make use 
of Mary for the sanctification of souls, having already 
made use of her to bring about the Incarnation 
(Treatise of True Devotion, ch. I, a.l, no. 44). 

(19) That is why St. Grignon de Montfort speaks in his 
formula of " Consecration of oneself to Jesus by the hands of 
Mary.'" In the course of his treatise he usually says more 
briefly, " Consecration to Mary," meaning thereby consecra- 
tion to Jesus through her. 



CONSECRATION TO MARY 



The saint continues : " I do not think that anyone 
can attain to great union with Our Blessed Lord or 
perfect fidelity to the Holy Ghost without being 
closely united to Our Lady and depending very much 
on her help . . . She was full of grace when she was 
saluted by the Archangel Gabriel, she was super- 
abundantly filled with grace by the Holy Ghost when 
He overshadowed her, she so advanced in grace from 
day to day and from moment to moment as to arrive 
at an inconceivable summit of grace; on which 
account the Most High has made her His unique 
treasurer and the unique dispenser of His graces, so 
that she may ennoble, enrich and elevate whom she 
wills, and make whom she wills enter the narrow gate 
of heaven . . . Jesus is everywhere and always the Son 
and the fruit of Mary; Mary is everywhere the true 
tree which bears the fruit of life and the true mother 
who produces it." 

In the same chapter, a little earlier, we read: " We 
may apply to Mary with even more truth than St. 
Paul applies them to himself the words : ' My little 
children, of whom I am in labour again, until Christ 
be formed in you. I am in labour daily with God's 
children till Jesus be formed in them in the fulness 
of His age.' St. Augustine says that the predestined 
are in this world hidden in the womb of Mary in order 
to become conformed to the image of the Son of God; 
and there she guards, nourishes, and supports them 
and brings them forth to glory after death, which is 
the true day of their birth— the term by which the 
Church always speaks of the death of the just. O 
mystery of grace unknown to the reprobate and little 
understood by the predestined!" Mary is truly the 
mother of the just, conceiving them spiritually and 
bringing them forth after death by their entry into 
glory, which is their definitive spiritual birth. It is 



300 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



clear then that it would be a falling short in humility 
to neglect to have frequent recourse to the Universal 
Mediatrix whom Divine Providence has given us as 
our true spiritual mother to form Christ in us. It is 
clear also that theology cannot but recognise that it 
is lawful and more than lawful to consecrate oneself 
to Mary, Mother and Queen of all men (20). 

Consecration to Our Lady is a practical form of 
recognition of her universal mediation and a 
guarantee of her special protection. It helps us to 
have continual childlike recourse to her and to con- 
template and imitate her virtues and her perfect 
union with Christ. In the practice of this complete 
dependence on Mary, there may be included — and St. 
Grignon de Montfort invites us to it— the resignation 
into Mary's hands of everything in our good works 
that is communicable to other souls, so that she may 
make use of it in accordance with the will of her 
Divine Son and for His glory. " I choose thee this day, 
O Mary, in the presence of the whole court of heaven, 
as my Mother and Queen. I give and consecrate to 
you as your slave my body and my soul, my interior 
and exterior possessions, and even the value of my 
past, present and future good actions, allowing you 
the full right to dispose of me and of all that belongs 
to me, without any exception whatever, according to 
your good pleasure, for the greater glory of God, in 
time and in eternity." This offering is really the 
practice of the so-called heroic act, there being ques- 



(20) Cf. Diet, de Thiol. Cath., art. Marie, cols. 2470 sqq. Pius 
X has made his own the teaching of St. Grignon de Montfort, 
and sometimes of his very expressions, in the Encyclical Ad 
diem ilium on Mary, universal Mediatrix 



CONSECRATION TO MARY 



301 



tion here not of a vow but of a promise made to the 
Blessed Virgin (21). 

We are recommended to offer our exterior posses- 
sions to Mary, that she may preserve us from 
inordinate attachment to the things of this world 
and inspire us to make better use of them. It is good 
also to consecrate to her our bodies and our senses 
that she may keep them pure. 

The act of consecration gives over to Mary also our 
soul and its faculties, our spiritual possessions, virtues 
and merits, all our good works past, present and 
future. It is necessary, however, to explain how this 
can be done. Theology gives us the answer by 
distinguishing what is communicable to others in our 
good works from what is incommunicable. 

What in our good works is communicable to others? 

To begin at the other end of the problem, our merits 
de condigno which constitute a right in justice to 
an increase of grace and to eternal glory are incom- 
municable. Our merits de condigno differ in that 
from those of Our Blessed Lord. He was Head of the 
human race and could in justice communicate His 
merits to us. If, therefore, we offer our merits de 
condigno to Mary, it is not in order that she may give 
them to others but that she may keep them for us, 
that she may help us to make them bear fruit, and, if 
we have the misfortune to lose them by mortal sin, 
that she may obtain for us the grace of really fervent 
contrition. 

There is, however, something in our good works 
which we can communicate to others whether on 

(21) Even religious who .have taken solemn vows of poverty, 
chastity and obedience can make this offering which will 
introduce them further into the mystery of the Communion 
of saints. 



302 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



earth or in purgatory (22). There is in the first place 
the merit de congruo proprie, founded on the rights 
of friendship with God by grace. God gives grace to 
some because of the good intentions and good works 
of others who are His friends. There are, in the 
second place, our prayers; we can and should pray 
for our neighbour, for his conversion and his spiritual 
progress; we should pray also for the dying, for the 
souls in purgatory. There are finally our acts of 
satisfaction. We can make satisfaction de congruo 
for others, for example, by accepting our daily crosses 
to help to expiate for their sins. We may even, if God 
moves us to do so by His grace, accept the penalty due 
to their sins as Mary did at the foot of the Cross, and 
thereby draw down the divine mercy on them (23). 
This the saints did frequently. An example is found 
in the life of St. Catherine of Siena. To a young 
Sienese whose heart was full of hate of his political 
enemies she said: "Peter, I take on myself all your 
sins, I shall do penance in your place : but do me one 
favour; confess your sins." " I have been frequently 
to Confession," answered Peter. " That is not true, ' 
replied the saint. " It is seven years since you were 
at Confession," and she proceeded to enumerate all 
the sins of his life. Confounded, he repented and 
pardoned his enemies. Even without having all St. 
Catherine's generosity, we can accept our daily 
crosses to help other souls to pay the debt they owe 
to the divine justice. 

We can also gain indulgences for the souls in pur- 
gatory, opening to them the treasury of the merits 
and satisfactions of Christ and the saints and 
hastening the day of their liberation. 

(22) Cf. Treatise of True Devotion, ch.iv, a.l. 

(23) Cf. Ilia, q.14, a.l; q.48, a.2; Suppl.. q.13, a.2: " Unus pro 
alio satisfacere potest, in quantum duo homines sunt unum in 
caritate." 



CONSECRATION TO MARY 303 



There are, therefore, three things which we can 
share with others : our merits de congruo, our prayers, 
our satisfaction. And if we put these in Mary's hands 
for others, we ought not to be surprised if she sends 
us crosses — proportionate, of course, to our strength 
— to make us really work for the salvation of souls. 

Who are those who may be advised to make this 
act of consecration? It certainly should not be re- 
commended to people who would make it for merely 
sentimental reasons or through spiritual pride, and 
would not understand its true meaning. But those 
who are truly spiritual may be recommended to make 
it for a few days at first and then for some longer 
time; when finally they are prepared they may make 
it for their whole lives. 

Someone may say that to give everything to Our 
Lady is to strip oneself, to leave one's own debts un- 
paid, and so to add to one's term in Purgatory. This 
is in fact the difficulty the devil suggested to St. Brigid 
of Sweden when she thought of making the act of 
donation to Mary. Our Blessed Lord explained, how- 
ever, to the saint that the objection sprang from 
self-love and made no allowance for Mary's goodness. 
Mary will not be outdone in generosity: her help to 
us will far exceed what we give her. The very act of 
love which prompts our donation will itself obtain 
remission of part of our Purgatory. 

Others wonder if making the act of donation to 
Mary leaves them free to pray for relatives and 
friends afterwards. They forget that Mary knows 
the obligations of charity better than we do: she 
would be the first to remind us of them. There may 
even be some among our relatives and friends on 
earth and in purgatory who have urgent need of 
prayers and satisfactions, without our knowing who 
they are. Mary, however, knows who they are, and 



304 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

she can help them out of our good works if we have 
put them at her disposal. 

Thus understood, consecration and donation make 
us enter more fully, under Mary's guidance, into the 
mystery of the Communion of Saints. It is a perfect 
renewal of the baptismal promises (24). 

Fruits of this Consecration 

" This devotion," St. Grignon de Montfort tells us 
(25), " gives us up altogether to the service of God, 
and makes us imitate the example of Our Blessed 
Lord, Who willed to be ' subject ' in regard to His 
Blessed Mother (Luke ii, 51). It obtains for us the 
special protection of Mary, who purifies our good 
works and adorns them when she offers them to her 
Divine Son. It leads us to union with Our Blessed 
Lord; it is an easy, short, perfect and safe way. It 
confers great interior freedom, procures great bene- 
fits for our neighbour, and is an excellent means of 
assuring our perseverance." The saint develops each 
of these points in a most practical way. 

He speaks of the easiness of the way in ch. 5, a.5 : 
" It is an easy way, one followed and prepared for us 
by Our Blessed Lord in His own coming, one where 
there are no obstacles in reaching Him. It is true 
that one can arrive at union with God by following 
other roads ; but there will be many more crosses and 
trials, and many more difficulties which it will not be 
easy to surmount— there will be combats and 
strange agonies, steep mountains, sharp thorns, 
fearful deserts. But the way of Mary is sweeter and 
more peaceful. 

"Even along the way of Mary there are stern battles 

(24) Cf. Treatise of True Devotion, ch. iv, a.2. 

(25) 7b., ch.v. 



CONSECRATION TO MARY 



305 



and great difficulties; but our good Mother makes 
herself so near and present to her faithful servants 
to enlighten them in their doubts, to strengthen them 
in their fears, and to sustain them in their battles, 
that in truth the Virgin's way to Jesus is a way of 
roses and honey compared with all others." The 
saint adds that the truth of this can be seen from the 
lives of the saints who have followed this way most 
particularly: St. Ephrem, St. John Damascene, St. 
Bernard, St. Bonaventure, St. Bernardine of Siena, St. 
Francis de Sales. 

A little further on in the same chapter, the saint 
states that Mary's servants " receive from her 
heaven's greatest graces and favours which are 
crosses; but it is the servants of Mary who bear the 
crosses with most ease, merit and glory; and what 
would hold back another makes them advance," for 
they are more aided by the Mother of God, who 
obtains for them the unction of love in their trials. 
It is wonderful how Mary makes the cross at the same 
time easier to bear and more meritorious: easier to 
bear because she helps us, and more meritorious be- 
cause she obtains for us greater charity, which is the 
principle of greater merit. 

" It is a short way . . . one advances more in a little 
while of submission to and dependence on Mary than 
in many years of self-will and self-reliance . . . We 
can advance with giant strides along the path by 
which Jesus came to us ... In a few years we shall 
arrive at the fulness of the perfect age " (26). 

" It is a perfect way, chosen by God Himself . ; . 

(26) St. Francis of Asslsi learned one day in a vision that his 
sons were endeavouring vainly to reach Our Blessed Lord by 
a steep ladder which led directly to Him. St. Francis was 
shown instead a ladder much less steep, at the top of which, 
was Mary, and he heard the words: "Tell your sons to make 
use of the ladder of my Mother." 

u 



306 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

The Most High descended to us by way of the humble 
Mary without losing anything of His divinity; it is by 
Mary that little ones can rise perfectly and divinely 
to the Most High without fear." 

It is finally a safe way, for the Blessed Virgin pre- 
serves us from the illusions of the devil and our 
imagination. She preserves us from sentiment as 
well, calming and ruling our sensibility, giving it a 
pure and holy object, and subordinating it to the rule 
of the will vivified by charity. 

In consecration to Mary, we find great interior 
liberty : this is the reward of putting ourselves in such 
complete dependence on Mary. Scruples are banished; 
the heart dilates with confidence and love. The saint 
confirms this point by referring to what he read in 
the life of the Dominican, Mother Agnes de Langeac 
" who, suffering great anguish of soul heard a voice 
which said to her that if she wished to be delivered 
and to be protected from her enemies, she should 
make herself at once the slave of Jesus and His Holy 
Mother . . . When she had done so all her anguish and 
scruples ceased, and she found herself in a state of 
great peace, as a result of which she determined to 
teach the devotion to others . . . among whom was M. 
Olier, the founder of the seminary of Saint-Sulpice, 
and many other priests of the same seminary." It 
was in the same seminary that St. Grignon de Mont- 
fort received his priestly formation. 

" Finally, this devotion is one which procures the 
good of our neighbour and it is for those who live by 
it an admirable means of persevering in grace . . . for 
by it one gives to Mary, who is faithful, all that one 
has ... It is on her fidelity that reliance is placed . . 
that she may preserve and increase our merits in 
spite of all that could make us lose them ... Do not 
commit the gold of your charity, the silver of your 



CONSECRATION TO MARY 



307 



purity, the waters of heavenly graces, or the wine of 
your merits and virtues ... to broken vessels such as 
you yourselves are; else you will be despoiled by 
robbers, that is by the demons, who watch day and 
night for a favourable opportunity . . . Put all your 
treasures, all your graces and virtues, in the womb 
and in the heart of Mary: she is a spiritual vessel, a 
vessel of honour, a singular vessel of devotion. 

" Souls who are not born of blood nor of the will of 
the flesh nor of the will of man, but of God and of 
Mary, understand and relish what I say; and it is for 
them that I write ... If a soul gives itself to Mary 
without reserve, she gives herself to it without re- 
serve " and helps it to find the road which leads to 
the eternal goal. 

Such are the fruits of this consecration : Mary loves 
those who commit themselves to her fully; she 
guides, directs, defends, protects, supports and inter- 
cedes for them. It is good to offer ourselves to her so 
that she may offer us to her Son according to the 
fulness of her prudence and her zeal. 

There are also fruits of a higher order which this 
devotion produces, fruits which are strictly mystical, 
as we shall explain in the next section (27). 



(27) According to St. Grignon de Montfort (ch.I, a 2 no 3) 

f,T«!i 0 ? *<? r B i e ^ ed Lady wIn be more specially necessary 
in the last ages of the world, when Satan will make an effort 
?. U , C A. as to deceive (if possible) even the elect " (Mt. xxlv, 24). 
.f th. B P If e ^ ne f , he s ays. "enter with the grace and light 
rtfu rttJ?£« y « £° St m t0 the n int , erior an d P er fect practice of 
this devotion, they will see clearly as far as faith permits this 
beautiful star of the sea, and they will arrive safely in har- 
bour in spite of pirates and tempests. They will learn the 
greatness of their Queen, and they will consecrate themselves 
entirely to her service, as her subjects and slaves of love " to 
combat what St. Paul calls the slavery of sin (cf. Rom. vi 20) 
They will have experience of her motherly tenderness, ' and 
they will love her as her well-beloved children 

The expression "holy slavery" used by the saint has been 
sometimes criticised. This is to forget that it is a slavery of 
love which accentuates rather than diminishes the filial 



308 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



Article IV 

Mystical Union with Mary 

A soul faithful to the devotion of which we have 
been speaking performs all its actions through Mary, 
in Mary and for Mary, and attains thereby to great 
intimacy with Our Lord (28). To consider only humi- 
lity, the theological virtues, and the gifts of the Holy 
Ghost, the following are the more precious fruits of 
consecration to Mary when it is lived fully: a gradu- 
ally increasing participation in Mary's humility and 
faith, great confidence in God through her, the grace 
of pure love, and the transformation of the soul to 
the image of Jesus (29). 

Participation in Mary's Humility and Faith 

By the light of the Holy Ghost the soul consecrated 
to Mary will come to learn of all the evil that is in 
itself; it will see by experience that it is naturally 
incapable of every salutary and supernatural good 
and that through self-love it opposes many obstacles 
to the work of grace within it. Thus, it will attain 
to that contempt of self of which St. Augustine speaks 
in the City of God (Bk. XIV, ch. 28) : " Two loves have 
built two cities. The love of self even to the degree 

character of our love of Mary. Besides as Mg£ Garnier. 
Bishop of Lucon, remarked in a pastoral letter of March 11th, 
1922 if there are in the world slaves of human respect of 
ambition, of money, and of shameful passions there are also 
thank God, slaves of conscience and of duty The holy slavery 
belongs to this group. The expression " holy slavery is a 
striking metaphor, opposed to the slavery of sin. 

(28) Treatise of True Devotion, ch.viii, a.2. 

(29) lb., ch.vii. 



MYSTICAL UNION WITH MARY 



309 



of despising God has built the city of Babylon, and 
the love of God even to the degree of despising self 
has built the city of God." " The humble Mary," says 
St. Grignon de Montfort (30), " will make you a sharer 
in her deep humility, so that you will despise your- 
self and no one else, and you will love to be despised. 

" She will give you a share in her faith also, which 
was greater than the faith of the patriarchs, the 
prophets, the apostles, and all the saints. She herself 
has that faith no longer, for she sees all things clearly 
in God in the light of glory; but she keeps it . . . in 
the Church militant for her most faithful servants. 

" The more you win her love . . . the more you will 
have a pure faith, which will make you set little store 
by the sense-perceptible and the extraordinary; a 
faith living and animated by charity which 
will make you act from a motive of pure love; 
a faith firm and immovable as a rock which 
will make you constant in the midst of storms 
and afflictions; a faith active and piercing 
which, like a mysterious master-key, will give you 
entry to all the mysteries of Jesus, the final destiny 
of man, and the heart of God Himself; a courageous 
faith which will make you undertake and bring to 
achievement great things for God and the salvation 
of souls; a faith that will be your flaming torch, your 
divine life, your hidden treasure of divine wisdom, 
your all-powerful weapon, yours to use for the en- 
lightenment of those who are in darkness, and the 
shadow of death, for the inflaming of those who are 
lukewarm and who need the purified gold of charity, 
for the restoration to life of those who are dead by 
sin, for touching and uprooting by your sweet and 
and powerful words the hearts of marble and the 



(30) lb., ch.vii, a.l. 



310 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



cedars of Lebanon, and finally for resisting the devil 
and all the enemies of salvation " (31). These won- 
derful pages are the fruit of the full development of 
the virtue of faith, lit up by the gifts of understand- 
ing and wisdom — fides donis illustrata, as theologians 
say. 

& 

Great Confidence in God through Mary 

By confidence we mean that firm hope which tends 
towards eternal glory with sureness of direction. 
According to St. Grignon de Montfort (32), the 
Blessed Virgin inspires great confidence in God and in 
herself : 1st — since through consecration we approach 
Jesus no longer alone but in the company of His 
Mother; 2nd— having given Mary all our merits, 
graces and satisfactions to dispose of as she wills, she 
in return will communicate to us her virtues and 
clothe us with her merits; 3rd — since we have given 
ourselves to Mary she will give herself to us. We can 
say to Mary : " I belong to you, O Holy Virgin. Save 
me." And to God we can say with the psalmist (Ps. 
cxxx, 1): " Lord, my heart is not exalted: nor are my 
eyes lofty. Neither have I walked in great matters, 
nor in wonderful things above me. No, but I keep my 
soul in calm and silence; as a child that is weaned 
(from the pleasures of the world, and resting) on its 
mother's breast (and trusting in her)." Through 
Mary we receive more and more the inspirations of 
the gift of knowledge which shows us the emptiness 
of the things of this world and our frailty, and con- 
trasts them with the reward of eternal life and the 
divine assistance. 

(31) lb., ch.vii, a.2. 

(32) 7b., a.4. 



MYSTICAL UNION WITH MARY 



311 



« 

The Grace of Pure Love and of 
Transformation of Soul 

Those who walk by the way of Mary grow in charity 
under the influence of her who is called the " Mother 
of fair love " (Eccl. xxiv, 24). " She will take out of 
your heart every scruple and servile fear; she will 
expand it so that you will run in the commandments 
of her Son (Ps. cxviii, 32) with the holy freedom of 
the children of God. She will introduce into your 
heart that pure love of which she has all the 
treasures so that you will no longer serve the God of 
love in fear as you have done, but in pure love. You 
will look on Him as your good Father Whom you will 
try to please at all times, with Whom you will con- 
verse in all confidence. If you have the misfortune 
to offend Him . . . you will at once ask forgiveness 
humbly, you will stretch out your hands to Him . . . 
and you will continue your journey towards Him with 
unshaken confidence " (33). 

Mary's soul will be communicated to yours to 
glorify the Lord and to rejoice in Him, to live the 
Magnificat. The faithful christian " inhales Mary in 
a spiritual manner just as his body inhales the air " 

(34) . So well is her spirit of wisdom communicated 
that her fully faithful servant and child becomes a 
living image of his mother. 

Through this communication the soul is trans- 
formed to the image of Jesus Christ. " St. Augustine 
calls the Blessed Virgin the mould of God, forma Dei 

(35) ... Whoever is cast in this mould is soon formed 

(33) lb., ch.vii, a.3. 

(34) lb., a.5. 

(35) Sermon 208. which has been attributed to St. Augustine, 
"Si formam Dei te appellem, digna existis." 



312 mary's universal mediation and our interior life 



in Christ . . . Some directors are like sculptors who, 
placing their trust in their art, deal blow after blow 
with hammer and chisel to a hard stone or a piece of 
wood in order to shape it into a representation of 
Jesus, and sometimes do not succeed . . . one badly- 
aimed blow can botch the whole work. But 
those who accept the secret of grace of which I write 
are like artists who work from a mould. Having found 
the beautiful mould of Mary, where Jesus was formed 
naturally and divinely, they do not trust their own 
industry but only the fidelity of the mould, and cast 
and lose themselves in Mary, becoming thus images 
Of Christ . . . But remember that you can cast in a 
mould only what has been melted to a liquid: that is 
to say, you must destroy and melt down the old Adam, 
to become the new Adam in Mary " (36). 

The way of Mary increases purity of intention. By 
it a person renounces his own peculiar intentions, 
even if good, to be lost in those of the Blessed Virgin. 
" One enters thus into the sublimity of her intentions 
which were so pure that she gave more glory to God 
by the least of her actions— for example, by winding 
her distaff, or by some needlework— than St. Laurence 
did on the gridiron by his martyrdom, or even all the 
saints by their most heroic acts ... or all the angels 
... By deigning to receive into her virginal hands the 
gift of our actions she gives them a beauty and splen- 
dour which glorify Our Blessed Lord much more than 
if we offered them to Him ourselves . . . Finally, you 
never think of Mary but she thinks of God for you . . 
She is all she is relative to God ... she is the echo of 
God, who says and repeats but ' God ' . . . When she 
is praised God is loved and praised. We give to God 
through and in Mary " (37). 

(36) Treatise of True Devotion, ch. vii, a.6. 

(37) lb., ch.vii. a.7. 



MYSTICAL UNION WITH MARY 



313 



9 

Grace of Intimacy with Mary 

Some souls are favoured with a special grace of 
union with Mary. Fr. E. Neubert, the Marianist, has 
gathered a number of significant testimonies in this 
connection (38). Reference must also be made to the 
work "Mystic Union with Mary," written by a Flemish 
recluse, Marie de Sainte-Therese (1623-1677) who 
had personal experience of the subject on which she 
wrote. 

Fr. Chaminade, who exercised the priestly ministry 
at Bordeaux with great zeal during the French Revo- 
lution and who founded the Marianists had the same 
experience. He wrote : " There is a gift of the habitual 
presence of the Blessed Virgin even as there is a gift 
of the habitual presence of God— very rare, it is true, 
but obtainable through great fidelity." As Fr. Neubert 
explains, this text refers to normal and habitual 
mystical union with Mary. The Ven. L. Ed. Cestac 
had the same gift. " I do not see her," he said, " but 
I feel her presence as the horse feels the hand on the 
rein." Thus these souls are conscious of the influence 
which Mary exercises on us continually by transmit- 
ting actual graces to our souls. 

Marie de Sainte-Therese has words to the same 
effect: "That sweet mother has taken me under her 
maternal direction just as a teacher takes in her own 
the hand of the child she is teaching to write . . . She 
remains almost uninterruptedly before my soul, 
drawing me to herself in so loving and motherly a 
manner, stimulating me, guiding me, instructing me 
in the way of the spirit and in the perfect practice 

(38) La Vie Spirituelle, January 1937: "L'TJnion mystique 
a la Sainte Vierge. pp. 15-29. 



314 mary's universal mediation and our interior life 



of the virtues. And I do not lose for a single instant 
the charm of her presence along with that of the 
Godhead . . . She produces the divine life in me by an 
imperceptible inflow of different graces ... It is of the 
nature of love to unite itself to the object loved . . . 
Thus tender, burning and unifying love draws the 
soul which loves Mary to live in her, to be united to 
her, and to other effects and transformations . . . Then 
God shows Himself in Mary and by her as in a 
mirror." Such was a great part of the life of this 
servant of God. 

Some souls who have had great intimacy with Mary 
say that they never experienced her presence in them, 
but rather her presence very near them — as near as 
possible, in fact — and that they felt a great joy at 
knowing of her happiness. We have known a saintly 
Carthusian who said: " I suffer, but she is happy." 

Finally, many holy souls have had, in the midst of 
their sufferings, a gift of deep intimacy with Mary 
which was the source of their strength even though 
they have left no account of it. Many of them have ex- 
perienced, were it only for an instant, her presence 
like that of a mother who peeps into the room where 
her children are. In- such experiences she communi- 
cates an indescribable holiness, and prompts to more 
generous sacrifices, such as lead the soul into the 
depths contained in the Magnificat and the Stabat 
Mater. 

Article V 

The Consecration of the Human Race to Mary 
for the Peace of the World 

The gravity of the events of these latter years, since 
the Russian Revolution, the Spanish Civil War and 



the consecration of the human race TO MARY 315 

the World War, shows that the faithful should have 
recourse to God more and more through the great 
mediators He has given us on account of our weak- 
ness. The horror of these events shows in a singu- 
larly striking manner to what men can come if they 
wish to do absolutely without God, and organise their 
life without Him, far from Him and against Him. 
When, instead of believing in God, hoping in Him 
and loving Him above all and our neighbour in Him, 
we wish to believe in humanity, hope in it, and love it 
in a purely earthly manner, it does not take long to 
show itself to us with all its blemishes and gaping 
wounds: the pride of life, the concupiscence of the 
flesh, the concupiscence of the eyes, and all the 
brutality that ensues from them. When, instead of 
making our last end God, Who can be simultaneously 
possessed by all, we seek our final end in earthly 
goods, we are not long in finding out that they divide 
us profoundly; for the same house, the same field, the 
same territory, cannot belong simultaneously and 
integrally to several owners. The more life is 
materialised, the more the lower appetites are ex- 
cited, without any subordination to a superior love, 
the more the conflicts between individuals, classes 
and peoples become acute, till finally earth becomes 
a veritable hell. 

The Lord shows thus to men what they can be 
without Him. It is a striking commentary on these 
words of the Saviour: "Without me you can do 
nothing" (John xv, 5); "He that is not with me is 
against me: and he that gathereth not with me, 
scattereth " (Mt. xii, 30) ; " Seek ye first the kingdom 
of God and his justice, and all these things shall be 
added unto you " (Mt. vi, 33). The psalmist in the 
same way says: "Unless the Lord build the house, 
they labour in vain that build it. Unless the Lord 



316 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



keep the city, he watcheth in vain that keepeth it " 
(Ps. cxxvi, 1). 

9 

The two great evils of the age, as Pope Pius XI said, 
are on the one hand materialistic and atheistic 
communism according to the programme of the 
' God-less,' and on the other hand, an unbounded 
nationalism which aims at establishing the 
supremacy of the stronger nations over the weaker, 
without respect for divine and natural law. Hence 
the bitter conflict in which the entire world is 
plunged. 

As a remedy for these evils, the best and most 
zealous among catholics in nations actually on oppo- 
site sides feel the need for common prayer which will 
re-unite before God the souls of true christians in all 
countries, to obtain that the reign of God and of His 
Christ be established more and more in the place of 
the reign of pride and covetousness. To this end, 
masses are daily offered along with adoration of the 
Blessed Sacrament; which latter has been established 
in different countries in so speedy and widespread a 
manner that one must consider it the fruit of a great 
grace from God. 

Exterior peace will not be obtained for the world 
except by the interior peace of souls, bringing them 
back to God and working to establish the reign of 
Christ in the depths of their intellects, of their hearts 
and of their wills. For this return of straying souls 
to Him Who alone can save them, it is necessary to 
have recourse to the intercession of Mary, Universal 
Mediatrix and Mother of all men. It is said of sinners 
who seem for ever lost that they must be confided to 
Mary : it is the same for christian peoples who stray. 



THE CONSECRATION OF THE HUMAN RACE TO MARY 



317 



All the influence of the Blessed Virgin has as its end 
to lead souls to her Son, just as that of Christ, the 
Universal Mediator, has as its end to lead them to His 
Father. 

Mary's prayer, especially since she was assumed 
into heaven, is universal in the widest sense of the 
term. She prays not only for individual souls on 
earth and in Purgatory, but also for families and for 
all nations, which ought to live beneath the rays of 
the Gospel's light and the influence of the Church. 
Moreover, her prayer is all the more powerful in that 
it is more enlightened and proceeds from a love of 
God and of souls which nothing can weaken or inter- 
rupt. The merciful love of Mary for men surpasses 
that of all the angels and saints united, and so does 
the power of her intercession with the Heart of her 
Son. 

9 

That is why on all sides many interior souls, before 
the unprecedented disorders and tragic sufferings of 
the hour, feel the need for recourse to the redeeming 
Love of Christ through the intercession of Mary 
Mediatrix. 

In many countries, especially in convents of fervent 
contemplative life, it is remembered that many 
French bishops united at Lourdes, at the second 
national Marial Congress, on the 27th of July, 1929, 
expressed to the Sovereign Pontiff their desire for a 
consecration of the human race to the Immaculate 
Heart of Mary. It is remembered also that Father 
Deschamps, S.J., in 1900, Cardinal Richard, Arch- 
bishop of Paris, in 1906, Fr. Le Dore, Superior General 
of the Eudists, in 1908 and 1912, and Fr. Lintelo, S.J., 
in 1914, took the initiative in the matter of petitions 



318 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



to the Sovereign Pontiff to obtain the consecration of 
the human race to the Immaculate Heart of Mary. 

By a collective act, the bishops of France, at the 
beginning of the war of 1914, in December of the 
same year, consecrated France to Mary. Cardinal 
Mercier in 1915, in his Pastoral Letter on Mary 
Mediatrix, saluted the Blessed Virgin, Mother of the 
human race, as Queen of the World. Fr. Lucas, new 
Superior General of the Eudists, obtained finally in a 
few months more than three hundred thousand sig- 
natures to hasten by this consecration the peace of 
Christ in the reign of Christ. 

m 

The strength that we need in the present upheaval 
is the prayer of Mary, Mother of all men, who will 
obtain it for us from the Saviour. Her intercession 
is very powerful against the spirit of evil which 
ranges individuals, classes and peoples one against 
the other. If a formal pact, fully consented to, with 
the demon, can have dire consequences in the life of 
a soul and send it to eternal damnation, what spiri- 
tual effect will a consecration to Mary not have, made 
in a deep spirit of faith and often renewed with still 
greater fidelity? 

One may remember how in December, 1836, the 
venerable cure of Our Lady of Victories in Paris, while 
celebrating Mass at the altar of the Blessed Virgin, 
heartbroken at the thought of the apparent failure 
of his ministry, heard these words: " Consecrate your 
parish to the Holy and Immaculate Heart of Mary," 
and how once the consecration was made the parish 
was transformed. 

Mary's prayer for us is that of a Mother very en- 
lightened, very loving and very strong, who watches 



THE CONSECRATION OF THE HUMAN RACE TO MARY 



319 



ceaselessly over her children, over all men, called to 
receive the fruits of the Redemption. This is the 
experience of anyone who daily consecrates to Mary 
all his works, material and spiritual, and all his 
undertakings. He recovers faith and confidence 
when all seems lost. 

Now, if the individual consecration of a soul to 
Mary obtains for it daily great graces of light, love 
and strength, what will not be the fruits of a conse- 
cration of the human race made to the Saviour by 
Mary herself, at the request of the common Father 
of the faithful, the supreme Pastor? What will not 
be the effect of a consecration thus made, especially 
if the faithful among the different peoples unite, so 
as to conform their lives to it, in fervent prayer often 
renewed at Holy Mass? 

To obtain that the Sovereign Pontiff perform this 
act, it is necessary that a sufficient number of the 
faithful understand the recent lessons given us by 
Divine Providence. In other words, a sufficient 
number must have seized the meaning and the im- 
port of the consecration asked for. Otherwise it will 
not be able to produce the required effects. In the 
divine plan, trials end when they have produced the 
effect they were intended to produce, when souls have 
profited by them — just as Purgatory ends when the 
soul is purified. 

As a saintly religious used to say (39): " We do not 
live for ourselves; we must see everything as it is in 
God's plan; our present sufferings — even were they 
to rise to their peak and were we ourselves to be sacri- 
ficed in the disaster — gain and prepare the future 

(39) Mere Marie de Jesus, foundress of the Society of the 
Daughters of the Heart of Jesus : " Pensees de la Servante de 
Dieu, Mere Marie de Jesus (1841-1884), Rome, 1918, pp. 43 sqq.. 
50. 



320 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



assured triumphs of the Church ... The Church goes 
thus from struggle to struggle and from victory to 
victory, each succeeding the other until Eternity, 
which will be the final victory." " Ought not Christ 
to have suffered these things and so to enter into His 
glory " (Luke xxiv, 26). The Church and souls must 
go along the same road. The Church does not live 
only for a day; when the martyrs fell like snowflakes 
in winter, might one not have believed that all was 
lost? No, their blood was preparing the triumphs of 
the future." 

In the difficult period we are going through the 
Church has need of very generous souls, of real 
saints. It is Mary, Mother of Divine Grace, Mother 
most pure, Virgin most prudent and strong, who must 
shape them. 

From various sides the Lord suggests to interior 
souls a prayer of which the form may differ but of 
which the substance is always the same: "In this 
time when a spirit of pride pushed to the point of 
atheism seeks to spread itself among the peoples, O 
Lord, be Thou as the soul of my soul, the life of my 
life; grant me a deeper understanding of the mystery 
of the Redemption and of Thy holy self-abasement, 
the remedy of all pride. Grant me a sincere desire 
to participate, in the measure intended for me by 
Providence, in these salutary humiliations and make 
me find in this desire the strength, peace and— when 
Thou desirest it— the joy, to stir up my courage and 
the confidence of those around me." 

To enter thus practically into the depths of the 
mystery of the Redemption, it is necessary that Mary, 
who at the foot of the Cross entered into them deeper 
than did any other creature, should teach us in- 
teriorly and reveal to us in the words of the Gospel 
the spirit in which she herself lived so fully. 



THE CONSECRATION OF THE HUMAN RACE TO MARY 



321 



May the Mother of the Saviour deign by her prayer 
to place all the faithful of the different nations be- 
neath the rays of these words of Christ: "The glory 
which thou hast given me I have given to them; that 
they may be one, as we also are one " (John xvii, 22) 

It is to be hoped that one day, when the hour 
appointed by Divine Providence will have come, and 
when souls are prepared, the Supreme Pastor, in 
answer to the prayers of the bishops and the faithful, 
will consecrate the human race to the merciful and 
Immaculate Heart of Mary,* that she may offer us all 
the more appealingly to her Son and so obtain peace 
for the world. This would be a new affirmation of 
the universal mediation of the Blessed Virgin. 

Let us go to her with the greatest confidence: she 
has been called " the hope of the hopeless," and by 
going to her as to the best and the most enlightened 
of mothers we shall go to Jesus as to our sole and 
merciful Saviour. 



* This has been done since the publication of this book. 



v 



CHAPTER VII 



The Predestination of St. Joseph 
and His Eminent Sanctity 

" He that is lesser among you all, he is the greater " 

— Luke ix, 48 

One cannot write a book on Our Lady without re- 
ferring to the predestination of St. Joseph, his 
eminent perfection, the character of his special 
mission, his virtues, and his role in the sanctification 
of souls. 

His Pre-eminence over the other Saints 

The opinion that St. Joseph is the greatest of the 
saints after Our Lady is one which is becoming daily 
more commonly held in the Church. We do not 
hesitate to look on the humble carpenter as higher 
in grace and eternal glory than the patriarchs and 
the greatest of the prophets— than St. John the 
Baptist, the apostles, the martyrs and the great 
doctors of the Church. He who is least in the depth 
of his humility is, because of the interconnection of 
the virtues, the greatest in the height of his charity: 
"He that is the lesser among you all, he is the 
greater." 

St Joseph's pre-eminence was taught by Gerson 
(1) and St. Bernadine of Siena (2). It became more 

(1) Senna in Nativitatem Virginis Mariae, IVa consideratio. 



PREDESTINATION OF ST. JOSEPH AND HIS EMINENT SANCTITY 323 

and more common in the course of the 16th century. 
It was admitted by St. Teresa, by the Dominican 
Isidore de Isolanis, who appears to have written the 
first treatise of St. Joseph (3), by St. Francis de Sales, 
by Suarez (4), and later by St. Alphonsus Liguori (5), 
Ch. Sauve (6), Cardinal Lepicier (7) and Mgr. 
Sinibaldi (8); it is very ably treated of in the article 
"Joseph" in the Diet, de Theol. Cath. by M. A. 
Michel. 

The doctrine of St. Joseph's pre-eminence received 
the approval of Leo XIII in his encyclical Quamquam 
pluries, August 15th, 1899, written to proclaim St. 
Joseph patron of the universal Church. " The dignity 
of the Mother of God is so elevated than there can be 
no higher created one. But since St. Joseph was 
united to the Blessed Virgin by the conjugal bond, 
there is no doubt that he approached nearer than any 
other to that super-eminent dignity of hers by which 
the Mother of God surpasses all created natures. 
Conjugal union is the greatest of all; by its very 
nature it is accompanied by a reciprocal communica- 
tion of the goods of the spouses. If then God gave 
St. Joseph to Mary to be her spouse He certainly did 
not give him merely as a companion in life, a witness 
of her virginity, a guardian of her honour, but He 
made him also participate by the conjugal bond in 
the eminent dignity which was hers." 

When Leo XIII said that Joseph came nearest of all 
to the super-eminent dignity of Mary, did his words 
imply that Joseph is higher in glory than all the 

(2) Sermo I de S. Joseph, c. iii. Opera, Lyon 1650, t IV p 254 

(3) Summa de danls S. Joseph, ann. 1522.' There' is 'a new 
edition by Ft. Berthier, Rome 1897 

(4) In Summam S. Thomae, Ilia,' q.29, disp. 8 sect I 

(5) Sermone dl S. Giuseppe, Discorsi Morali, Naples, 1841. 

(6) Saint Joseph Intime, Paris, 1920. 

(7) Tractatus de Saneto Joseph, Paris, 1908. 

(8) La Grandezza di San Giuseppe, Rome, 1927, pp. 36 sqq. 



324 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

angels? We cannot give any certain answer to the 
question. We must be content to restate the doctrine 
which is becoming more and more commonly taught: 
of all the saints Joseph is the highest after Jesus and 
Mary; he is among the angels and the archangels. 
The Church mentions him immediately after Mary 
and before the Apostles in the prayer A cunctis. 
Though he is not mentioned in the Canon of the Mass, 
he has a proper preface, and the month of March is 
consecrated to him as protector and defender of the 
universal Church. 

The multitude of christians in all succeeding 
generations are committed to him in a real though 
hidden manner. This idea is expressed in the 
litanies approved by the Church: "St. Joseph, illus- 
trious descendant of David, light of the Patriarchs, 
Spouse of the Mother of God, guardian of her vir- 
ginity, foster-father of the Son of God, vigilant 
defender of Christ, head of the Holy Family; Joseph 
most just, most chaste, most prudent, most strong, 
most obedient, most faithful, mirror of patience, 
lover of poverty, model of workers, glory of domestic 
life, guardian of virgins, support of families, consola- 
tion of the afflicted, hope of the sick, patron of the 
dying, terror of demons, protector of the Holy 
Church." He is the greatest after Mary. 

$ 

The Reason for St. Joseph's Pre-eminence 

What is the justification of this doctrine which has 
been more and more accepted in the course of five 
centuries. The principle invoked more or less ex- 
plicitly by St. Bernard, St. Bernardine of Siena, 
Isidore de Isolanis, Suarez, and more recent authors 



PREDESTINATION OF ST. JOSEPH AND HIS EMINENT SANCTITY 325 

is the one, simple and sublime, formulated by St. 
Thomas when treating of the fulness of grace in Jesus 
and of holiness in Mary: "An exceptional divine 
mission calls for a corresponding degree of grace." 
This principle explains why the holy soul of Jesus, 
being united personally to the Word, the Source of all 
grace, received the absolute fulness of grace. It ex- 
plains also why Mary, called to be Mother of God, 
received from the instant of her conception an initial 
fulness of grace which was greater than the initial 
fulness of all the saints together: since she was 
nearer than any other to the Source of grace she 
drew grace more abundantly. It explains also why 
the apostles who were nearer to Our Blessed Lord 
than the saints who followed them had more perfect 
knowledge of the mysteries of faith. To preach the 
gospel infallibly to the world they received at 
Pentecost the gift of a most eminent, most en- 
lightened, and most firm faith as the principle of 
their apostolate. 

The same truth explains St. Joseph's pre-eminence. 
To understand it we must add one remark : all works 
which are to be referred immediately to God Himself 
are perfect. The work of creation, for example, which 
proceeded entirely and directly from the hand of God 
was perfect. The same must be said of His great 
servants, whom He has chosen exceptionally and im- 
mediately — not through a human instrument — to 
restore the order disturbed by sin. God does not 
choose as men do. Men often choose incompetent 
officials for the highest posts. But those whom God 
Himself chooses directly and immediately to be His 
exceptional ministers in the work of redemption re- 
ceive from Him grace proportionate to their vocation. 
This was the case with St. Joseph. He must have 
received a relative fulness of grace proportionate to 



326 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



his mission since he was chosen not by men nor by 
any creature but by God Himself and by God alone 
to fulfil a mission unique in the world. We cannot 
say at what precise moment St. Joseph's sanctifica- 
tion took place. But we can say that, from the time 
of his marriage to Our Lady, he was confirmed in 
grace, because of his special mission (9). 

§ 

To What Order Does St. Joseph's Exceptional 
Mission Belong! 

St. Joseph's mission is evidently higher than the 
order of nature — even of angelic nature. But is it 
simply of the order of grace, as were that of St. John 
the Baptist who prepared the way of salvation, and 
that the apostles had in the Church for the sanctifi- 
cation of souls, and that more particular mission of 
the founders of religious orders? If we examine the 
question carefully we shall see that St. Joseph's 
mission surpassed the order of grace. It borders, by 
its term, on the hypostatic order, which is constituted 
by the mystery of the Incarnation. But it is neces- 
sary to avoid both exaggeration and understatement 
in this matter. 

Mary's unique mission, her divine motherhood, 
has its term in the hypostatic order. So also, in a 
sense, St. Joseph's hidden mission. This is the 
teaching of many saints and other writers. St. 
Bernard says of St. Joseph: "He is the faithful and 
prudent servant whom the Lord made the support of 
His Mother, the foster-father of His flesh, and the 

(9) Cf. Diet. Thiol. Cath., art. Joseph, col. 1518. 



PREDESTINATION OF ST. JOSEPH AND HIS EMINENT SANCTITY 327 



sole most faithful co-operator on earth in His great 
design" (10). 

St. Bernardine of Siena writes : "When God chooses 
a person by grace for a very elevated mission, He 
gives all the graces required for it. This is verified 
in a specially outstanding manner in the case of St. 
Joseph, Foster-father of Our Lord Jesus Christ and 
Spouse of Mary ..." (11). Isidore de Isolanis places 
St. Joseph's vocation above that of the Apostles. He 
remarks that the vocation of the apostles is to preach 
the gospel, to enlighten souls, to reconcile them with 
God, but that the vocation of St. Joseph is more im- 
mediately in relation with Christ Himself since he is 
the Spouse of the Mother of God, the Foster-father 
and Protector of the Saviour (12). Suarez teaches to 
the same effect: "Certain offices pertain to the 
order of sanctifying grace, and among them that of 
the apostles holds the highest place; thus they have 
need of more gratuitous gifts than other souls, 
especially gratuitous gifts of wisdom. But there are 
other offices which touch upon or border on the order 
of the Hypostatic Union ... as can be seen clearly in 
the case of the divine maternity of the Blessed Virgin, 
and it is to that order that the ministry of St. Joseph 
pertains " (13). 

Some years ago Mgr. Sinibaldi, titular Bishop of 
Tiberias and secretary of the Sacred Congregation of 
Studies, treated the question very ably. He pointed 
out that the ministry of St. Joseph belonged, in a 
sense, because of its term, to the hypostatic order: 
not that St. Joseph co-operated intrinsically as 
physical instrument of the Holy Ghost in the realisa- 

(10) Homil. II super Missus est. 

(11) Senno I de S. Joseph. 

(12) Summa de donis sancti Joseph. Pars Ilia, c. xviii. This 
work was very highly praised by Benedict XIV. 

(13) In Summam S. Thomae, Ilia, q.29, disp. 8, sect. I. 



328 mart's universal mediation and our interior life 

tion of the mystery of the Incarnation— for under 
that respect his role is very much inferior to that of 
Mar y_but that he was predestined to be, in the 
order of moral causes, the protector of the virginity 
and the honour of Mary at the same time as foster- 
father and protector of the Word made flesh. " His 
mission pertains by its term to the hypostatic order, 
not through intrinsic physical and immediate co- 
operation, but through extrinsic moral and mediate 
(through Mary) co-operation, which is, however, 
really and truly co-operation " (14). 

i 

St. Joseph's Predestination is One with the Decree 
of the Incarnation 

St. Joseph's pre-eminence becomes all the clearer 
if we consider that the eternal decree of the Incarna- 
tion covered not merely the Incarnation in 
abstraction from circumstances of time and place but 
the Incarnation here and now — that is to say, the 
Incarnation of the Son of God Who by the operation 
of the Holy Ghost was to be conceived at a certain 
moment of time by the Virgin Mary, espoused to a 
man of the family of David whose name was Joseph: 
" The angel Gabriel was sent from God into a city of 
Galilee, called Nazareth, to a virgin espoused to a 
man whose name was Joseph, of the house of David " 
(Luke i, 26-27). 

All the indications are therefore that St. Joseph 
was predestined to be Foster-father of the Incarnate 
Word before being predestined to glory, the ultimate 
reason being that Christ's predestination as man to 
the natural divine sonship precedes the predestina- 

(14) La Grandezza di San Giuseppe, Rome. 1927, pp. 36 sqq. 



PREDESTINATION OF ST. JOSEPH AND HIS EMINENT SANCTITY 329 

tion of all the elect, since Christ is the first of the 
predestined (15). The predestination of Christ to 
the natural divine sonship is simply the decree of 
the Incarnation, which, as we have seen, includes 
Mary's predestination to the divine motherhood and 
Joseph's to be foster-father and protector of the 
Incarnate Son of God. 

As the predestination of Christ to the natural 
divine sonship is superior to His predestination to 
glory and precedes it, and as the predestination of 
Mary to the divine motherhood precedes (in signo 
priori) her predestination to glory, so also the pre- 
destination of St. Joseph to be Foster-father of the 
Incarnate Word precedes his predestination to glory 
and to grace. In other words, the reason why he was 
predestined to the highest degree of glory after Mary, 
and in consequence to the highest degree "of grace 
and of charity, is that he was called to be the worthy 
Foster-father and protector of the Man-God. 

The fact that St. Joseph's first oredestination was 
one with the decree of the Incarnation shows how 
elevated his unique mission was. This is what people 
mean when they say that St. Joseph was made and 
put into the world to be the Foster-father of the In- 
carnate Word and that God willed for him a high 
degree of glory and grace to fit him for his task. 

® 

The Special Character of St. Joseph's Mission 

This point is explained admirably by Bossuet in his 
first panegyric of the saint: "Among the different 
vocations, I notice two in the Scriptures which seem 
directly opposed to each other: the first is that of the 

(15) Cf. Ilia. q.24. a l, 2, 3. 4. 



330 MAItY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



apostles, the second that of St. Joseph. Jesus was 
revealed to the apostles that they might announce 
Him throughout the world; He was revealed to St. 
Joseph who was to remain silent and keep Him 
hidden. The apostles are lights to make the world 
see Jesus. Joseph is a veil to cover Him; and under 
that mysterious veil are hidden from us the virginity 
of Mary and the greatness of the Saviour of souls . . . 
He Who makes the apostles glorious with the glory 
of preaching, glorifies Joseph by the humility of 
silence." The hour for the manifestation of the 
mystery of the Incarnation had not yet struck: it was 
to be preceded by the thirty years of the hidden life. 

Perfection consists in doing God's will, each one 
according to his vocation; St. Joseph's vocation of 
silence and obscurity surpassed that of the apostles 
because it bordered more nearly on the redemptive 
Incarnation. After Mary, Joseph was nearest to the 
Author of grace, and in the silence of Bethlehem, 
during the exile in Egypt, and in the little home of 
Nazareth he received more graces than any other 
saint. 

His mission was a dual one. 

As regards Mary, he preserved her virginity by con- 
tracting with her a true but altogether holy 
marriage. The angel of the Lord said to him: 
" Joseph, son of David, fear not to take unto thee 
Mary thy wife, for that which is conceived of her is 
of the Holy Ghost" (Mt. i, 20; Luke ii, 5). Mary is 
truly his wife. The marriage was a true one, as St. 
Thomas explains (HIa, q.29, a.2) when showing its 
appropriateness. There should be no room for doubt, 
however light, regarding the honour of the Son and 
the Mother: if ever doubt did arise Joseph, the most 
informed and the least suspect witness, would be 
there to defend it. Besides, Mary would find help and 



PREDESTINATION OF ST. JOSEPH AND HIS EMINENT SANCTITY 331 



protection in St. Joseph. He loved her with a pure 
and devoted love, in God and for God. Their union 
was stainless, and most respectful on the side of St. 
Joseph. Thus he was nearer than any other saint to 
the Mother of God and the spiritual Mother of men — 
and he too was a man. The beauty of the whole 
universe was nothing compared with that of the 
union of Mary and Joseph, a union created by the 
Most High, which ravished the angels and gave joy 
to the Lord. 

As regards the Incarnate Word, Joseph watched 
over Him, protected Him, and contributed to His 
human education. He is called His foster-father, but 
the term does not express fully the mysterious super- 
natural relation betwen the two. A man becomes 
foster-father of a child normally as a result of an 
accident. But it was no accident in the case of St. 
Joseph: he had been created and put into the world 
for that purpose: it was the primary reason of his 
predestination and the reason for all the graces he 
received. Bossuet expressed this well ( 16) : "If nature 
does not give a father's heart, where will it be 
found? In other words, since Joseph was not Jesus' 
father, how could he have a father's heart in His 
regard? 

Here we must recognise the action of God. It is 
by the power of God that Joseph has a father's heart, 
and if nature fails God gives one with His own hand; 
for it is of God that it is written that He directs our 
inclinations where he wills ... He gives some a heart 
of flesh when He softens their nature by charity . . . 
Does He not give all the faithful the hearts of 
children when He sends to them the Spirit of His 

(16) First Panegyric of St. Joseph, edit. Lebarcq, t. II, pp. 
135 sqq. 



332 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 

Son? The apostles feared the least danger, but God 
gave them a new heart and their courage became 
undaunted . . . The same hand gave Joseph the heart 
of a father and Jesus the heart of a son. That is 
why Jesus obeys and Joseph does not fear to com- 
mand. How has he the courage to command his 
Creator? Because the true Father of Jesus Christ, 
the God Who gives Him birth from all eternity, 
having chosen Joseph to be the father of His only 
Son in time, sent down into his bosom some ray or 
some spark of His own infinite love for His Son; that 
is what changed his heart, that is what gave him a 
father's love, and Joseph the just man who feels that 
father's heart within him feels also that God wishes 
him to use his paternal authority, so that he dares 
to command Him Who he knows is his Master." That 
is equivalent to saying that Joseph was predestined 
first to take the place of a father in regard to the 
Saviour Who could have no earthly father (17), and 
in consequence to have all the gifts which were given 
him that he might be a worthy Protector of the 
Incarnate Word. 

Is it necessary to say with what fidelity St. Joseph 
guarded the triple deposit confided to him: the vir- 
ginity of Mary, the Person of Jesus Christ, and the 
secret of the Eternal Father, that of the Incarnation 
of His Son, a secret to be guarded faithfully till the 
hour appointed for its revelation? 

In a discourse delivered in the Consistorial Hall on 
the 19th of March, 1928, Pope Pius XI said, after 
having spoken on the missions of St. John the 
Baptist and St. Peter: "Between these two missions 
there appears that of St. Joseph, one of recollection 
and silence, one almost unnoticed and destined to be 

(17) We read that Jesus was subject to Mary and Joseph. 
Joseoh in his humility must have been confounded that he, 
the least of the three, should be the head of the Holy Family. 



PREDESTINATION OF ST. JOSEPH AND HIS EMINENT SANCTITY 333 

lit up only many centuries afterwards, a silence which 
would become a resounding hymn of glory, but only 
after many years. But where the mystery is deepest 
it is there precisely that the mission is highest and 
that a more brilliant cortege of virtues is required 
with their corresponding echo of merits. It was a 
unique and sublime mission, that of guarding the Son 
of God, the King of the world, that of protecting the 
virginity of Mary, that of entering into participation 
in the mystery hidden from the eyes of ages and so 
to co-operate in the Incarnation and the Redemp- 
tion." "That is equivalently to state that Divine 
Providence conferred on St. Joseph all the graces he 
received in view of his special mission: in other 
words, St. Joseph was predestined first of all to be as 
a father to the Saviour, and was then predestined to 
the glory and the grace which were becoming in one 
favoured with so exceptional a vocation. 

The Virtues and Gifts of St. Joseph 

St. Joseph's virtues are those especially of the 
hidden life, in a degree proportioned to that of his 
sanctifying grace: virginity, humility, poverty, 
patience, prudence, fidelity, simplicity, faith en- 
lightened by the gifts of the Holy Ghost, confidence 
in God and perfect charity. He preserved what had 
been confided to him with a fidelity proportioned to 
its inestimable value. 

Bossuet makes this general observation about the 
virtues of the hidden life (18): " It is a common fail- 
ing of men to give themselves entirely to what is out- 
side and to neglect what is within; to work for mere 
appearances and to neglect what is solid and lasting; 

(18) Second Panegyric on St. Joseph. 



334 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



to think often of the impression they make and little 
of what they ought to be. That is why the most 
highly esteemed virtues are those which concern the 
conduct and direction of affairs. The hidden virtues, 
on the contrary, which are practised away from the 
public view and under the eye of God alone, are not 
only neglected but hardly even heard of. And yet 
this is the secret of true virtue ... a man must be 
built up interiorly in himself before he deserves to 
be given rank among others; and if this foundation 
is lacking, all the other virtues, however brilliant, 
will be mere display . . . they will not make the man 
according to God's heart. Joseph sought God in 
simplicity; Joseph found God in detachment; Joseph 
enjoyed God's company in obscurity." 

St. Joseph's humility must have been increased by 
the thought of the gratuity of his exceptional voca- 
tion. He must have said to himself: why has the 
Most High given me, rather than any other man, His 
Son to watch over? Only because that was His good 
pleasure. Joseph was freely preferred from all 
eternity to all other men to whom the Lord could 
have given the same gifts and the same fidelity to 
prepare them for so exceptional a vocation. We see 
in St. Joseph's predestination a reflection of the 
gratuitous predestination of Jesus and Mary. The 
knowledge of the value of the grace he received and 
of its absolute gratuitousness, far from injuring his 
humility, would strengthen it. He would think in his 
heart: " What have you that you have not received?" 

Joseph appears the most humble of the saints after 
Mary — more humble than any of the angels. If he is 
the most humble he is by that fact the greatest, for 
the virtues are all connected and a person's charity 
is as elevated as his humility is profound. " He that 



PREDESTINATION OF ST. JOSEPH AND HIS EMINENT SANCTITY 335 



is lesser among you all, he is the greater " (Lk. ix, 48). 

Bossuet says well : " Though by an extraordinary 
grace of the Eternal Father he possessed the greatest 
treasure, it was far from Joseph's thought to pride 
himself on his gifts or to make them known, but he 
hid himself as far as possible from mortal eyes, en- 
joying with God alone the mystery revealed to him 
and the infinite riches of which he was the custodian 
(19). Joseph has in his house what could attract the 
eyes of the whole world, and the world does not know 
him; he guards a God-man, and breathes not a word 
of it; he is the witness of so great a mystery, and he 
tastes it in secret without divulging it abroad " (20). 

His faith cannot be shaken in spite of the darkness 
of the unexpected mystery. The word of God com- 
municated to him by the angel throws light on the 
virginal conception of the Saviour: Joseph might 
have hesitated to believe a thing so wonderful, but he 
believes it firmly in the simplicity of his heart. By 
his simplicity and his humility, he reaches up to 
divine heights. 

Obscurity follows once more. Joseph was poor 
before receiving the secret of the Most High. He be- 
comes still poorer when Jesus is born, for Jesus comes 
to separate men from everything so as to unite them 
to God. There is no room for the Saviour in the last 
of the inns of Bethlehem. Joseph must have suffered 
from having nothing to offer to Mary and her Son. 

His confidence in God was made manifest in trials. 
Persecution came soon after Jesus' birth. Herod tried 
to put Him to death, and the head of the Holy Family 
was forced to conceal the child, to take refuge in a 

(19) First Panegyric on St. Joseph. 

(20) Second Panegyric on St. Joseph. 



336 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



distant country where he was unknown and where 
he did not know how he could earn a living. But he 
set out on the journey relying on Divine Providence. 

His love of God and of souls did not cease to in- 
crease during the hidden life of Nazareth; the 
Incarnate Word is an unfailing source of graces, ever 
newer and more choice, for docile souls who oppose 
no obstacle to His action. We have said already, 
when speaking of Mary, that the progress of such 
docile souls is one of uniform acceleration, that is to 
say, they are carried all the more powerfully to God 
the nearer they approach Him. This law of spiritual 
gravitation was realised in Joseph; his charity grew 
up to the time of his death, and the progress of his 
latter years was more rapid than that of his earlier 
years, for finding himself nearer to God he was more 
powerfully drawn by Him. 

Along with the theological virtues the gifts of the 
Holy Ghost, which are connected with charity, grew 
continuously. Those of understanding and of wisdom 
made his living faith more penetrating and more 
attuned to the divine. In a simple but most elevated 
way his contemplation rose to the infinite goodness of 
God. In its simplicity his contemplation was the 
most perfect after Mary's. 

His loving contemplation was sweet, but it de- 
manded of him the most perfect spirit of abnegation 
and sacrifice when he recalled the words of Simeon 
" This child will be ... a sign that will be contra- 
dicted " and " Thy own soul a sword shall pierce." He 
needed all his generosity to offer to God the Infant 
Jesus and His Mother Mary whom he loved 
incomparably more than himself. 

St. Joseph's death was a privileged one; St. Francis 
de Sales writes that it was a death of love (21). The 

(21) Treatise of the Love of God, Bk. VII, ch. xili. 



PREDESTINATION OF ST. JOSEPH AND HIS EMINENT SAM in. 

same holy doctor teaches with Suarez that St. Jo.srph 
was one of the saints who rose after the Resurrection 
of the Lord (Mt. xxvii, 52 sqq.) and appeared in ttM 
city of Jerusalem; he holds also that these resurrec- 
tions were definitive and that Joseph entered heaven 
then body and soul. St. Thomas is much more 
reserved regarding this point. Though his first 
opinion was that the resurrections were definitive 
(22) he taught later, after an examination of St. 
Augustine's arguments in the opposed sense, that this 
was not the case (23). 

St. Joseph's Role in the Sanctification of Souls 

The humble carpenter is glorified in heaven to the 
extent to which he was hidden on earth. He to whom 
the Incarnate Word was subject has now an incom- 
parable power of intercession. Leo XIII, in his 
encyclical Qua?nquam pluries finds in St. Joseph's 
mission in regard to the Holy Family " the reasons 
why he is Patron and Protector of the universal 
Church . . . Just as Mary, Mother of the Saviour, is 
spiritual mother of all christians . . . Joseph looks on 
all christians as having been confided to himself . . . 
He is the defender of the Holy Church which is truly 
the house of God and the kingdom of God on earth. 

What strikes us most in St. Joseph's role till the 
end of time is that there are united in it in an admir- 
able way apparently opposed prerogatives. H1m 
influence is universal over the whole Church, and yet, 
like Divine Providence, it descends to the least deta I 
"model of workmen " he takes an interest in eve: 
one who turns to him. He is the most universal ol thl 

(22) Cf. in Matth. xxvii and IV Sent., dist. 42, q.l, a.3. 

(23) Cf. Ilia, q.53, a.3, ad 2. 



338 MARY'S UNIVERSAL MEDIATION AND OUR INTERIOR LIFE 



saints, and yet he helps a poor man in his ordinary 
daily needs. His action is primarily of the spiritual 
order, and yet it extends to temporal affairs; he is the 
support of families and of communities, the hope of 
the sick. He watches over christians of all conditions, 
of all countries, over fathers of families, husbands 
and wives, consecrated virgins; over the rich to in- 
spire them to distribute their possessions charitably, 
and over the poor so as to help them. He is attentive 
to the needs of great sinners and of souls advanced 
in virtue. He is the patron of a happy death, of lost 
causes; he is terrible to the demon, and St. Teresa 
tells us that he is the guide of interior souls in the 
ways of prayer. His influence is a wonderful reflec- 
tion of that of Divine Wisdom which " reacheth from 
end to end mightily, and ordereth all things sweetly " 
(Wisdom viii. 1). 

He has been clothed and will remain clothed in 
Divine splendour. Grace has become fruitful in him 
and he will share its fruit with all who strive to attain 
to the life which is " hid with Christ in God " (Col. 
hi, 3).